15838 lines
627 KiB
Plaintext
15838 lines
627 KiB
Plaintext
THE REPUBLIC.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
PERSONS OF THE DIALOGUE.
|
|
|
|
Socrates, who is the narrator.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
Cephalus.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus.
|
|
|
|
Cleitophon.
|
|
|
|
And others who are mute auditors.
|
|
|
|
The scene is laid in the house of Cephalus at the Piraeus; and the whole
|
|
dialogue is narrated by Socrates the day after it actually took place to
|
|
Timaeus, Hermocrates, Critias, and a nameless person, who are introduced
|
|
in the Timaeus.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK I.
|
|
|
|
I went down yesterday to the Piraeus with Glaucon the son of Ariston,
|
|
that I might offer up my prayers to the goddess (Bendis, the Thracian
|
|
Artemis.); and also because I wanted to see in what manner they would
|
|
celebrate the festival, which was a new thing. I was delighted with the
|
|
procession of the inhabitants; but that of the Thracians was equally,
|
|
if not more, beautiful. When we had finished our prayers and viewed the
|
|
spectacle, we turned in the direction of the city; and at that instant
|
|
Polemarchus the son of Cephalus chanced to catch sight of us from a
|
|
distance as we were starting on our way home, and told his servant to
|
|
run and bid us wait for him. The servant took hold of me by the cloak
|
|
behind, and said: Polemarchus desires you to wait.
|
|
|
|
I turned round, and asked him where his master was.
|
|
|
|
There he is, said the youth, coming after you, if you will only wait.
|
|
|
|
Certainly we will, said Glaucon; and in a few minutes Polemarchus
|
|
appeared, and with him Adeimantus, Glaucon's brother, Niceratus the son
|
|
of Nicias, and several others who had been at the procession.
|
|
|
|
Polemarchus said to me: I perceive, Socrates, that you and your
|
|
companion are already on your way to the city.
|
|
|
|
You are not far wrong, I said.
|
|
|
|
But do you see, he rejoined, how many we are?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And are you stronger than all these? for if not, you will have to remain
|
|
where you are.
|
|
|
|
May there not be the alternative, I said, that we may persuade you to
|
|
let us go?
|
|
|
|
But can you persuade us, if we refuse to listen to you? he said.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, replied Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
Then we are not going to listen; of that you may be assured.
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus added: Has no one told you of the torch-race on horseback in
|
|
honour of the goddess which will take place in the evening?
|
|
|
|
With horses! I replied: That is a novelty. Will horsemen carry torches
|
|
and pass them one to another during the race?
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Polemarchus, and not only so, but a festival will be
|
|
celebrated at night, which you certainly ought to see. Let us rise soon
|
|
after supper and see this festival; there will be a gathering of young
|
|
men, and we will have a good talk. Stay then, and do not be perverse.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon said: I suppose, since you insist, that we must.
|
|
|
|
Very good, I replied.
|
|
|
|
Accordingly we went with Polemarchus to his house; and there we found
|
|
his brothers Lysias and Euthydemus, and with them Thrasymachus the
|
|
Chalcedonian, Charmantides the Paeanian, and Cleitophon the son of
|
|
Aristonymus. There too was Cephalus the father of Polemarchus, whom I
|
|
had not seen for a long time, and I thought him very much aged. He was
|
|
seated on a cushioned chair, and had a garland on his head, for he had
|
|
been sacrificing in the court; and there were some other chairs in the
|
|
room arranged in a semicircle, upon which we sat down by him. He saluted
|
|
me eagerly, and then he said:--
|
|
|
|
You don't come to see me, Socrates, as often as you ought: If I were
|
|
still able to go and see you I would not ask you to come to me. But
|
|
at my age I can hardly get to the city, and therefore you should come
|
|
oftener to the Piraeus. For let me tell you, that the more the pleasures
|
|
of the body fade away, the greater to me is the pleasure and charm
|
|
of conversation. Do not then deny my request, but make our house your
|
|
resort and keep company with these young men; we are old friends, and
|
|
you will be quite at home with us.
|
|
|
|
I replied: There is nothing which for my part I like better, Cephalus,
|
|
than conversing with aged men; for I regard them as travellers who
|
|
have gone a journey which I too may have to go, and of whom I ought to
|
|
enquire, whether the way is smooth and easy, or rugged and difficult.
|
|
And this is a question which I should like to ask of you who have
|
|
arrived at that time which the poets call the 'threshold of old age'--Is
|
|
life harder towards the end, or what report do you give of it?
|
|
|
|
I will tell you, Socrates, he said, what my own feeling is. Men of my
|
|
age flock together; we are birds of a feather, as the old proverb says;
|
|
and at our meetings the tale of my acquaintance commonly is--I cannot
|
|
eat, I cannot drink; the pleasures of youth and love are fled away:
|
|
there was a good time once, but now that is gone, and life is no longer
|
|
life. Some complain of the slights which are put upon them by relations,
|
|
and they will tell you sadly of how many evils their old age is the
|
|
cause. But to me, Socrates, these complainers seem to blame that which
|
|
is not really in fault. For if old age were the cause, I too being old,
|
|
and every other old man, would have felt as they do. But this is not
|
|
my own experience, nor that of others whom I have known. How well I
|
|
remember the aged poet Sophocles, when in answer to the question, How
|
|
does love suit with age, Sophocles,--are you still the man you were?
|
|
Peace, he replied; most gladly have I escaped the thing of which you
|
|
speak; I feel as if I had escaped from a mad and furious master. His
|
|
words have often occurred to my mind since, and they seem as good to
|
|
me now as at the time when he uttered them. For certainly old age has
|
|
a great sense of calm and freedom; when the passions relax their hold,
|
|
then, as Sophocles says, we are freed from the grasp not of one mad
|
|
master only, but of many. The truth is, Socrates, that these regrets,
|
|
and also the complaints about relations, are to be attributed to the
|
|
same cause, which is not old age, but men's characters and tempers; for
|
|
he who is of a calm and happy nature will hardly feel the pressure of
|
|
age, but to him who is of an opposite disposition youth and age are
|
|
equally a burden.
|
|
|
|
I listened in admiration, and wanting to draw him out, that he might go
|
|
on--Yes, Cephalus, I said: but I rather suspect that people in general
|
|
are not convinced by you when you speak thus; they think that old
|
|
age sits lightly upon you, not because of your happy disposition, but
|
|
because you are rich, and wealth is well known to be a great comforter.
|
|
|
|
You are right, he replied; they are not convinced: and there is
|
|
something in what they say; not, however, so much as they imagine. I
|
|
might answer them as Themistocles answered the Seriphian who was abusing
|
|
him and saying that he was famous, not for his own merits but because he
|
|
was an Athenian: 'If you had been a native of my country or I of yours,
|
|
neither of us would have been famous.' And to those who are not rich and
|
|
are impatient of old age, the same reply may be made; for to the good
|
|
poor man old age cannot be a light burden, nor can a bad rich man ever
|
|
have peace with himself.
|
|
|
|
May I ask, Cephalus, whether your fortune was for the most part
|
|
inherited or acquired by you?
|
|
|
|
Acquired! Socrates; do you want to know how much I acquired? In the art
|
|
of making money I have been midway between my father and grandfather:
|
|
for my grandfather, whose name I bear, doubled and trebled the value of
|
|
his patrimony, that which he inherited being much what I possess now;
|
|
but my father Lysanias reduced the property below what it is at present:
|
|
and I shall be satisfied if I leave to these my sons not less but a
|
|
little more than I received.
|
|
|
|
That was why I asked you the question, I replied, because I see that you
|
|
are indifferent about money, which is a characteristic rather of those
|
|
who have inherited their fortunes than of those who have acquired them;
|
|
the makers of fortunes have a second love of money as a creation of
|
|
their own, resembling the affection of authors for their own poems, or
|
|
of parents for their children, besides that natural love of it for the
|
|
sake of use and profit which is common to them and all men. And hence
|
|
they are very bad company, for they can talk about nothing but the
|
|
praises of wealth.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is very true, but may I ask another question?--What do you
|
|
consider to be the greatest blessing which you have reaped from your
|
|
wealth?
|
|
|
|
One, he said, of which I could not expect easily to convince others.
|
|
For let me tell you, Socrates, that when a man thinks himself to be near
|
|
death, fears and cares enter into his mind which he never had before;
|
|
the tales of a world below and the punishment which is exacted there
|
|
of deeds done here were once a laughing matter to him, but now he
|
|
is tormented with the thought that they may be true: either from the
|
|
weakness of age, or because he is now drawing nearer to that other
|
|
place, he has a clearer view of these things; suspicions and alarms
|
|
crowd thickly upon him, and he begins to reflect and consider what
|
|
wrongs he has done to others. And when he finds that the sum of his
|
|
transgressions is great he will many a time like a child start up in his
|
|
sleep for fear, and he is filled with dark forebodings. But to him who
|
|
is conscious of no sin, sweet hope, as Pindar charmingly says, is the
|
|
kind nurse of his age:
|
|
|
|
'Hope,' he says, 'cherishes the soul of him who lives in justice
|
|
and holiness, and is the nurse of his age and the companion of his
|
|
journey;--hope which is mightiest to sway the restless soul of man.'
|
|
|
|
How admirable are his words! And the great blessing of riches, I do not
|
|
say to every man, but to a good man, is, that he has had no occasion to
|
|
deceive or to defraud others, either intentionally or unintentionally;
|
|
and when he departs to the world below he is not in any apprehension
|
|
about offerings due to the gods or debts which he owes to men. Now to
|
|
this peace of mind the possession of wealth greatly contributes; and
|
|
therefore I say, that, setting one thing against another, of the many
|
|
advantages which wealth has to give, to a man of sense this is in my
|
|
opinion the greatest.
|
|
|
|
Well said, Cephalus, I replied; but as concerning justice, what is
|
|
it?--to speak the truth and to pay your debts--no more than this? And
|
|
even to this are there not exceptions? Suppose that a friend when in his
|
|
right mind has deposited arms with me and he asks for them when he is
|
|
not in his right mind, ought I to give them back to him? No one would
|
|
say that I ought or that I should be right in doing so, any more than
|
|
they would say that I ought always to speak the truth to one who is in
|
|
his condition.
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But then, I said, speaking the truth and paying your debts is not a
|
|
correct definition of justice.
|
|
|
|
Quite correct, Socrates, if Simonides is to be believed, said
|
|
Polemarchus interposing.
|
|
|
|
I fear, said Cephalus, that I must go now, for I have to look after the
|
|
sacrifices, and I hand over the argument to Polemarchus and the company.
|
|
|
|
Is not Polemarchus your heir? I said.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he answered, and went away laughing to the sacrifices.
|
|
|
|
Tell me then, O thou heir of the argument, what did Simonides say, and
|
|
according to you truly say, about justice?
|
|
|
|
He said that the repayment of a debt is just, and in saying so he
|
|
appears to me to be right.
|
|
|
|
I should be sorry to doubt the word of such a wise and inspired man, but
|
|
his meaning, though probably clear to you, is the reverse of clear to
|
|
me. For he certainly does not mean, as we were just now saying, that I
|
|
ought to return a deposit of arms or of anything else to one who asks
|
|
for it when he is not in his right senses; and yet a deposit cannot be
|
|
denied to be a debt.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then when the person who asks me is not in his right mind I am by no
|
|
means to make the return?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
When Simonides said that the repayment of a debt was justice, he did not
|
|
mean to include that case?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not; for he thinks that a friend ought always to do good to a
|
|
friend and never evil.
|
|
|
|
You mean that the return of a deposit of gold which is to the injury of
|
|
the receiver, if the two parties are friends, is not the repayment of a
|
|
debt,--that is what you would imagine him to say?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And are enemies also to receive what we owe to them?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said, they are to receive what we owe them, and an enemy,
|
|
as I take it, owes to an enemy that which is due or proper to him--that
|
|
is to say, evil.
|
|
|
|
Simonides, then, after the manner of poets, would seem to have spoken
|
|
darkly of the nature of justice; for he really meant to say that justice
|
|
is the giving to each man what is proper to him, and this he termed a
|
|
debt.
|
|
|
|
That must have been his meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
By heaven! I replied; and if we asked him what due or proper thing is
|
|
given by medicine, and to whom, what answer do you think that he would
|
|
make to us?
|
|
|
|
He would surely reply that medicine gives drugs and meat and drink to
|
|
human bodies.
|
|
|
|
And what due or proper thing is given by cookery, and to what?
|
|
|
|
Seasoning to food.
|
|
|
|
And what is that which justice gives, and to whom?
|
|
|
|
If, Socrates, we are to be guided at all by the analogy of the preceding
|
|
instances, then justice is the art which gives good to friends and evil
|
|
to enemies.
|
|
|
|
That is his meaning then?
|
|
|
|
I think so.
|
|
|
|
And who is best able to do good to his friends and evil to his enemies
|
|
in time of sickness?
|
|
|
|
The physician.
|
|
|
|
Or when they are on a voyage, amid the perils of the sea?
|
|
|
|
The pilot.
|
|
|
|
And in what sort of actions or with a view to what result is the just
|
|
man most able to do harm to his enemy and good to his friend?
|
|
|
|
In going to war against the one and in making alliances with the other.
|
|
|
|
But when a man is well, my dear Polemarchus, there is no need of a
|
|
physician?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
And he who is not on a voyage has no need of a pilot?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
Then in time of peace justice will be of no use?
|
|
|
|
I am very far from thinking so.
|
|
|
|
You think that justice may be of use in peace as well as in war?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Like husbandry for the acquisition of corn?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Or like shoemaking for the acquisition of shoes,--that is what you mean?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And what similar use or power of acquisition has justice in time of
|
|
peace?
|
|
|
|
In contracts, Socrates, justice is of use.
|
|
|
|
And by contracts you mean partnerships?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But is the just man or the skilful player a more useful and better
|
|
partner at a game of draughts?
|
|
|
|
The skilful player.
|
|
|
|
And in the laying of bricks and stones is the just man a more useful or
|
|
better partner than the builder?
|
|
|
|
Quite the reverse.
|
|
|
|
Then in what sort of partnership is the just man a better partner than
|
|
the harp-player, as in playing the harp the harp-player is certainly a
|
|
better partner than the just man?
|
|
|
|
In a money partnership.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Polemarchus, but surely not in the use of money; for you do not
|
|
want a just man to be your counsellor in the purchase or sale of a
|
|
horse; a man who is knowing about horses would be better for that, would
|
|
he not?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And when you want to buy a ship, the shipwright or the pilot would be
|
|
better?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then what is that joint use of silver or gold in which the just man is
|
|
to be preferred?
|
|
|
|
When you want a deposit to be kept safely.
|
|
|
|
You mean when money is not wanted, but allowed to lie?
|
|
|
|
Precisely.
|
|
|
|
That is to say, justice is useful when money is useless?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
And when you want to keep a pruning-hook safe, then justice is useful to
|
|
the individual and to the state; but when you want to use it, then the
|
|
art of the vine-dresser?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And when you want to keep a shield or a lyre, and not to use them, you
|
|
would say that justice is useful; but when you want to use them, then
|
|
the art of the soldier or of the musician?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And so of all other things;--justice is useful when they are useless,
|
|
and useless when they are useful?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
Then justice is not good for much. But let us consider this further
|
|
point: Is not he who can best strike a blow in a boxing match or in any
|
|
kind of fighting best able to ward off a blow?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And he who is most skilful in preventing or escaping from a disease is
|
|
best able to create one?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And he is the best guard of a camp who is best able to steal a march
|
|
upon the enemy?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then he who is a good keeper of anything is also a good thief?
|
|
|
|
That, I suppose, is to be inferred.
|
|
|
|
Then if the just man is good at keeping money, he is good at stealing
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
That is implied in the argument.
|
|
|
|
Then after all the just man has turned out to be a thief. And this is
|
|
a lesson which I suspect you must have learnt out of Homer; for he,
|
|
speaking of Autolycus, the maternal grandfather of Odysseus, who is a
|
|
favourite of his, affirms that
|
|
|
|
'He was excellent above all men in theft and perjury.'
|
|
|
|
And so, you and Homer and Simonides are agreed that justice is an art of
|
|
theft; to be practised however 'for the good of friends and for the harm
|
|
of enemies,'--that was what you were saying?
|
|
|
|
No, certainly not that, though I do not now know what I did say; but I
|
|
still stand by the latter words.
|
|
|
|
Well, there is another question: By friends and enemies do we mean those
|
|
who are so really, or only in seeming?
|
|
|
|
Surely, he said, a man may be expected to love those whom he thinks
|
|
good, and to hate those whom he thinks evil.
|
|
|
|
Yes, but do not persons often err about good and evil: many who are not
|
|
good seem to be so, and conversely?
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
Then to them the good will be enemies and the evil will be their
|
|
friends? True.
|
|
|
|
And in that case they will be right in doing good to the evil and evil
|
|
to the good?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
But the good are just and would not do an injustice?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then according to your argument it is just to injure those who do no
|
|
wrong?
|
|
|
|
Nay, Socrates; the doctrine is immoral.
|
|
|
|
Then I suppose that we ought to do good to the just and harm to the
|
|
unjust?
|
|
|
|
I like that better.
|
|
|
|
But see the consequence:--Many a man who is ignorant of human nature
|
|
has friends who are bad friends, and in that case he ought to do harm to
|
|
them; and he has good enemies whom he ought to benefit; but, if so, we
|
|
shall be saying the very opposite of that which we affirmed to be the
|
|
meaning of Simonides.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said: and I think that we had better correct an error
|
|
into which we seem to have fallen in the use of the words 'friend' and
|
|
'enemy.'
|
|
|
|
What was the error, Polemarchus? I asked.
|
|
|
|
We assumed that he is a friend who seems to be or who is thought good.
|
|
|
|
And how is the error to be corrected?
|
|
|
|
We should rather say that he is a friend who is, as well as seems, good;
|
|
and that he who seems only, and is not good, only seems to be and is not
|
|
a friend; and of an enemy the same may be said.
|
|
|
|
You would argue that the good are our friends and the bad our enemies?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And instead of saying simply as we did at first, that it is just to do
|
|
good to our friends and harm to our enemies, we should further say: It
|
|
is just to do good to our friends when they are good and harm to our
|
|
enemies when they are evil?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that appears to me to be the truth.
|
|
|
|
But ought the just to injure any one at all?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly he ought to injure those who are both wicked and his
|
|
enemies.
|
|
|
|
When horses are injured, are they improved or deteriorated?
|
|
|
|
The latter.
|
|
|
|
Deteriorated, that is to say, in the good qualities of horses, not of
|
|
dogs?
|
|
|
|
Yes, of horses.
|
|
|
|
And dogs are deteriorated in the good qualities of dogs, and not of
|
|
horses?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And will not men who are injured be deteriorated in that which is the
|
|
proper virtue of man?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And that human virtue is justice?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Then men who are injured are of necessity made unjust?
|
|
|
|
That is the result.
|
|
|
|
But can the musician by his art make men unmusical?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or the horseman by his art make them bad horsemen?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And can the just by justice make men unjust, or speaking generally, can
|
|
the good by virtue make them bad?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
Any more than heat can produce cold?
|
|
|
|
It cannot.
|
|
|
|
Or drought moisture?
|
|
|
|
Clearly not.
|
|
|
|
Nor can the good harm any one?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And the just is the good?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then to injure a friend or any one else is not the act of a just man,
|
|
but of the opposite, who is the unjust?
|
|
|
|
I think that what you say is quite true, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Then if a man says that justice consists in the repayment of debts, and
|
|
that good is the debt which a just man owes to his friends, and evil the
|
|
debt which he owes to his enemies,--to say this is not wise; for it is
|
|
not true, if, as has been clearly shown, the injuring of another can be
|
|
in no case just.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, said Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
Then you and I are prepared to take up arms against any one who
|
|
attributes such a saying to Simonides or Bias or Pittacus, or any other
|
|
wise man or seer?
|
|
|
|
I am quite ready to do battle at your side, he said.
|
|
|
|
Shall I tell you whose I believe the saying to be?
|
|
|
|
Whose?
|
|
|
|
I believe that Periander or Perdiccas or Xerxes or Ismenias the Theban,
|
|
or some other rich and mighty man, who had a great opinion of his own
|
|
power, was the first to say that justice is 'doing good to your friends
|
|
and harm to your enemies.'
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but if this definition of justice also breaks down, what
|
|
other can be offered?
|
|
|
|
Several times in the course of the discussion Thrasymachus had made an
|
|
attempt to get the argument into his own hands, and had been put down
|
|
by the rest of the company, who wanted to hear the end. But when
|
|
Polemarchus and I had done speaking and there was a pause, he could no
|
|
longer hold his peace; and, gathering himself up, he came at us like a
|
|
wild beast, seeking to devour us. We were quite panic-stricken at the
|
|
sight of him.
|
|
|
|
He roared out to the whole company: What folly, Socrates, has taken
|
|
possession of you all? And why, sillybillies, do you knock under to
|
|
one another? I say that if you want really to know what justice is,
|
|
you should not only ask but answer, and you should not seek honour to
|
|
yourself from the refutation of an opponent, but have your own answer;
|
|
for there is many a one who can ask and cannot answer. And now I will
|
|
not have you say that justice is duty or advantage or profit or gain
|
|
or interest, for this sort of nonsense will not do for me; I must have
|
|
clearness and accuracy.
|
|
|
|
I was panic-stricken at his words, and could not look at him without
|
|
trembling. Indeed I believe that if I had not fixed my eye upon him, I
|
|
should have been struck dumb: but when I saw his fury rising, I looked
|
|
at him first, and was therefore able to reply to him.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus, I said, with a quiver, don't be hard upon us. Polemarchus
|
|
and I may have been guilty of a little mistake in the argument, but I
|
|
can assure you that the error was not intentional. If we were seeking
|
|
for a piece of gold, you would not imagine that we were 'knocking under
|
|
to one another,' and so losing our chance of finding it. And why, when
|
|
we are seeking for justice, a thing more precious than many pieces of
|
|
gold, do you say that we are weakly yielding to one another and not
|
|
doing our utmost to get at the truth? Nay, my good friend, we are most
|
|
willing and anxious to do so, but the fact is that we cannot. And if so,
|
|
you people who know all things should pity us and not be angry with us.
|
|
|
|
How characteristic of Socrates! he replied, with a bitter laugh;--that's
|
|
your ironical style! Did I not foresee--have I not already told you,
|
|
that whatever he was asked he would refuse to answer, and try irony or
|
|
any other shuffle, in order that he might avoid answering?
|
|
|
|
You are a philosopher, Thrasymachus, I replied, and well know that if
|
|
you ask a person what numbers make up twelve, taking care to prohibit
|
|
him whom you ask from answering twice six, or three times four, or six
|
|
times two, or four times three, 'for this sort of nonsense will not do
|
|
for me,'--then obviously, if that is your way of putting the
|
|
question, no one can answer you. But suppose that he were to retort,
|
|
'Thrasymachus, what do you mean? If one of these numbers which you
|
|
interdict be the true answer to the question, am I falsely to say some
|
|
other number which is not the right one?--is that your meaning?'--How
|
|
would you answer him?
|
|
|
|
Just as if the two cases were at all alike! he said.
|
|
|
|
Why should they not be? I replied; and even if they are not, but only
|
|
appear to be so to the person who is asked, ought he not to say what he
|
|
thinks, whether you and I forbid him or not?
|
|
|
|
I presume then that you are going to make one of the interdicted
|
|
answers?
|
|
|
|
I dare say that I may, notwithstanding the danger, if upon reflection I
|
|
approve of any of them.
|
|
|
|
But what if I give you an answer about justice other and better, he
|
|
said, than any of these? What do you deserve to have done to you?
|
|
|
|
Done to me!--as becomes the ignorant, I must learn from the wise--that
|
|
is what I deserve to have done to me.
|
|
|
|
What, and no payment! a pleasant notion!
|
|
|
|
I will pay when I have the money, I replied.
|
|
|
|
But you have, Socrates, said Glaucon: and you, Thrasymachus, need be
|
|
under no anxiety about money, for we will all make a contribution for
|
|
Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, and then Socrates will do as he always does--refuse to
|
|
answer himself, but take and pull to pieces the answer of some one else.
|
|
|
|
Why, my good friend, I said, how can any one answer who knows, and says
|
|
that he knows, just nothing; and who, even if he has some faint notions
|
|
of his own, is told by a man of authority not to utter them? The
|
|
natural thing is, that the speaker should be some one like yourself
|
|
who professes to know and can tell what he knows. Will you then kindly
|
|
answer, for the edification of the company and of myself?
|
|
|
|
Glaucon and the rest of the company joined in my request, and
|
|
Thrasymachus, as any one might see, was in reality eager to speak;
|
|
for he thought that he had an excellent answer, and would distinguish
|
|
himself. But at first he affected to insist on my answering; at length
|
|
he consented to begin. Behold, he said, the wisdom of Socrates; he
|
|
refuses to teach himself, and goes about learning of others, to whom he
|
|
never even says Thank you.
|
|
|
|
That I learn of others, I replied, is quite true; but that I am
|
|
ungrateful I wholly deny. Money I have none, and therefore I pay in
|
|
praise, which is all I have; and how ready I am to praise any one who
|
|
appears to me to speak well you will very soon find out when you answer;
|
|
for I expect that you will answer well.
|
|
|
|
Listen, then, he said; I proclaim that justice is nothing else than
|
|
the interest of the stronger. And now why do you not praise me? But of
|
|
course you won't.
|
|
|
|
Let me first understand you, I replied. Justice, as you say, is the
|
|
interest of the stronger. What, Thrasymachus, is the meaning of this?
|
|
You cannot mean to say that because Polydamas, the pancratiast, is
|
|
stronger than we are, and finds the eating of beef conducive to his
|
|
bodily strength, that to eat beef is therefore equally for our good who
|
|
are weaker than he is, and right and just for us?
|
|
|
|
That's abominable of you, Socrates; you take the words in the sense
|
|
which is most damaging to the argument.
|
|
|
|
Not at all, my good sir, I said; I am trying to understand them; and I
|
|
wish that you would be a little clearer.
|
|
|
|
Well, he said, have you never heard that forms of government differ;
|
|
there are tyrannies, and there are democracies, and there are
|
|
aristocracies?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I know.
|
|
|
|
And the government is the ruling power in each state?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the different forms of government make laws democratical,
|
|
aristocratical, tyrannical, with a view to their several interests;
|
|
and these laws, which are made by them for their own interests, are the
|
|
justice which they deliver to their subjects, and him who transgresses
|
|
them they punish as a breaker of the law, and unjust. And that is what
|
|
I mean when I say that in all states there is the same principle of
|
|
justice, which is the interest of the government; and as the government
|
|
must be supposed to have power, the only reasonable conclusion is, that
|
|
everywhere there is one principle of justice, which is the interest of
|
|
the stronger.
|
|
|
|
Now I understand you, I said; and whether you are right or not I will
|
|
try to discover. But let me remark, that in defining justice you have
|
|
yourself used the word 'interest' which you forbade me to use. It is
|
|
true, however, that in your definition the words 'of the stronger' are
|
|
added.
|
|
|
|
A small addition, you must allow, he said.
|
|
|
|
Great or small, never mind about that: we must first enquire whether
|
|
what you are saying is the truth. Now we are both agreed that justice
|
|
is interest of some sort, but you go on to say 'of the stronger'; about
|
|
this addition I am not so sure, and must therefore consider further.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I will; and first tell me, Do you admit that it is just for subjects to
|
|
obey their rulers?
|
|
|
|
I do.
|
|
|
|
But are the rulers of states absolutely infallible, or are they
|
|
sometimes liable to err?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he replied, they are liable to err.
|
|
|
|
Then in making their laws they may sometimes make them rightly, and
|
|
sometimes not?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
When they make them rightly, they make them agreeably to their interest;
|
|
when they are mistaken, contrary to their interest; you admit that?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the laws which they make must be obeyed by their subjects,--and that
|
|
is what you call justice?
|
|
|
|
Doubtless.
|
|
|
|
Then justice, according to your argument, is not only obedience to the
|
|
interest of the stronger but the reverse?
|
|
|
|
What is that you are saying? he asked.
|
|
|
|
I am only repeating what you are saying, I believe. But let us consider:
|
|
Have we not admitted that the rulers may be mistaken about their own
|
|
interest in what they command, and also that to obey them is justice?
|
|
Has not that been admitted?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then you must also have acknowledged justice not to be for the interest
|
|
of the stronger, when the rulers unintentionally command things to be
|
|
done which are to their own injury. For if, as you say, justice is the
|
|
obedience which the subject renders to their commands, in that case, O
|
|
wisest of men, is there any escape from the conclusion that the weaker
|
|
are commanded to do, not what is for the interest, but what is for the
|
|
injury of the stronger?
|
|
|
|
Nothing can be clearer, Socrates, said Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Cleitophon, interposing, if you are allowed to be his witness.
|
|
|
|
But there is no need of any witness, said Polemarchus, for Thrasymachus
|
|
himself acknowledges that rulers may sometimes command what is not for
|
|
their own interest, and that for subjects to obey them is justice.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Polemarchus,--Thrasymachus said that for subjects to do what was
|
|
commanded by their rulers is just.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Cleitophon, but he also said that justice is the interest of the
|
|
stronger, and, while admitting both these propositions, he further
|
|
acknowledged that the stronger may command the weaker who are his
|
|
subjects to do what is not for his own interest; whence follows that
|
|
justice is the injury quite as much as the interest of the stronger.
|
|
|
|
But, said Cleitophon, he meant by the interest of the stronger what the
|
|
stronger thought to be his interest,--this was what the weaker had to
|
|
do; and this was affirmed by him to be justice.
|
|
|
|
Those were not his words, rejoined Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
Never mind, I replied, if he now says that they are, let us accept his
|
|
statement. Tell me, Thrasymachus, I said, did you mean by justice what
|
|
the stronger thought to be his interest, whether really so or not?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said. Do you suppose that I call him who is mistaken
|
|
the stronger at the time when he is mistaken?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, my impression was that you did so, when you admitted that
|
|
the ruler was not infallible but might be sometimes mistaken.
|
|
|
|
You argue like an informer, Socrates. Do you mean, for example, that he
|
|
who is mistaken about the sick is a physician in that he is mistaken?
|
|
or that he who errs in arithmetic or grammar is an arithmetician or
|
|
grammarian at the time when he is making the mistake, in respect of the
|
|
mistake? True, we say that the physician or arithmetician or grammarian
|
|
has made a mistake, but this is only a way of speaking; for the fact is
|
|
that neither the grammarian nor any other person of skill ever makes a
|
|
mistake in so far as he is what his name implies; they none of them
|
|
err unless their skill fails them, and then they cease to be skilled
|
|
artists. No artist or sage or ruler errs at the time when he is what
|
|
his name implies; though he is commonly said to err, and I adopted the
|
|
common mode of speaking. But to be perfectly accurate, since you are
|
|
such a lover of accuracy, we should say that the ruler, in so far as he
|
|
is a ruler, is unerring, and, being unerring, always commands that which
|
|
is for his own interest; and the subject is required to execute his
|
|
commands; and therefore, as I said at first and now repeat, justice is
|
|
the interest of the stronger.
|
|
|
|
Indeed, Thrasymachus, and do I really appear to you to argue like an
|
|
informer?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And do you suppose that I ask these questions with any design of
|
|
injuring you in the argument?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he replied, 'suppose' is not the word--I know it; but you will be
|
|
found out, and by sheer force of argument you will never prevail.
|
|
|
|
I shall not make the attempt, my dear man; but to avoid any
|
|
misunderstanding occurring between us in future, let me ask, in what
|
|
sense do you speak of a ruler or stronger whose interest, as you were
|
|
saying, he being the superior, it is just that the inferior should
|
|
execute--is he a ruler in the popular or in the strict sense of the
|
|
term?
|
|
|
|
In the strictest of all senses, he said. And now cheat and play the
|
|
informer if you can; I ask no quarter at your hands. But you never will
|
|
be able, never.
|
|
|
|
And do you imagine, I said, that I am such a madman as to try and cheat,
|
|
Thrasymachus? I might as well shave a lion.
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, you made the attempt a minute ago, and you failed.
|
|
|
|
Enough, I said, of these civilities. It will be better that I should ask
|
|
you a question: Is the physician, taken in that strict sense of which
|
|
you are speaking, a healer of the sick or a maker of money? And remember
|
|
that I am now speaking of the true physician.
|
|
|
|
A healer of the sick, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And the pilot--that is to say, the true pilot--is he a captain of
|
|
sailors or a mere sailor?
|
|
|
|
A captain of sailors.
|
|
|
|
The circumstance that he sails in the ship is not to be taken into
|
|
account; neither is he to be called a sailor; the name pilot by which he
|
|
is distinguished has nothing to do with sailing, but is significant of
|
|
his skill and of his authority over the sailors.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Now, I said, every art has an interest?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
For which the art has to consider and provide?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the aim of art.
|
|
|
|
And the interest of any art is the perfection of it--this and nothing
|
|
else?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean what I may illustrate negatively by the example of the body.
|
|
Suppose you were to ask me whether the body is self-sufficing or has
|
|
wants, I should reply: Certainly the body has wants; for the body may
|
|
be ill and require to be cured, and has therefore interests to which
|
|
the art of medicine ministers; and this is the origin and intention of
|
|
medicine, as you will acknowledge. Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But is the art of medicine or any other art faulty or deficient in any
|
|
quality in the same way that the eye may be deficient in sight or the
|
|
ear fail of hearing, and therefore requires another art to provide
|
|
for the interests of seeing and hearing--has art in itself, I say, any
|
|
similar liability to fault or defect, and does every art require another
|
|
supplementary art to provide for its interests, and that another and
|
|
another without end? Or have the arts to look only after their
|
|
own interests? Or have they no need either of themselves or of
|
|
another?--having no faults or defects, they have no need to correct
|
|
them, either by the exercise of their own art or of any other; they have
|
|
only to consider the interest of their subject-matter. For every art
|
|
remains pure and faultless while remaining true--that is to say, while
|
|
perfect and unimpaired. Take the words in your precise sense, and tell
|
|
me whether I am not right.
|
|
|
|
Yes, clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then medicine does not consider the interest of medicine, but the
|
|
interest of the body?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Nor does the art of horsemanship consider the interests of the art of
|
|
horsemanship, but the interests of the horse; neither do any other arts
|
|
care for themselves, for they have no needs; they care only for that
|
|
which is the subject of their art?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
But surely, Thrasymachus, the arts are the superiors and rulers of their
|
|
own subjects?
|
|
|
|
To this he assented with a good deal of reluctance.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, no science or art considers or enjoins the interest of the
|
|
stronger or superior, but only the interest of the subject and weaker?
|
|
|
|
He made an attempt to contest this proposition also, but finally
|
|
acquiesced.
|
|
|
|
Then, I continued, no physician, in so far as he is a physician,
|
|
considers his own good in what he prescribes, but the good of his
|
|
patient; for the true physician is also a ruler having the human body as
|
|
a subject, and is not a mere money-maker; that has been admitted?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the pilot likewise, in the strict sense of the term, is a ruler of
|
|
sailors and not a mere sailor?
|
|
|
|
That has been admitted.
|
|
|
|
And such a pilot and ruler will provide and prescribe for the interest
|
|
of the sailor who is under him, and not for his own or the ruler's
|
|
interest?
|
|
|
|
He gave a reluctant 'Yes.'
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, Thrasymachus, there is no one in any rule who, in so far
|
|
as he is a ruler, considers or enjoins what is for his own interest, but
|
|
always what is for the interest of his subject or suitable to his art;
|
|
to that he looks, and that alone he considers in everything which he
|
|
says and does.
|
|
|
|
When we had got to this point in the argument, and every one saw that
|
|
the definition of justice had been completely upset, Thrasymachus,
|
|
instead of replying to me, said: Tell me, Socrates, have you got a
|
|
nurse?
|
|
|
|
Why do you ask such a question, I said, when you ought rather to be
|
|
answering?
|
|
|
|
Because she leaves you to snivel, and never wipes your nose: she has not
|
|
even taught you to know the shepherd from the sheep.
|
|
|
|
What makes you say that? I replied.
|
|
|
|
Because you fancy that the shepherd or neatherd fattens or tends the
|
|
sheep or oxen with a view to their own good and not to the good of
|
|
himself or his master; and you further imagine that the rulers of
|
|
states, if they are true rulers, never think of their subjects as sheep,
|
|
and that they are not studying their own advantage day and night. Oh,
|
|
no; and so entirely astray are you in your ideas about the just and
|
|
unjust as not even to know that justice and the just are in reality
|
|
another's good; that is to say, the interest of the ruler and stronger,
|
|
and the loss of the subject and servant; and injustice the opposite; for
|
|
the unjust is lord over the truly simple and just: he is the stronger,
|
|
and his subjects do what is for his interest, and minister to his
|
|
happiness, which is very far from being their own. Consider further,
|
|
most foolish Socrates, that the just is always a loser in comparison
|
|
with the unjust. First of all, in private contracts: wherever the unjust
|
|
is the partner of the just you will find that, when the partnership is
|
|
dissolved, the unjust man has always more and the just less. Secondly,
|
|
in their dealings with the State: when there is an income-tax, the just
|
|
man will pay more and the unjust less on the same amount of income;
|
|
and when there is anything to be received the one gains nothing and the
|
|
other much. Observe also what happens when they take an office; there is
|
|
the just man neglecting his affairs and perhaps suffering other losses,
|
|
and getting nothing out of the public, because he is just; moreover he
|
|
is hated by his friends and acquaintance for refusing to serve them in
|
|
unlawful ways. But all this is reversed in the case of the unjust man.
|
|
I am speaking, as before, of injustice on a large scale in which the
|
|
advantage of the unjust is most apparent; and my meaning will be most
|
|
clearly seen if we turn to that highest form of injustice in which the
|
|
criminal is the happiest of men, and the sufferers or those who refuse
|
|
to do injustice are the most miserable--that is to say tyranny, which by
|
|
fraud and force takes away the property of others, not little by little
|
|
but wholesale; comprehending in one, things sacred as well as profane,
|
|
private and public; for which acts of wrong, if he were detected
|
|
perpetrating any one of them singly, he would be punished and incur
|
|
great disgrace--they who do such wrong in particular cases are called
|
|
robbers of temples, and man-stealers and burglars and swindlers and
|
|
thieves. But when a man besides taking away the money of the citizens
|
|
has made slaves of them, then, instead of these names of reproach, he is
|
|
termed happy and blessed, not only by the citizens but by all who
|
|
hear of his having achieved the consummation of injustice. For mankind
|
|
censure injustice, fearing that they may be the victims of it and not
|
|
because they shrink from committing it. And thus, as I have shown,
|
|
Socrates, injustice, when on a sufficient scale, has more strength and
|
|
freedom and mastery than justice; and, as I said at first, justice is
|
|
the interest of the stronger, whereas injustice is a man's own profit
|
|
and interest.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus, when he had thus spoken, having, like a bath-man, deluged
|
|
our ears with his words, had a mind to go away. But the company
|
|
would not let him; they insisted that he should remain and defend his
|
|
position; and I myself added my own humble request that he would not
|
|
leave us. Thrasymachus, I said to him, excellent man, how suggestive
|
|
are your remarks! And are you going to run away before you have fairly
|
|
taught or learned whether they are true or not? Is the attempt to
|
|
determine the way of man's life so small a matter in your eyes--to
|
|
determine how life may be passed by each one of us to the greatest
|
|
advantage?
|
|
|
|
And do I differ from you, he said, as to the importance of the enquiry?
|
|
|
|
You appear rather, I replied, to have no care or thought about us,
|
|
Thrasymachus--whether we live better or worse from not knowing what you
|
|
say you know, is to you a matter of indifference. Prithee, friend,
|
|
do not keep your knowledge to yourself; we are a large party; and any
|
|
benefit which you confer upon us will be amply rewarded. For my own
|
|
part I openly declare that I am not convinced, and that I do not believe
|
|
injustice to be more gainful than justice, even if uncontrolled and
|
|
allowed to have free play. For, granting that there may be an unjust
|
|
man who is able to commit injustice either by fraud or force, still this
|
|
does not convince me of the superior advantage of injustice, and there
|
|
may be others who are in the same predicament with myself. Perhaps we
|
|
may be wrong; if so, you in your wisdom should convince us that we are
|
|
mistaken in preferring justice to injustice.
|
|
|
|
And how am I to convince you, he said, if you are not already convinced
|
|
by what I have just said; what more can I do for you? Would you have me
|
|
put the proof bodily into your souls?
|
|
|
|
Heaven forbid! I said; I would only ask you to be consistent; or, if you
|
|
change, change openly and let there be no deception. For I must remark,
|
|
Thrasymachus, if you will recall what was previously said, that although
|
|
you began by defining the true physician in an exact sense, you did not
|
|
observe a like exactness when speaking of the shepherd; you thought that
|
|
the shepherd as a shepherd tends the sheep not with a view to their own
|
|
good, but like a mere diner or banquetter with a view to the pleasures
|
|
of the table; or, again, as a trader for sale in the market, and not as
|
|
a shepherd. Yet surely the art of the shepherd is concerned only with
|
|
the good of his subjects; he has only to provide the best for them,
|
|
since the perfection of the art is already ensured whenever all the
|
|
requirements of it are satisfied. And that was what I was saying just
|
|
now about the ruler. I conceived that the art of the ruler, considered
|
|
as ruler, whether in a state or in private life, could only regard the
|
|
good of his flock or subjects; whereas you seem to think that the rulers
|
|
in states, that is to say, the true rulers, like being in authority.
|
|
|
|
Think! Nay, I am sure of it.
|
|
|
|
Then why in the case of lesser offices do men never take them willingly
|
|
without payment, unless under the idea that they govern for the
|
|
advantage not of themselves but of others? Let me ask you a question:
|
|
Are not the several arts different, by reason of their each having a
|
|
separate function? And, my dear illustrious friend, do say what you
|
|
think, that we may make a little progress.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the difference, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And each art gives us a particular good and not merely a general
|
|
one--medicine, for example, gives us health; navigation, safety at sea,
|
|
and so on?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the art of payment has the special function of giving pay: but we do
|
|
not confuse this with other arts, any more than the art of the pilot is
|
|
to be confused with the art of medicine, because the health of the pilot
|
|
may be improved by a sea voyage. You would not be inclined to say, would
|
|
you, that navigation is the art of medicine, at least if we are to adopt
|
|
your exact use of language?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or because a man is in good health when he receives pay you would not
|
|
say that the art of payment is medicine?
|
|
|
|
I should not.
|
|
|
|
Nor would you say that medicine is the art of receiving pay because a
|
|
man takes fees when he is engaged in healing?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And we have admitted, I said, that the good of each art is specially
|
|
confined to the art?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then, if there be any good which all artists have in common, that is to
|
|
be attributed to something of which they all have the common use?
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And when the artist is benefited by receiving pay the advantage is
|
|
gained by an additional use of the art of pay, which is not the art
|
|
professed by him?
|
|
|
|
He gave a reluctant assent to this.
|
|
|
|
Then the pay is not derived by the several artists from their respective
|
|
arts. But the truth is, that while the art of medicine gives health, and
|
|
the art of the builder builds a house, another art attends them which
|
|
is the art of pay. The various arts may be doing their own business and
|
|
benefiting that over which they preside, but would the artist receive
|
|
any benefit from his art unless he were paid as well?
|
|
|
|
I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
But does he therefore confer no benefit when he works for nothing?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he confers a benefit.
|
|
|
|
Then now, Thrasymachus, there is no longer any doubt that neither arts
|
|
nor governments provide for their own interests; but, as we were before
|
|
saying, they rule and provide for the interests of their subjects who
|
|
are the weaker and not the stronger--to their good they attend and
|
|
not to the good of the superior. And this is the reason, my dear
|
|
Thrasymachus, why, as I was just now saying, no one is willing to
|
|
govern; because no one likes to take in hand the reformation of evils
|
|
which are not his concern without remuneration. For, in the execution of
|
|
his work, and in giving his orders to another, the true artist does not
|
|
regard his own interest, but always that of his subjects; and therefore
|
|
in order that rulers may be willing to rule, they must be paid in one of
|
|
three modes of payment, money, or honour, or a penalty for refusing.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean, Socrates? said Glaucon. The first two modes of payment
|
|
are intelligible enough, but what the penalty is I do not understand, or
|
|
how a penalty can be a payment.
|
|
|
|
You mean that you do not understand the nature of this payment which to
|
|
the best men is the great inducement to rule? Of course you know that
|
|
ambition and avarice are held to be, as indeed they are, a disgrace?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And for this reason, I said, money and honour have no attraction for
|
|
them; good men do not wish to be openly demanding payment for governing
|
|
and so to get the name of hirelings, nor by secretly helping themselves
|
|
out of the public revenues to get the name of thieves. And not being
|
|
ambitious they do not care about honour. Wherefore necessity must be
|
|
laid upon them, and they must be induced to serve from the fear of
|
|
punishment. And this, as I imagine, is the reason why the forwardness
|
|
to take office, instead of waiting to be compelled, has been deemed
|
|
dishonourable. Now the worst part of the punishment is that he who
|
|
refuses to rule is liable to be ruled by one who is worse than himself.
|
|
And the fear of this, as I conceive, induces the good to take office,
|
|
not because they would, but because they cannot help--not under the idea
|
|
that they are going to have any benefit or enjoyment themselves, but as
|
|
a necessity, and because they are not able to commit the task of ruling
|
|
to any one who is better than themselves, or indeed as good. For there
|
|
is reason to think that if a city were composed entirely of good men,
|
|
then to avoid office would be as much an object of contention as to
|
|
obtain office is at present; then we should have plain proof that the
|
|
true ruler is not meant by nature to regard his own interest, but that
|
|
of his subjects; and every one who knew this would choose rather to
|
|
receive a benefit from another than to have the trouble of conferring
|
|
one. So far am I from agreeing with Thrasymachus that justice is the
|
|
interest of the stronger. This latter question need not be further
|
|
discussed at present; but when Thrasymachus says that the life of the
|
|
unjust is more advantageous than that of the just, his new statement
|
|
appears to me to be of a far more serious character. Which of us has
|
|
spoken truly? And which sort of life, Glaucon, do you prefer?
|
|
|
|
I for my part deem the life of the just to be the more advantageous, he
|
|
answered.
|
|
|
|
Did you hear all the advantages of the unjust which Thrasymachus was
|
|
rehearsing?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I heard him, he replied, but he has not convinced me.
|
|
|
|
Then shall we try to find some way of convincing him, if we can, that he
|
|
is saying what is not true?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
If, I said, he makes a set speech and we make another recounting all the
|
|
advantages of being just, and he answers and we rejoin, there must be a
|
|
numbering and measuring of the goods which are claimed on either side,
|
|
and in the end we shall want judges to decide; but if we proceed in our
|
|
enquiry as we lately did, by making admissions to one another, we shall
|
|
unite the offices of judge and advocate in our own persons.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
And which method do I understand you to prefer? I said.
|
|
|
|
That which you propose.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, Thrasymachus, I said, suppose you begin at the beginning and
|
|
answer me. You say that perfect injustice is more gainful than perfect
|
|
justice?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is what I say, and I have given you my reasons.
|
|
|
|
And what is your view about them? Would you call one of them virtue and
|
|
the other vice?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
I suppose that you would call justice virtue and injustice vice?
|
|
|
|
What a charming notion! So likely too, seeing that I affirm injustice to
|
|
be profitable and justice not.
|
|
|
|
What else then would you say?
|
|
|
|
The opposite, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And would you call justice vice?
|
|
|
|
No, I would rather say sublime simplicity.
|
|
|
|
Then would you call injustice malignity?
|
|
|
|
No; I would rather say discretion.
|
|
|
|
And do the unjust appear to you to be wise and good?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; at any rate those of them who are able to be perfectly
|
|
unjust, and who have the power of subduing states and nations; but
|
|
perhaps you imagine me to be talking of cutpurses. Even this profession
|
|
if undetected has advantages, though they are not to be compared with
|
|
those of which I was just now speaking.
|
|
|
|
I do not think that I misapprehend your meaning, Thrasymachus, I
|
|
replied; but still I cannot hear without amazement that you class
|
|
injustice with wisdom and virtue, and justice with the opposite.
|
|
|
|
Certainly I do so class them.
|
|
|
|
Now, I said, you are on more substantial and almost unanswerable ground;
|
|
for if the injustice which you were maintaining to be profitable had
|
|
been admitted by you as by others to be vice and deformity, an answer
|
|
might have been given to you on received principles; but now I perceive
|
|
that you will call injustice honourable and strong, and to the unjust
|
|
you will attribute all the qualities which were attributed by us before
|
|
to the just, seeing that you do not hesitate to rank injustice with
|
|
wisdom and virtue.
|
|
|
|
You have guessed most infallibly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then I certainly ought not to shrink from going through with the
|
|
argument so long as I have reason to think that you, Thrasymachus, are
|
|
speaking your real mind; for I do believe that you are now in earnest
|
|
and are not amusing yourself at our expense.
|
|
|
|
I may be in earnest or not, but what is that to you?--to refute the
|
|
argument is your business.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said; that is what I have to do: But will you be so good
|
|
as answer yet one more question? Does the just man try to gain any
|
|
advantage over the just?
|
|
|
|
Far otherwise; if he did he would not be the simple amusing creature
|
|
which he is.
|
|
|
|
And would he try to go beyond just action?
|
|
|
|
He would not.
|
|
|
|
And how would he regard the attempt to gain an advantage over the
|
|
unjust; would that be considered by him as just or unjust?
|
|
|
|
He would think it just, and would try to gain the advantage; but he
|
|
would not be able.
|
|
|
|
Whether he would or would not be able, I said, is not to the point. My
|
|
question is only whether the just man, while refusing to have more than
|
|
another just man, would wish and claim to have more than the unjust?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he would.
|
|
|
|
And what of the unjust--does he claim to have more than the just man and
|
|
to do more than is just?
|
|
|
|
Of course, he said, for he claims to have more than all men.
|
|
|
|
And the unjust man will strive and struggle to obtain more than the
|
|
unjust man or action, in order that he may have more than all?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
We may put the matter thus, I said--the just does not desire more than
|
|
his like but more than his unlike, whereas the unjust desires more than
|
|
both his like and his unlike?
|
|
|
|
Nothing, he said, can be better than that statement.
|
|
|
|
And the unjust is good and wise, and the just is neither?
|
|
|
|
Good again, he said.
|
|
|
|
And is not the unjust like the wise and good and the just unlike them?
|
|
|
|
Of course, he said, he who is of a certain nature, is like those who are
|
|
of a certain nature; he who is not, not.
|
|
|
|
Each of them, I said, is such as his like is?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Very good, Thrasymachus, I said; and now to take the case of the arts:
|
|
you would admit that one man is a musician and another not a musician?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And which is wise and which is foolish?
|
|
|
|
Clearly the musician is wise, and he who is not a musician is foolish.
|
|
|
|
And he is good in as far as he is wise, and bad in as far as he is
|
|
foolish?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you would say the same sort of thing of the physician?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And do you think, my excellent friend, that a musician when he adjusts
|
|
the lyre would desire or claim to exceed or go beyond a musician in the
|
|
tightening and loosening the strings?
|
|
|
|
I do not think that he would.
|
|
|
|
But he would claim to exceed the non-musician?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And what would you say of the physician? In prescribing meats and drinks
|
|
would he wish to go beyond another physician or beyond the practice of
|
|
medicine?
|
|
|
|
He would not.
|
|
|
|
But he would wish to go beyond the non-physician?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And about knowledge and ignorance in general; see whether you think that
|
|
any man who has knowledge ever would wish to have the choice of saying
|
|
or doing more than another man who has knowledge. Would he not rather
|
|
say or do the same as his like in the same case?
|
|
|
|
That, I suppose, can hardly be denied.
|
|
|
|
And what of the ignorant? would he not desire to have more than either
|
|
the knowing or the ignorant?
|
|
|
|
I dare say.
|
|
|
|
And the knowing is wise?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the wise is good?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then the wise and good will not desire to gain more than his like, but
|
|
more than his unlike and opposite?
|
|
|
|
I suppose so.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the bad and ignorant will desire to gain more than both?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But did we not say, Thrasymachus, that the unjust goes beyond both his
|
|
like and unlike? Were not these your words?
|
|
|
|
They were.
|
|
|
|
And you also said that the just will not go beyond his like but his
|
|
unlike?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then the just is like the wise and good, and the unjust like the evil
|
|
and ignorant?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
And each of them is such as his like is?
|
|
|
|
That was admitted.
|
|
|
|
Then the just has turned out to be wise and good and the unjust evil and
|
|
ignorant.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus made all these admissions, not fluently, as I repeat
|
|
them, but with extreme reluctance; it was a hot summer's day, and the
|
|
perspiration poured from him in torrents; and then I saw what I had
|
|
never seen before, Thrasymachus blushing. As we were now agreed that
|
|
justice was virtue and wisdom, and injustice vice and ignorance, I
|
|
proceeded to another point:
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, Thrasymachus, that matter is now settled; but were we not
|
|
also saying that injustice had strength; do you remember?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember, he said, but do not suppose that I approve of what you
|
|
are saying or have no answer; if however I were to answer, you would be
|
|
quite certain to accuse me of haranguing; therefore either permit me to
|
|
have my say out, or if you would rather ask, do so, and I will answer
|
|
'Very good,' as they say to story-telling old women, and will nod 'Yes'
|
|
and 'No.'
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, I said, if contrary to your real opinion.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I will, to please you, since you will not let me speak.
|
|
What else would you have?
|
|
|
|
Nothing in the world, I said; and if you are so disposed I will ask and
|
|
you shall answer.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
Then I will repeat the question which I asked before, in order that
|
|
our examination of the relative nature of justice and injustice may be
|
|
carried on regularly. A statement was made that injustice is stronger
|
|
and more powerful than justice, but now justice, having been identified
|
|
with wisdom and virtue, is easily shown to be stronger than injustice,
|
|
if injustice is ignorance; this can no longer be questioned by any one.
|
|
But I want to view the matter, Thrasymachus, in a different way: You
|
|
would not deny that a state may be unjust and may be unjustly attempting
|
|
to enslave other states, or may have already enslaved them, and may be
|
|
holding many of them in subjection?
|
|
|
|
True, he replied; and I will add that the best and most perfectly unjust
|
|
state will be most likely to do so.
|
|
|
|
I know, I said, that such was your position; but what I would further
|
|
consider is, whether this power which is possessed by the superior state
|
|
can exist or be exercised without justice or only with justice.
|
|
|
|
If you are right in your view, and justice is wisdom, then only with
|
|
justice; but if I am right, then without justice.
|
|
|
|
I am delighted, Thrasymachus, to see you not only nodding assent and
|
|
dissent, but making answers which are quite excellent.
|
|
|
|
That is out of civility to you, he replied.
|
|
|
|
You are very kind, I said; and would you have the goodness also to
|
|
inform me, whether you think that a state, or an army, or a band of
|
|
robbers and thieves, or any other gang of evil-doers could act at all if
|
|
they injured one another?
|
|
|
|
No indeed, he said, they could not.
|
|
|
|
But if they abstained from injuring one another, then they might act
|
|
together better?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And this is because injustice creates divisions and hatreds and
|
|
fighting, and justice imparts harmony and friendship; is not that true,
|
|
Thrasymachus?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said, because I do not wish to quarrel with you.
|
|
|
|
How good of you, I said; but I should like to know also whether
|
|
injustice, having this tendency to arouse hatred, wherever existing,
|
|
among slaves or among freemen, will not make them hate one another and
|
|
set them at variance and render them incapable of common action?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And even if injustice be found in two only, will they not quarrel and
|
|
fight, and become enemies to one another and to the just?
|
|
|
|
They will.
|
|
|
|
And suppose injustice abiding in a single person, would your wisdom say
|
|
that she loses or that she retains her natural power?
|
|
|
|
Let us assume that she retains her power.
|
|
|
|
Yet is not the power which injustice exercises of such a nature that
|
|
wherever she takes up her abode, whether in a city, in an army, in a
|
|
family, or in any other body, that body is, to begin with, rendered
|
|
incapable of united action by reason of sedition and distraction; and
|
|
does it not become its own enemy and at variance with all that opposes
|
|
it, and with the just? Is not this the case?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is not injustice equally fatal when existing in a single person; in
|
|
the first place rendering him incapable of action because he is not
|
|
at unity with himself, and in the second place making him an enemy to
|
|
himself and the just? Is not that true, Thrasymachus?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And O my friend, I said, surely the gods are just?
|
|
|
|
Granted that they are.
|
|
|
|
But if so, the unjust will be the enemy of the gods, and the just will
|
|
be their friend?
|
|
|
|
Feast away in triumph, and take your fill of the argument; I will not
|
|
oppose you, lest I should displease the company.
|
|
|
|
Well then, proceed with your answers, and let me have the remainder of
|
|
my repast. For we have already shown that the just are clearly wiser and
|
|
better and abler than the unjust, and that the unjust are incapable of
|
|
common action; nay more, that to speak as we did of men who are evil
|
|
acting at any time vigorously together, is not strictly true, for
|
|
if they had been perfectly evil, they would have laid hands upon one
|
|
another; but it is evident that there must have been some remnant of
|
|
justice in them, which enabled them to combine; if there had not been
|
|
they would have injured one another as well as their victims; they
|
|
were but half-villains in their enterprises; for had they been whole
|
|
villains, and utterly unjust, they would have been utterly incapable of
|
|
action. That, as I believe, is the truth of the matter, and not what you
|
|
said at first. But whether the just have a better and happier life than
|
|
the unjust is a further question which we also proposed to consider. I
|
|
think that they have, and for the reasons which I have given; but still
|
|
I should like to examine further, for no light matter is at stake,
|
|
nothing less than the rule of human life.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I will proceed by asking a question: Would you not say that a horse has
|
|
some end?
|
|
|
|
I should.
|
|
|
|
And the end or use of a horse or of anything would be that which could
|
|
not be accomplished, or not so well accomplished, by any other thing?
|
|
|
|
I do not understand, he said.
|
|
|
|
Let me explain: Can you see, except with the eye?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or hear, except with the ear?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
These then may be truly said to be the ends of these organs?
|
|
|
|
They may.
|
|
|
|
But you can cut off a vine-branch with a dagger or with a chisel, and in
|
|
many other ways?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And yet not so well as with a pruning-hook made for the purpose?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
May we not say that this is the end of a pruning-hook?
|
|
|
|
We may.
|
|
|
|
Then now I think you will have no difficulty in understanding my meaning
|
|
when I asked the question whether the end of anything would be that
|
|
which could not be accomplished, or not so well accomplished, by any
|
|
other thing?
|
|
|
|
I understand your meaning, he said, and assent.
|
|
|
|
And that to which an end is appointed has also an excellence? Need I ask
|
|
again whether the eye has an end?
|
|
|
|
It has.
|
|
|
|
And has not the eye an excellence?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the ear has an end and an excellence also?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same is true of all other things; they have each of them an end
|
|
and a special excellence?
|
|
|
|
That is so.
|
|
|
|
Well, and can the eyes fulfil their end if they are wanting in their own
|
|
proper excellence and have a defect instead?
|
|
|
|
How can they, he said, if they are blind and cannot see?
|
|
|
|
You mean to say, if they have lost their proper excellence, which is
|
|
sight; but I have not arrived at that point yet. I would rather ask
|
|
the question more generally, and only enquire whether the things which
|
|
fulfil their ends fulfil them by their own proper excellence, and fail
|
|
of fulfilling them by their own defect?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
I might say the same of the ears; when deprived of their own proper
|
|
excellence they cannot fulfil their end?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same observation will apply to all other things?
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Well; and has not the soul an end which nothing else can fulfil? for
|
|
example, to superintend and command and deliberate and the like. Are not
|
|
these functions proper to the soul, and can they rightly be assigned to
|
|
any other?
|
|
|
|
To no other.
|
|
|
|
And is not life to be reckoned among the ends of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And has not the soul an excellence also?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And can she or can she not fulfil her own ends when deprived of that
|
|
excellence?
|
|
|
|
She cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then an evil soul must necessarily be an evil ruler and superintendent,
|
|
and the good soul a good ruler?
|
|
|
|
Yes, necessarily.
|
|
|
|
And we have admitted that justice is the excellence of the soul, and
|
|
injustice the defect of the soul?
|
|
|
|
That has been admitted.
|
|
|
|
Then the just soul and the just man will live well, and the unjust man
|
|
will live ill?
|
|
|
|
That is what your argument proves.
|
|
|
|
And he who lives well is blessed and happy, and he who lives ill the
|
|
reverse of happy?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then the just is happy, and the unjust miserable?
|
|
|
|
So be it.
|
|
|
|
But happiness and not misery is profitable.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
Then, my blessed Thrasymachus, injustice can never be more profitable
|
|
than justice.
|
|
|
|
Let this, Socrates, he said, be your entertainment at the Bendidea.
|
|
|
|
For which I am indebted to you, I said, now that you have grown gentle
|
|
towards me and have left off scolding. Nevertheless, I have not been
|
|
well entertained; but that was my own fault and not yours. As an epicure
|
|
snatches a taste of every dish which is successively brought to table,
|
|
he not having allowed himself time to enjoy the one before, so have I
|
|
gone from one subject to another without having discovered what I sought
|
|
at first, the nature of justice. I left that enquiry and turned away
|
|
to consider whether justice is virtue and wisdom or evil and folly; and
|
|
when there arose a further question about the comparative advantages of
|
|
justice and injustice, I could not refrain from passing on to that. And
|
|
the result of the whole discussion has been that I know nothing at all.
|
|
For I know not what justice is, and therefore I am not likely to know
|
|
whether it is or is not a virtue, nor can I say whether the just man is
|
|
happy or unhappy.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK II.
|
|
|
|
With these words I was thinking that I had made an end of the
|
|
discussion; but the end, in truth, proved to be only a beginning. For
|
|
Glaucon, who is always the most pugnacious of men, was dissatisfied at
|
|
Thrasymachus' retirement; he wanted to have the battle out. So he said
|
|
to me: Socrates, do you wish really to persuade us, or only to seem to
|
|
have persuaded us, that to be just is always better than to be unjust?
|
|
|
|
I should wish really to persuade you, I replied, if I could.
|
|
|
|
Then you certainly have not succeeded. Let me ask you now:--How would
|
|
you arrange goods--are there not some which we welcome for their
|
|
own sakes, and independently of their consequences, as, for example,
|
|
harmless pleasures and enjoyments, which delight us at the time,
|
|
although nothing follows from them?
|
|
|
|
I agree in thinking that there is such a class, I replied.
|
|
|
|
Is there not also a second class of goods, such as knowledge, sight,
|
|
health, which are desirable not only in themselves, but also for their
|
|
results?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, I said.
|
|
|
|
And would you not recognize a third class, such as gymnastic, and the
|
|
care of the sick, and the physician's art; also the various ways of
|
|
money-making--these do us good but we regard them as disagreeable; and
|
|
no one would choose them for their own sakes, but only for the sake of
|
|
some reward or result which flows from them?
|
|
|
|
There is, I said, this third class also. But why do you ask?
|
|
|
|
Because I want to know in which of the three classes you would place
|
|
justice?
|
|
|
|
In the highest class, I replied,--among those goods which he who would
|
|
be happy desires both for their own sake and for the sake of their
|
|
results.
|
|
|
|
Then the many are of another mind; they think that justice is to be
|
|
reckoned in the troublesome class, among goods which are to be pursued
|
|
for the sake of rewards and of reputation, but in themselves are
|
|
disagreeable and rather to be avoided.
|
|
|
|
I know, I said, that this is their manner of thinking, and that this was
|
|
the thesis which Thrasymachus was maintaining just now, when he censured
|
|
justice and praised injustice. But I am too stupid to be convinced by
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
I wish, he said, that you would hear me as well as him, and then I shall
|
|
see whether you and I agree. For Thrasymachus seems to me, like a snake,
|
|
to have been charmed by your voice sooner than he ought to have been;
|
|
but to my mind the nature of justice and injustice have not yet been
|
|
made clear. Setting aside their rewards and results, I want to know what
|
|
they are in themselves, and how they inwardly work in the soul. If you,
|
|
please, then, I will revive the argument of Thrasymachus. And first I
|
|
will speak of the nature and origin of justice according to the common
|
|
view of them. Secondly, I will show that all men who practise justice do
|
|
so against their will, of necessity, but not as a good. And thirdly, I
|
|
will argue that there is reason in this view, for the life of the unjust
|
|
is after all better far than the life of the just--if what they say
|
|
is true, Socrates, since I myself am not of their opinion. But still I
|
|
acknowledge that I am perplexed when I hear the voices of Thrasymachus
|
|
and myriads of others dinning in my ears; and, on the other hand, I have
|
|
never yet heard the superiority of justice to injustice maintained by
|
|
any one in a satisfactory way. I want to hear justice praised in respect
|
|
of itself; then I shall be satisfied, and you are the person from whom
|
|
I think that I am most likely to hear this; and therefore I will praise
|
|
the unjust life to the utmost of my power, and my manner of speaking
|
|
will indicate the manner in which I desire to hear you too praising
|
|
justice and censuring injustice. Will you say whether you approve of my
|
|
proposal?
|
|
|
|
Indeed I do; nor can I imagine any theme about which a man of sense
|
|
would oftener wish to converse.
|
|
|
|
I am delighted, he replied, to hear you say so, and shall begin by
|
|
speaking, as I proposed, of the nature and origin of justice.
|
|
|
|
They say that to do injustice is, by nature, good; to suffer injustice,
|
|
evil; but that the evil is greater than the good. And so when men have
|
|
both done and suffered injustice and have had experience of both, not
|
|
being able to avoid the one and obtain the other, they think that they
|
|
had better agree among themselves to have neither; hence there arise
|
|
laws and mutual covenants; and that which is ordained by law is termed
|
|
by them lawful and just. This they affirm to be the origin and nature of
|
|
justice;--it is a mean or compromise, between the best of all, which is
|
|
to do injustice and not be punished, and the worst of all, which is to
|
|
suffer injustice without the power of retaliation; and justice, being at
|
|
a middle point between the two, is tolerated not as a good, but as
|
|
the lesser evil, and honoured by reason of the inability of men to do
|
|
injustice. For no man who is worthy to be called a man would ever submit
|
|
to such an agreement if he were able to resist; he would be mad if he
|
|
did. Such is the received account, Socrates, of the nature and origin of
|
|
justice.
|
|
|
|
Now that those who practise justice do so involuntarily and because they
|
|
have not the power to be unjust will best appear if we imagine something
|
|
of this kind: having given both to the just and the unjust power to do
|
|
what they will, let us watch and see whither desire will lead them;
|
|
then we shall discover in the very act the just and unjust man to be
|
|
proceeding along the same road, following their interest, which all
|
|
natures deem to be their good, and are only diverted into the path of
|
|
justice by the force of law. The liberty which we are supposing may be
|
|
most completely given to them in the form of such a power as is said
|
|
to have been possessed by Gyges, the ancestor of Croesus the Lydian.
|
|
According to the tradition, Gyges was a shepherd in the service of
|
|
the king of Lydia; there was a great storm, and an earthquake made an
|
|
opening in the earth at the place where he was feeding his flock. Amazed
|
|
at the sight, he descended into the opening, where, among other marvels,
|
|
he beheld a hollow brazen horse, having doors, at which he stooping and
|
|
looking in saw a dead body of stature, as appeared to him, more than
|
|
human, and having nothing on but a gold ring; this he took from the
|
|
finger of the dead and reascended. Now the shepherds met together,
|
|
according to custom, that they might send their monthly report about the
|
|
flocks to the king; into their assembly he came having the ring on his
|
|
finger, and as he was sitting among them he chanced to turn the collet
|
|
of the ring inside his hand, when instantly he became invisible to the
|
|
rest of the company and they began to speak of him as if he were no
|
|
longer present. He was astonished at this, and again touching the ring
|
|
he turned the collet outwards and reappeared; he made several trials
|
|
of the ring, and always with the same result--when he turned the collet
|
|
inwards he became invisible, when outwards he reappeared. Whereupon he
|
|
contrived to be chosen one of the messengers who were sent to the court;
|
|
whereas soon as he arrived he seduced the queen, and with her help
|
|
conspired against the king and slew him, and took the kingdom. Suppose
|
|
now that there were two such magic rings, and the just put on one of
|
|
them and the unjust the other; no man can be imagined to be of such an
|
|
iron nature that he would stand fast in justice. No man would keep his
|
|
hands off what was not his own when he could safely take what he
|
|
liked out of the market, or go into houses and lie with any one at
|
|
his pleasure, or kill or release from prison whom he would, and in all
|
|
respects be like a God among men. Then the actions of the just would be
|
|
as the actions of the unjust; they would both come at last to the same
|
|
point. And this we may truly affirm to be a great proof that a man is
|
|
just, not willingly or because he thinks that justice is any good to him
|
|
individually, but of necessity, for wherever any one thinks that he
|
|
can safely be unjust, there he is unjust. For all men believe in their
|
|
hearts that injustice is far more profitable to the individual than
|
|
justice, and he who argues as I have been supposing, will say that they
|
|
are right. If you could imagine any one obtaining this power of becoming
|
|
invisible, and never doing any wrong or touching what was another's, he
|
|
would be thought by the lookers-on to be a most wretched idiot, although
|
|
they would praise him to one another's faces, and keep up appearances
|
|
with one another from a fear that they too might suffer injustice.
|
|
Enough of this.
|
|
|
|
Now, if we are to form a real judgment of the life of the just and
|
|
unjust, we must isolate them; there is no other way; and how is the
|
|
isolation to be effected? I answer: Let the unjust man be entirely
|
|
unjust, and the just man entirely just; nothing is to be taken away from
|
|
either of them, and both are to be perfectly furnished for the work
|
|
of their respective lives. First, let the unjust be like other
|
|
distinguished masters of craft; like the skilful pilot or physician, who
|
|
knows intuitively his own powers and keeps within their limits, and who,
|
|
if he fails at any point, is able to recover himself. So let the unjust
|
|
make his unjust attempts in the right way, and lie hidden if he means
|
|
to be great in his injustice: (he who is found out is nobody:) for
|
|
the highest reach of injustice is, to be deemed just when you are not.
|
|
Therefore I say that in the perfectly unjust man we must assume the most
|
|
perfect injustice; there is to be no deduction, but we must allow
|
|
him, while doing the most unjust acts, to have acquired the greatest
|
|
reputation for justice. If he have taken a false step he must be able to
|
|
recover himself; he must be one who can speak with effect, if any of his
|
|
deeds come to light, and who can force his way where force is required
|
|
by his courage and strength, and command of money and friends. And at
|
|
his side let us place the just man in his nobleness and simplicity,
|
|
wishing, as Aeschylus says, to be and not to seem good. There must be no
|
|
seeming, for if he seem to be just he will be honoured and rewarded, and
|
|
then we shall not know whether he is just for the sake of justice or
|
|
for the sake of honours and rewards; therefore, let him be clothed in
|
|
justice only, and have no other covering; and he must be imagined in a
|
|
state of life the opposite of the former. Let him be the best of men,
|
|
and let him be thought the worst; then he will have been put to the
|
|
proof; and we shall see whether he will be affected by the fear of
|
|
infamy and its consequences. And let him continue thus to the hour of
|
|
death; being just and seeming to be unjust. When both have reached the
|
|
uttermost extreme, the one of justice and the other of injustice, let
|
|
judgment be given which of them is the happier of the two.
|
|
|
|
Heavens! my dear Glaucon, I said, how energetically you polish them
|
|
up for the decision, first one and then the other, as if they were two
|
|
statues.
|
|
|
|
I do my best, he said. And now that we know what they are like there
|
|
is no difficulty in tracing out the sort of life which awaits either
|
|
of them. This I will proceed to describe; but as you may think the
|
|
description a little too coarse, I ask you to suppose, Socrates, that
|
|
the words which follow are not mine.--Let me put them into the mouths of
|
|
the eulogists of injustice: They will tell you that the just man who is
|
|
thought unjust will be scourged, racked, bound--will have his eyes
|
|
burnt out; and, at last, after suffering every kind of evil, he will be
|
|
impaled: Then he will understand that he ought to seem only, and not to
|
|
be, just; the words of Aeschylus may be more truly spoken of the unjust
|
|
than of the just. For the unjust is pursuing a reality; he does not live
|
|
with a view to appearances--he wants to be really unjust and not to seem
|
|
only:--
|
|
|
|
'His mind has a soil deep and fertile, Out of which spring his prudent
|
|
counsels.'
|
|
|
|
In the first place, he is thought just, and therefore bears rule in the
|
|
city; he can marry whom he will, and give in marriage to whom he
|
|
will; also he can trade and deal where he likes, and always to his own
|
|
advantage, because he has no misgivings about injustice; and at every
|
|
contest, whether in public or private, he gets the better of his
|
|
antagonists, and gains at their expense, and is rich, and out of his
|
|
gains he can benefit his friends, and harm his enemies; moreover, he
|
|
can offer sacrifices, and dedicate gifts to the gods abundantly and
|
|
magnificently, and can honour the gods or any man whom he wants to
|
|
honour in a far better style than the just, and therefore he is likely
|
|
to be dearer than they are to the gods. And thus, Socrates, gods and men
|
|
are said to unite in making the life of the unjust better than the life
|
|
of the just.
|
|
|
|
I was going to say something in answer to Glaucon, when Adeimantus, his
|
|
brother, interposed: Socrates, he said, you do not suppose that there is
|
|
nothing more to be urged?
|
|
|
|
Why, what else is there? I answered.
|
|
|
|
The strongest point of all has not been even mentioned, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, according to the proverb, 'Let brother help brother'--if
|
|
he fails in any part do you assist him; although I must confess that
|
|
Glaucon has already said quite enough to lay me in the dust, and take
|
|
from me the power of helping justice.
|
|
|
|
Nonsense, he replied. But let me add something more: There is another
|
|
side to Glaucon's argument about the praise and censure of justice
|
|
and injustice, which is equally required in order to bring out what I
|
|
believe to be his meaning. Parents and tutors are always telling their
|
|
sons and their wards that they are to be just; but why? not for the sake
|
|
of justice, but for the sake of character and reputation; in the hope of
|
|
obtaining for him who is reputed just some of those offices, marriages,
|
|
and the like which Glaucon has enumerated among the advantages accruing
|
|
to the unjust from the reputation of justice. More, however, is made of
|
|
appearances by this class of persons than by the others; for they
|
|
throw in the good opinion of the gods, and will tell you of a shower of
|
|
benefits which the heavens, as they say, rain upon the pious; and this
|
|
accords with the testimony of the noble Hesiod and Homer, the first of
|
|
whom says, that the gods make the oaks of the just--
|
|
|
|
'To bear acorns at their summit, and bees in the middle;
|
|
And the sheep are bowed down with the weight of their fleeces,'
|
|
|
|
and many other blessings of a like kind are provided for them. And Homer
|
|
has a very similar strain; for he speaks of one whose fame is--
|
|
|
|
'As the fame of some blameless king who, like a god, Maintains justice;
|
|
to whom the black earth brings forth Wheat and barley, whose trees are
|
|
bowed with fruit, And his sheep never fail to bear, and the sea gives
|
|
him fish.'
|
|
|
|
Still grander are the gifts of heaven which Musaeus and his son
|
|
vouchsafe to the just; they take them down into the world below, where
|
|
they have the saints lying on couches at a feast, everlastingly drunk,
|
|
crowned with garlands; their idea seems to be that an immortality of
|
|
drunkenness is the highest meed of virtue. Some extend their rewards
|
|
yet further; the posterity, as they say, of the faithful and just shall
|
|
survive to the third and fourth generation. This is the style in which
|
|
they praise justice. But about the wicked there is another strain; they
|
|
bury them in a slough in Hades, and make them carry water in a sieve;
|
|
also while they are yet living they bring them to infamy, and inflict
|
|
upon them the punishments which Glaucon described as the portion of the
|
|
just who are reputed to be unjust; nothing else does their invention
|
|
supply. Such is their manner of praising the one and censuring the
|
|
other.
|
|
|
|
Once more, Socrates, I will ask you to consider another way of speaking
|
|
about justice and injustice, which is not confined to the poets, but
|
|
is found in prose writers. The universal voice of mankind is always
|
|
declaring that justice and virtue are honourable, but grievous and
|
|
toilsome; and that the pleasures of vice and injustice are easy of
|
|
attainment, and are only censured by law and opinion. They say also that
|
|
honesty is for the most part less profitable than dishonesty; and they
|
|
are quite ready to call wicked men happy, and to honour them both in
|
|
public and private when they are rich or in any other way influential,
|
|
while they despise and overlook those who may be weak and poor, even
|
|
though acknowledging them to be better than the others. But most
|
|
extraordinary of all is their mode of speaking about virtue and the
|
|
gods: they say that the gods apportion calamity and misery to many good
|
|
men, and good and happiness to the wicked. And mendicant prophets go to
|
|
rich men's doors and persuade them that they have a power committed
|
|
to them by the gods of making an atonement for a man's own or his
|
|
ancestor's sins by sacrifices or charms, with rejoicings and feasts; and
|
|
they promise to harm an enemy, whether just or unjust, at a small cost;
|
|
with magic arts and incantations binding heaven, as they say, to execute
|
|
their will. And the poets are the authorities to whom they appeal, now
|
|
smoothing the path of vice with the words of Hesiod;--
|
|
|
|
'Vice may be had in abundance without trouble; the way is smooth and her
|
|
dwelling-place is near. But before virtue the gods have set toil,'
|
|
|
|
and a tedious and uphill road: then citing Homer as a witness that the
|
|
gods may be influenced by men; for he also says:--
|
|
|
|
'The gods, too, may be turned from their purpose; and men pray to them
|
|
and avert their wrath by sacrifices and soothing entreaties, and by
|
|
libations and the odour of fat, when they have sinned and transgressed.'
|
|
|
|
And they produce a host of books written by Musaeus and Orpheus,
|
|
who were children of the Moon and the Muses--that is what they
|
|
say--according to which they perform their ritual, and persuade not only
|
|
individuals, but whole cities, that expiations and atonements for sin
|
|
may be made by sacrifices and amusements which fill a vacant hour, and
|
|
are equally at the service of the living and the dead; the latter sort
|
|
they call mysteries, and they redeem us from the pains of hell, but if
|
|
we neglect them no one knows what awaits us.
|
|
|
|
He proceeded: And now when the young hear all this said about virtue and
|
|
vice, and the way in which gods and men regard them, how are their minds
|
|
likely to be affected, my dear Socrates,--those of them, I mean, who are
|
|
quickwitted, and, like bees on the wing, light on every flower, and from
|
|
all that they hear are prone to draw conclusions as to what manner of
|
|
persons they should be and in what way they should walk if they would
|
|
make the best of life? Probably the youth will say to himself in the
|
|
words of Pindar--
|
|
|
|
'Can I by justice or by crooked ways of deceit ascend a loftier tower
|
|
which may be a fortress to me all my days?'
|
|
|
|
For what men say is that, if I am really just and am not also thought
|
|
just profit there is none, but the pain and loss on the other hand
|
|
are unmistakeable. But if, though unjust, I acquire the reputation of
|
|
justice, a heavenly life is promised to me. Since then, as philosophers
|
|
prove, appearance tyrannizes over truth and is lord of happiness, to
|
|
appearance I must devote myself. I will describe around me a picture and
|
|
shadow of virtue to be the vestibule and exterior of my house; behind I
|
|
will trail the subtle and crafty fox, as Archilochus, greatest of sages,
|
|
recommends. But I hear some one exclaiming that the concealment of
|
|
wickedness is often difficult; to which I answer, Nothing great is easy.
|
|
Nevertheless, the argument indicates this, if we would be happy, to be
|
|
the path along which we should proceed. With a view to concealment we
|
|
will establish secret brotherhoods and political clubs. And there
|
|
are professors of rhetoric who teach the art of persuading courts and
|
|
assemblies; and so, partly by persuasion and partly by force, I shall
|
|
make unlawful gains and not be punished. Still I hear a voice saying
|
|
that the gods cannot be deceived, neither can they be compelled. But
|
|
what if there are no gods? or, suppose them to have no care of human
|
|
things--why in either case should we mind about concealment? And even if
|
|
there are gods, and they do care about us, yet we know of them only
|
|
from tradition and the genealogies of the poets; and these are the very
|
|
persons who say that they may be influenced and turned by 'sacrifices
|
|
and soothing entreaties and by offerings.' Let us be consistent then,
|
|
and believe both or neither. If the poets speak truly, why then we had
|
|
better be unjust, and offer of the fruits of injustice; for if we are
|
|
just, although we may escape the vengeance of heaven, we shall lose the
|
|
gains of injustice; but, if we are unjust, we shall keep the gains, and
|
|
by our sinning and praying, and praying and sinning, the gods will be
|
|
propitiated, and we shall not be punished. 'But there is a world below
|
|
in which either we or our posterity will suffer for our unjust deeds.'
|
|
Yes, my friend, will be the reflection, but there are mysteries and
|
|
atoning deities, and these have great power. That is what mighty
|
|
cities declare; and the children of the gods, who were their poets and
|
|
prophets, bear a like testimony.
|
|
|
|
On what principle, then, shall we any longer choose justice rather than
|
|
the worst injustice? when, if we only unite the latter with a deceitful
|
|
regard to appearances, we shall fare to our mind both with gods and
|
|
men, in life and after death, as the most numerous and the highest
|
|
authorities tell us. Knowing all this, Socrates, how can a man who
|
|
has any superiority of mind or person or rank or wealth, be willing to
|
|
honour justice; or indeed to refrain from laughing when he hears justice
|
|
praised? And even if there should be some one who is able to disprove
|
|
the truth of my words, and who is satisfied that justice is best, still
|
|
he is not angry with the unjust, but is very ready to forgive them,
|
|
because he also knows that men are not just of their own free will;
|
|
unless, peradventure, there be some one whom the divinity within him may
|
|
have inspired with a hatred of injustice, or who has attained knowledge
|
|
of the truth--but no other man. He only blames injustice who, owing to
|
|
cowardice or age or some weakness, has not the power of being unjust.
|
|
And this is proved by the fact that when he obtains the power, he
|
|
immediately becomes unjust as far as he can be.
|
|
|
|
The cause of all this, Socrates, was indicated by us at the beginning of
|
|
the argument, when my brother and I told you how astonished we were to
|
|
find that of all the professing panegyrists of justice--beginning with
|
|
the ancient heroes of whom any memorial has been preserved to us, and
|
|
ending with the men of our own time--no one has ever blamed injustice or
|
|
praised justice except with a view to the glories, honours, and benefits
|
|
which flow from them. No one has ever adequately described either in
|
|
verse or prose the true essential nature of either of them abiding in
|
|
the soul, and invisible to any human or divine eye; or shown that of
|
|
all the things of a man's soul which he has within him, justice is
|
|
the greatest good, and injustice the greatest evil. Had this been the
|
|
universal strain, had you sought to persuade us of this from our youth
|
|
upwards, we should not have been on the watch to keep one another from
|
|
doing wrong, but every one would have been his own watchman, because
|
|
afraid, if he did wrong, of harbouring in himself the greatest of
|
|
evils. I dare say that Thrasymachus and others would seriously hold the
|
|
language which I have been merely repeating, and words even stronger
|
|
than these about justice and injustice, grossly, as I conceive,
|
|
perverting their true nature. But I speak in this vehement manner, as
|
|
I must frankly confess to you, because I want to hear from you the
|
|
opposite side; and I would ask you to show not only the superiority
|
|
which justice has over injustice, but what effect they have on the
|
|
possessor of them which makes the one to be a good and the other an evil
|
|
to him. And please, as Glaucon requested of you, to exclude reputations;
|
|
for unless you take away from each of them his true reputation and
|
|
add on the false, we shall say that you do not praise justice, but the
|
|
appearance of it; we shall think that you are only exhorting us to keep
|
|
injustice dark, and that you really agree with Thrasymachus in thinking
|
|
that justice is another's good and the interest of the stronger, and
|
|
that injustice is a man's own profit and interest, though injurious to
|
|
the weaker. Now as you have admitted that justice is one of that highest
|
|
class of goods which are desired indeed for their results, but in a far
|
|
greater degree for their own sakes--like sight or hearing or knowledge
|
|
or health, or any other real and natural and not merely conventional
|
|
good--I would ask you in your praise of justice to regard one point
|
|
only: I mean the essential good and evil which justice and injustice
|
|
work in the possessors of them. Let others praise justice and censure
|
|
injustice, magnifying the rewards and honours of the one and abusing the
|
|
other; that is a manner of arguing which, coming from them, I am
|
|
ready to tolerate, but from you who have spent your whole life in the
|
|
consideration of this question, unless I hear the contrary from your own
|
|
lips, I expect something better. And therefore, I say, not only prove to
|
|
us that justice is better than injustice, but show what they either of
|
|
them do to the possessor of them, which makes the one to be a good and
|
|
the other an evil, whether seen or unseen by gods and men.
|
|
|
|
I had always admired the genius of Glaucon and Adeimantus, but on
|
|
hearing these words I was quite delighted, and said: Sons of an
|
|
illustrious father, that was not a bad beginning of the Elegiac verses
|
|
which the admirer of Glaucon made in honour of you after you had
|
|
distinguished yourselves at the battle of Megara:--
|
|
|
|
'Sons of Ariston,' he sang, 'divine offspring of an illustrious hero.'
|
|
|
|
The epithet is very appropriate, for there is something truly divine in
|
|
being able to argue as you have done for the superiority of injustice,
|
|
and remaining unconvinced by your own arguments. And I do believe that
|
|
you are not convinced--this I infer from your general character, for had
|
|
I judged only from your speeches I should have mistrusted you. But
|
|
now, the greater my confidence in you, the greater is my difficulty in
|
|
knowing what to say. For I am in a strait between two; on the one hand I
|
|
feel that I am unequal to the task; and my inability is brought home to
|
|
me by the fact that you were not satisfied with the answer which I made
|
|
to Thrasymachus, proving, as I thought, the superiority which justice
|
|
has over injustice. And yet I cannot refuse to help, while breath and
|
|
speech remain to me; I am afraid that there would be an impiety in being
|
|
present when justice is evil spoken of and not lifting up a hand in her
|
|
defence. And therefore I had best give such help as I can.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon and the rest entreated me by all means not to let the question
|
|
drop, but to proceed in the investigation. They wanted to arrive at the
|
|
truth, first, about the nature of justice and injustice, and secondly,
|
|
about their relative advantages. I told them, what I really thought,
|
|
that the enquiry would be of a serious nature, and would require very
|
|
good eyes. Seeing then, I said, that we are no great wits, I think that
|
|
we had better adopt a method which I may illustrate thus; suppose that
|
|
a short-sighted person had been asked by some one to read small letters
|
|
from a distance; and it occurred to some one else that they might be
|
|
found in another place which was larger and in which the letters were
|
|
larger--if they were the same and he could read the larger letters
|
|
first, and then proceed to the lesser--this would have been thought a
|
|
rare piece of good fortune.
|
|
|
|
Very true, said Adeimantus; but how does the illustration apply to our
|
|
enquiry?
|
|
|
|
I will tell you, I replied; justice, which is the subject of our
|
|
enquiry, is, as you know, sometimes spoken of as the virtue of an
|
|
individual, and sometimes as the virtue of a State.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And is not a State larger than an individual?
|
|
|
|
It is.
|
|
|
|
Then in the larger the quantity of justice is likely to be larger and
|
|
more easily discernible. I propose therefore that we enquire into the
|
|
nature of justice and injustice, first as they appear in the State, and
|
|
secondly in the individual, proceeding from the greater to the lesser
|
|
and comparing them.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is an excellent proposal.
|
|
|
|
And if we imagine the State in process of creation, we shall see the
|
|
justice and injustice of the State in process of creation also.
|
|
|
|
I dare say.
|
|
|
|
When the State is completed there may be a hope that the object of our
|
|
search will be more easily discovered.
|
|
|
|
Yes, far more easily.
|
|
|
|
But ought we to attempt to construct one? I said; for to do so, as I am
|
|
inclined to think, will be a very serious task. Reflect therefore.
|
|
|
|
I have reflected, said Adeimantus, and am anxious that you should
|
|
proceed.
|
|
|
|
A State, I said, arises, as I conceive, out of the needs of mankind;
|
|
no one is self-sufficing, but all of us have many wants. Can any other
|
|
origin of a State be imagined?
|
|
|
|
There can be no other.
|
|
|
|
Then, as we have many wants, and many persons are needed to supply them,
|
|
one takes a helper for one purpose and another for another; and when
|
|
these partners and helpers are gathered together in one habitation the
|
|
body of inhabitants is termed a State.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And they exchange with one another, and one gives, and another receives,
|
|
under the idea that the exchange will be for their good.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, let us begin and create in idea a State; and yet the true
|
|
creator is necessity, who is the mother of our invention.
|
|
|
|
Of course, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Now the first and greatest of necessities is food, which is the
|
|
condition of life and existence.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
The second is a dwelling, and the third clothing and the like.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And now let us see how our city will be able to supply this great
|
|
demand: We may suppose that one man is a husbandman, another a builder,
|
|
some one else a weaver--shall we add to them a shoemaker, or perhaps
|
|
some other purveyor to our bodily wants?
|
|
|
|
Quite right.
|
|
|
|
The barest notion of a State must include four or five men.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And how will they proceed? Will each bring the result of his labours
|
|
into a common stock?--the individual husbandman, for example, producing
|
|
for four, and labouring four times as long and as much as he need in the
|
|
provision of food with which he supplies others as well as himself;
|
|
or will he have nothing to do with others and not be at the trouble of
|
|
producing for them, but provide for himself alone a fourth of the food
|
|
in a fourth of the time, and in the remaining three fourths of his time
|
|
be employed in making a house or a coat or a pair of shoes, having no
|
|
partnership with others, but supplying himself all his own wants?
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus thought that he should aim at producing food only and not at
|
|
producing everything.
|
|
|
|
Probably, I replied, that would be the better way; and when I hear you
|
|
say this, I am myself reminded that we are not all alike; there
|
|
are diversities of natures among us which are adapted to different
|
|
occupations.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And will you have a work better done when the workman has many
|
|
occupations, or when he has only one?
|
|
|
|
When he has only one.
|
|
|
|
Further, there can be no doubt that a work is spoilt when not done at
|
|
the right time?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
For business is not disposed to wait until the doer of the business is
|
|
at leisure; but the doer must follow up what he is doing, and make the
|
|
business his first object.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
And if so, we must infer that all things are produced more plentifully
|
|
and easily and of a better quality when one man does one thing which is
|
|
natural to him and does it at the right time, and leaves other things.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Then more than four citizens will be required; for the husbandman will
|
|
not make his own plough or mattock, or other implements of agriculture,
|
|
if they are to be good for anything. Neither will the builder make
|
|
his tools--and he too needs many; and in like manner the weaver and
|
|
shoemaker.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then carpenters, and smiths, and many other artisans, will be sharers in
|
|
our little State, which is already beginning to grow?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Yet even if we add neatherds, shepherds, and other herdsmen, in order
|
|
that our husbandmen may have oxen to plough with, and builders as well
|
|
as husbandmen may have draught cattle, and curriers and weavers fleeces
|
|
and hides,--still our State will not be very large.
|
|
|
|
That is true; yet neither will it be a very small State which contains
|
|
all these.
|
|
|
|
Then, again, there is the situation of the city--to find a place where
|
|
nothing need be imported is wellnigh impossible.
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then there must be another class of citizens who will bring the required
|
|
supply from another city?
|
|
|
|
There must.
|
|
|
|
But if the trader goes empty-handed, having nothing which they require
|
|
who would supply his need, he will come back empty-handed.
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
And therefore what they produce at home must be not only enough for
|
|
themselves, but such both in quantity and quality as to accommodate
|
|
those from whom their wants are supplied.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then more husbandmen and more artisans will be required?
|
|
|
|
They will.
|
|
|
|
Not to mention the importers and exporters, who are called merchants?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall want merchants?
|
|
|
|
We shall.
|
|
|
|
And if merchandise is to be carried over the sea, skilful sailors will
|
|
also be needed, and in considerable numbers?
|
|
|
|
Yes, in considerable numbers.
|
|
|
|
Then, again, within the city, how will they exchange their productions?
|
|
To secure such an exchange was, as you will remember, one of our
|
|
principal objects when we formed them into a society and constituted a
|
|
State.
|
|
|
|
Clearly they will buy and sell.
|
|
|
|
Then they will need a market-place, and a money-token for purposes of
|
|
exchange.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Suppose now that a husbandman, or an artisan, brings some production
|
|
to market, and he comes at a time when there is no one to exchange with
|
|
him,--is he to leave his calling and sit idle in the market-place?
|
|
|
|
Not at all; he will find people there who, seeing the want, undertake
|
|
the office of salesmen. In well-ordered states they are commonly those
|
|
who are the weakest in bodily strength, and therefore of little use for
|
|
any other purpose; their duty is to be in the market, and to give money
|
|
in exchange for goods to those who desire to sell and to take money from
|
|
those who desire to buy.
|
|
|
|
This want, then, creates a class of retail-traders in our State. Is
|
|
not 'retailer' the term which is applied to those who sit in the
|
|
market-place engaged in buying and selling, while those who wander from
|
|
one city to another are called merchants?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And there is another class of servants, who are intellectually hardly
|
|
on the level of companionship; still they have plenty of bodily strength
|
|
for labour, which accordingly they sell, and are called, if I do not
|
|
mistake, hirelings, hire being the name which is given to the price of
|
|
their labour.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then hirelings will help to make up our population?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And now, Adeimantus, is our State matured and perfected?
|
|
|
|
I think so.
|
|
|
|
Where, then, is justice, and where is injustice, and in what part of the
|
|
State did they spring up?
|
|
|
|
Probably in the dealings of these citizens with one another. I cannot
|
|
imagine that they are more likely to be found any where else.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that you are right in your suggestion, I said; we had better
|
|
think the matter out, and not shrink from the enquiry.
|
|
|
|
Let us then consider, first of all, what will be their way of life,
|
|
now that we have thus established them. Will they not produce corn, and
|
|
wine, and clothes, and shoes, and build houses for themselves? And
|
|
when they are housed, they will work, in summer, commonly, stripped and
|
|
barefoot, but in winter substantially clothed and shod. They will feed
|
|
on barley-meal and flour of wheat, baking and kneading them, making
|
|
noble cakes and loaves; these they will serve up on a mat of reeds or on
|
|
clean leaves, themselves reclining the while upon beds strewn with yew
|
|
or myrtle. And they and their children will feast, drinking of the wine
|
|
which they have made, wearing garlands on their heads, and hymning the
|
|
praises of the gods, in happy converse with one another. And they will
|
|
take care that their families do not exceed their means; having an eye
|
|
to poverty or war.
|
|
|
|
But, said Glaucon, interposing, you have not given them a relish to
|
|
their meal.
|
|
|
|
True, I replied, I had forgotten; of course they must have a
|
|
relish--salt, and olives, and cheese, and they will boil roots and herbs
|
|
such as country people prepare; for a dessert we shall give them figs,
|
|
and peas, and beans; and they will roast myrtle-berries and acorns
|
|
at the fire, drinking in moderation. And with such a diet they may be
|
|
expected to live in peace and health to a good old age, and bequeath a
|
|
similar life to their children after them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates, he said, and if you were providing for a city of pigs,
|
|
how else would you feed the beasts?
|
|
|
|
But what would you have, Glaucon? I replied.
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, you should give them the ordinary conveniences of life.
|
|
People who are to be comfortable are accustomed to lie on sofas, and
|
|
dine off tables, and they should have sauces and sweets in the modern
|
|
style.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, now I understand: the question which you would have me
|
|
consider is, not only how a State, but how a luxurious State is created;
|
|
and possibly there is no harm in this, for in such a State we shall be
|
|
more likely to see how justice and injustice originate. In my opinion
|
|
the true and healthy constitution of the State is the one which I have
|
|
described. But if you wish also to see a State at fever-heat, I have
|
|
no objection. For I suspect that many will not be satisfied with the
|
|
simpler way of life. They will be for adding sofas, and tables,
|
|
and other furniture; also dainties, and perfumes, and incense, and
|
|
courtesans, and cakes, all these not of one sort only, but in every
|
|
variety; we must go beyond the necessaries of which I was at first
|
|
speaking, such as houses, and clothes, and shoes: the arts of the
|
|
painter and the embroiderer will have to be set in motion, and gold and
|
|
ivory and all sorts of materials must be procured.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must enlarge our borders; for the original healthy State is
|
|
no longer sufficient. Now will the city have to fill and swell with a
|
|
multitude of callings which are not required by any natural want; such
|
|
as the whole tribe of hunters and actors, of whom one large class
|
|
have to do with forms and colours; another will be the votaries of
|
|
music--poets and their attendant train of rhapsodists, players, dancers,
|
|
contractors; also makers of divers kinds of articles, including women's
|
|
dresses. And we shall want more servants. Will not tutors be also in
|
|
request, and nurses wet and dry, tirewomen and barbers, as well as
|
|
confectioners and cooks; and swineherds, too, who were not needed and
|
|
therefore had no place in the former edition of our State, but are
|
|
needed now? They must not be forgotten: and there will be animals of
|
|
many other kinds, if people eat them.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And living in this way we shall have much greater need of physicians
|
|
than before?
|
|
|
|
Much greater.
|
|
|
|
And the country which was enough to support the original inhabitants
|
|
will be too small now, and not enough?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
Then a slice of our neighbours' land will be wanted by us for pasture
|
|
and tillage, and they will want a slice of ours, if, like ourselves,
|
|
they exceed the limit of necessity, and give themselves up to the
|
|
unlimited accumulation of wealth?
|
|
|
|
That, Socrates, will be inevitable.
|
|
|
|
And so we shall go to war, Glaucon. Shall we not?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then without determining as yet whether war does good or harm, thus much
|
|
we may affirm, that now we have discovered war to be derived from causes
|
|
which are also the causes of almost all the evils in States, private as
|
|
well as public.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
And our State must once more enlarge; and this time the enlargement will
|
|
be nothing short of a whole army, which will have to go out and fight
|
|
with the invaders for all that we have, as well as for the things and
|
|
persons whom we were describing above.
|
|
|
|
Why? he said; are they not capable of defending themselves?
|
|
|
|
No, I said; not if we were right in the principle which was acknowledged
|
|
by all of us when we were framing the State: the principle, as you will
|
|
remember, was that one man cannot practise many arts with success.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But is not war an art?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And an art requiring as much attention as shoemaking?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And the shoemaker was not allowed by us to be a husbandman, or a weaver,
|
|
or a builder--in order that we might have our shoes well made; but to
|
|
him and to every other worker was assigned one work for which he was by
|
|
nature fitted, and at that he was to continue working all his life long
|
|
and at no other; he was not to let opportunities slip, and then he would
|
|
become a good workman. Now nothing can be more important than that
|
|
the work of a soldier should be well done. But is war an art so easily
|
|
acquired that a man may be a warrior who is also a husbandman, or
|
|
shoemaker, or other artisan; although no one in the world would be a
|
|
good dice or draught player who merely took up the game as a recreation,
|
|
and had not from his earliest years devoted himself to this and nothing
|
|
else? No tools will make a man a skilled workman, or master of defence,
|
|
nor be of any use to him who has not learned how to handle them, and has
|
|
never bestowed any attention upon them. How then will he who takes up
|
|
a shield or other implement of war become a good fighter all in a day,
|
|
whether with heavy-armed or any other kind of troops?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the tools which would teach men their own use would be
|
|
beyond price.
|
|
|
|
And the higher the duties of the guardian, I said, the more time, and
|
|
skill, and art, and application will be needed by him?
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Will he not also require natural aptitude for his calling?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then it will be our duty to select, if we can, natures which are fitted
|
|
for the task of guarding the city?
|
|
|
|
It will.
|
|
|
|
And the selection will be no easy matter, I said; but we must be brave
|
|
and do our best.
|
|
|
|
We must.
|
|
|
|
Is not the noble youth very like a well-bred dog in respect of guarding
|
|
and watching?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean that both of them ought to be quick to see, and swift to overtake
|
|
the enemy when they see him; and strong too if, when they have caught
|
|
him, they have to fight with him.
|
|
|
|
All these qualities, he replied, will certainly be required by them.
|
|
|
|
Well, and your guardian must be brave if he is to fight well?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is he likely to be brave who has no spirit, whether horse or dog
|
|
or any other animal? Have you never observed how invincible and
|
|
unconquerable is spirit and how the presence of it makes the soul of any
|
|
creature to be absolutely fearless and indomitable?
|
|
|
|
I have.
|
|
|
|
Then now we have a clear notion of the bodily qualities which are
|
|
required in the guardian.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And also of the mental ones; his soul is to be full of spirit?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But are not these spirited natures apt to be savage with one another,
|
|
and with everybody else?
|
|
|
|
A difficulty by no means easy to overcome, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Whereas, I said, they ought to be dangerous to their enemies, and gentle
|
|
to their friends; if not, they will destroy themselves without waiting
|
|
for their enemies to destroy them.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
What is to be done then? I said; how shall we find a gentle nature which
|
|
has also a great spirit, for the one is the contradiction of the other?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
He will not be a good guardian who is wanting in either of these two
|
|
qualities; and yet the combination of them appears to be impossible; and
|
|
hence we must infer that to be a good guardian is impossible.
|
|
|
|
I am afraid that what you say is true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Here feeling perplexed I began to think over what had preceded.--My
|
|
friend, I said, no wonder that we are in a perplexity; for we have lost
|
|
sight of the image which we had before us.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean to say that there do exist natures gifted with those opposite
|
|
qualities.
|
|
|
|
And where do you find them?
|
|
|
|
Many animals, I replied, furnish examples of them; our friend the dog
|
|
is a very good one: you know that well-bred dogs are perfectly gentle to
|
|
their familiars and acquaintances, and the reverse to strangers.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I know.
|
|
|
|
Then there is nothing impossible or out of the order of nature in our
|
|
finding a guardian who has a similar combination of qualities?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Would not he who is fitted to be a guardian, besides the spirited
|
|
nature, need to have the qualities of a philosopher?
|
|
|
|
I do not apprehend your meaning.
|
|
|
|
The trait of which I am speaking, I replied, may be also seen in the
|
|
dog, and is remarkable in the animal.
|
|
|
|
What trait?
|
|
|
|
Why, a dog, whenever he sees a stranger, is angry; when an acquaintance,
|
|
he welcomes him, although the one has never done him any harm, nor the
|
|
other any good. Did this never strike you as curious?
|
|
|
|
The matter never struck me before; but I quite recognise the truth of
|
|
your remark.
|
|
|
|
And surely this instinct of the dog is very charming;--your dog is a
|
|
true philosopher.
|
|
|
|
Why?
|
|
|
|
Why, because he distinguishes the face of a friend and of an enemy only
|
|
by the criterion of knowing and not knowing. And must not an animal be a
|
|
lover of learning who determines what he likes and dislikes by the test
|
|
of knowledge and ignorance?
|
|
|
|
Most assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And is not the love of learning the love of wisdom, which is philosophy?
|
|
|
|
They are the same, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say confidently of man also, that he who is likely to be
|
|
gentle to his friends and acquaintances, must by nature be a lover of
|
|
wisdom and knowledge?
|
|
|
|
That we may safely affirm.
|
|
|
|
Then he who is to be a really good and noble guardian of the State will
|
|
require to unite in himself philosophy and spirit and swiftness and
|
|
strength?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Then we have found the desired natures; and now that we have found them,
|
|
how are they to be reared and educated? Is not this an enquiry which
|
|
may be expected to throw light on the greater enquiry which is our final
|
|
end--How do justice and injustice grow up in States? for we do not want
|
|
either to omit what is to the point or to draw out the argument to an
|
|
inconvenient length.
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus thought that the enquiry would be of great service to us.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, my dear friend, the task must not be given up, even if
|
|
somewhat long.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Come then, and let us pass a leisure hour in story-telling, and our
|
|
story shall be the education of our heroes.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And what shall be their education? Can we find a better than the
|
|
traditional sort?--and this has two divisions, gymnastic for the body,
|
|
and music for the soul.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Shall we begin education with music, and go on to gymnastic afterwards?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And when you speak of music, do you include literature or not?
|
|
|
|
I do.
|
|
|
|
And literature may be either true or false?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the young should be trained in both kinds, and we begin with the
|
|
false?
|
|
|
|
I do not understand your meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
You know, I said, that we begin by telling children stories which,
|
|
though not wholly destitute of truth, are in the main fictitious;
|
|
and these stories are told them when they are not of an age to learn
|
|
gymnastics.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
That was my meaning when I said that we must teach music before
|
|
gymnastics.
|
|
|
|
Quite right, he said.
|
|
|
|
You know also that the beginning is the most important part of any work,
|
|
especially in the case of a young and tender thing; for that is the time
|
|
at which the character is being formed and the desired impression is
|
|
more readily taken.
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And shall we just carelessly allow children to hear any casual tales
|
|
which may be devised by casual persons, and to receive into their minds
|
|
ideas for the most part the very opposite of those which we should wish
|
|
them to have when they are grown up?
|
|
|
|
We cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then the first thing will be to establish a censorship of the writers of
|
|
fiction, and let the censors receive any tale of fiction which is good,
|
|
and reject the bad; and we will desire mothers and nurses to tell their
|
|
children the authorised ones only. Let them fashion the mind with such
|
|
tales, even more fondly than they mould the body with their hands; but
|
|
most of those which are now in use must be discarded.
|
|
|
|
Of what tales are you speaking? he said.
|
|
|
|
You may find a model of the lesser in the greater, I said; for they are
|
|
necessarily of the same type, and there is the same spirit in both of
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
Very likely, he replied; but I do not as yet know what you would term
|
|
the greater.
|
|
|
|
Those, I said, which are narrated by Homer and Hesiod, and the rest of
|
|
the poets, who have ever been the great story-tellers of mankind.
|
|
|
|
But which stories do you mean, he said; and what fault do you find with
|
|
them?
|
|
|
|
A fault which is most serious, I said; the fault of telling a lie, and,
|
|
what is more, a bad lie.
|
|
|
|
But when is this fault committed?
|
|
|
|
Whenever an erroneous representation is made of the nature of gods and
|
|
heroes,--as when a painter paints a portrait not having the shadow of a
|
|
likeness to the original.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that sort of thing is certainly very blameable; but what
|
|
are the stories which you mean?
|
|
|
|
First of all, I said, there was that greatest of all lies in high
|
|
places, which the poet told about Uranus, and which was a bad lie
|
|
too,--I mean what Hesiod says that Uranus did, and how Cronus retaliated
|
|
on him. The doings of Cronus, and the sufferings which in turn his son
|
|
inflicted upon him, even if they were true, ought certainly not to be
|
|
lightly told to young and thoughtless persons; if possible, they had
|
|
better be buried in silence. But if there is an absolute necessity
|
|
for their mention, a chosen few might hear them in a mystery, and
|
|
they should sacrifice not a common (Eleusinian) pig, but some huge and
|
|
unprocurable victim; and then the number of the hearers will be very few
|
|
indeed.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, said he, those stories are extremely objectionable.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Adeimantus, they are stories not to be repeated in our State; the
|
|
young man should not be told that in committing the worst of crimes he
|
|
is far from doing anything outrageous; and that even if he chastises his
|
|
father when he does wrong, in whatever manner, he will only be following
|
|
the example of the first and greatest among the gods.
|
|
|
|
I entirely agree with you, he said; in my opinion those stories are
|
|
quite unfit to be repeated.
|
|
|
|
Neither, if we mean our future guardians to regard the habit of
|
|
quarrelling among themselves as of all things the basest, should
|
|
any word be said to them of the wars in heaven, and of the plots and
|
|
fightings of the gods against one another, for they are not true. No,
|
|
we shall never mention the battles of the giants, or let them be
|
|
embroidered on garments; and we shall be silent about the innumerable
|
|
other quarrels of gods and heroes with their friends and relatives.
|
|
If they would only believe us we would tell them that quarrelling
|
|
is unholy, and that never up to this time has there been any quarrel
|
|
between citizens; this is what old men and old women should begin by
|
|
telling children; and when they grow up, the poets also should be told
|
|
to compose for them in a similar spirit. But the narrative of Hephaestus
|
|
binding Here his mother, or how on another occasion Zeus sent him flying
|
|
for taking her part when she was being beaten, and all the battles of
|
|
the gods in Homer--these tales must not be admitted into our State,
|
|
whether they are supposed to have an allegorical meaning or not. For
|
|
a young person cannot judge what is allegorical and what is literal;
|
|
anything that he receives into his mind at that age is likely to become
|
|
indelible and unalterable; and therefore it is most important that the
|
|
tales which the young first hear should be models of virtuous thoughts.
|
|
|
|
There you are right, he replied; but if any one asks where are such
|
|
models to be found and of what tales are you speaking--how shall we
|
|
answer him?
|
|
|
|
I said to him, You and I, Adeimantus, at this moment are not poets,
|
|
but founders of a State: now the founders of a State ought to know the
|
|
general forms in which poets should cast their tales, and the limits
|
|
which must be observed by them, but to make the tales is not their
|
|
business.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said; but what are these forms of theology which you mean?
|
|
|
|
Something of this kind, I replied:--God is always to be represented as
|
|
he truly is, whatever be the sort of poetry, epic, lyric or tragic, in
|
|
which the representation is given.
|
|
|
|
Right.
|
|
|
|
And is he not truly good? and must he not be represented as such?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And no good thing is hurtful?
|
|
|
|
No, indeed.
|
|
|
|
And that which is not hurtful hurts not?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And that which hurts not does no evil?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
And can that which does no evil be a cause of evil?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And the good is advantageous?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And therefore the cause of well-being?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
It follows therefore that the good is not the cause of all things, but
|
|
of the good only?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Then God, if he be good, is not the author of all things, as the many
|
|
assert, but he is the cause of a few things only, and not of most things
|
|
that occur to men. For few are the goods of human life, and many are the
|
|
evils, and the good is to be attributed to God alone; of the evils the
|
|
causes are to be sought elsewhere, and not in him.
|
|
|
|
That appears to me to be most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must not listen to Homer or to any other poet who is guilty of
|
|
the folly of saying that two casks
|
|
|
|
'Lie at the threshold of Zeus, full of lots, one of good, the other of
|
|
evil lots,'
|
|
|
|
and that he to whom Zeus gives a mixture of the two
|
|
|
|
'Sometimes meets with evil fortune, at other times with good;'
|
|
|
|
but that he to whom is given the cup of unmingled ill,
|
|
|
|
'Him wild hunger drives o'er the beauteous earth.'
|
|
|
|
And again--
|
|
|
|
'Zeus, who is the dispenser of good and evil to us.'
|
|
|
|
And if any one asserts that the violation of oaths and treaties, which
|
|
was really the work of Pandarus, was brought about by Athene and Zeus,
|
|
or that the strife and contention of the gods was instigated by Themis
|
|
and Zeus, he shall not have our approval; neither will we allow our
|
|
young men to hear the words of Aeschylus, that
|
|
|
|
'God plants guilt among men when he desires utterly to destroy a house.'
|
|
|
|
And if a poet writes of the sufferings of Niobe--the subject of the
|
|
tragedy in which these iambic verses occur--or of the house of Pelops,
|
|
or of the Trojan war or on any similar theme, either we must not permit
|
|
him to say that these are the works of God, or if they are of God, he
|
|
must devise some explanation of them such as we are seeking; he must say
|
|
that God did what was just and right, and they were the better for being
|
|
punished; but that those who are punished are miserable, and that God
|
|
is the author of their misery--the poet is not to be permitted to say;
|
|
though he may say that the wicked are miserable because they require
|
|
to be punished, and are benefited by receiving punishment from God;
|
|
but that God being good is the author of evil to any one is to be
|
|
strenuously denied, and not to be said or sung or heard in verse or
|
|
prose by any one whether old or young in any well-ordered commonwealth.
|
|
Such a fiction is suicidal, ruinous, impious.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he replied, and am ready to give my assent to the law.
|
|
|
|
Let this then be one of our rules and principles concerning the gods, to
|
|
which our poets and reciters will be expected to conform,--that God is
|
|
not the author of all things, but of good only.
|
|
|
|
That will do, he said.
|
|
|
|
And what do you think of a second principle? Shall I ask you whether God
|
|
is a magician, and of a nature to appear insidiously now in one shape,
|
|
and now in another--sometimes himself changing and passing into
|
|
many forms, sometimes deceiving us with the semblance of such
|
|
transformations; or is he one and the same immutably fixed in his own
|
|
proper image?
|
|
|
|
I cannot answer you, he said, without more thought.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said; but if we suppose a change in anything, that change must
|
|
be effected either by the thing itself, or by some other thing?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly.
|
|
|
|
And things which are at their best are also least liable to be altered
|
|
or discomposed; for example, when healthiest and strongest, the human
|
|
frame is least liable to be affected by meats and drinks, and the plant
|
|
which is in the fullest vigour also suffers least from winds or the heat
|
|
of the sun or any similar causes.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And will not the bravest and wisest soul be least confused or deranged
|
|
by any external influence?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same principle, as I should suppose, applies to all composite
|
|
things--furniture, houses, garments: when good and well made, they are
|
|
least altered by time and circumstances.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then everything which is good, whether made by art or nature, or both,
|
|
is least liable to suffer change from without?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But surely God and the things of God are in every way perfect?
|
|
|
|
Of course they are.
|
|
|
|
Then he can hardly be compelled by external influence to take many
|
|
shapes?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
But may he not change and transform himself?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said, that must be the case if he is changed at all.
|
|
|
|
And will he then change himself for the better and fairer, or for the
|
|
worse and more unsightly?
|
|
|
|
If he change at all he can only change for the worse, for we cannot
|
|
suppose him to be deficient either in virtue or beauty.
|
|
|
|
Very true, Adeimantus; but then, would any one, whether God or man,
|
|
desire to make himself worse?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then it is impossible that God should ever be willing to change; being,
|
|
as is supposed, the fairest and best that is conceivable, every God
|
|
remains absolutely and for ever in his own form.
|
|
|
|
That necessarily follows, he said, in my judgment.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, my dear friend, let none of the poets tell us that
|
|
|
|
'The gods, taking the disguise of strangers from other lands, walk up
|
|
and down cities in all sorts of forms;'
|
|
|
|
and let no one slander Proteus and Thetis, neither let any one, either
|
|
in tragedy or in any other kind of poetry, introduce Here disguised in
|
|
the likeness of a priestess asking an alms
|
|
|
|
'For the life-giving daughters of Inachus the river of Argos;'
|
|
|
|
--let us have no more lies of that sort. Neither must we have mothers
|
|
under the influence of the poets scaring their children with a bad
|
|
version of these myths--telling how certain gods, as they say, 'Go about
|
|
by night in the likeness of so many strangers and in divers forms;' but
|
|
let them take heed lest they make cowards of their children, and at the
|
|
same time speak blasphemy against the gods.
|
|
|
|
Heaven forbid, he said.
|
|
|
|
But although the gods are themselves unchangeable, still by witchcraft
|
|
and deception they may make us think that they appear in various forms?
|
|
|
|
Perhaps, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, but can you imagine that God will be willing to lie, whether in
|
|
word or deed, or to put forth a phantom of himself?
|
|
|
|
I cannot say, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Do you not know, I said, that the true lie, if such an expression may be
|
|
allowed, is hated of gods and men?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean that no one is willingly deceived in that which is the truest and
|
|
highest part of himself, or about the truest and highest matters; there,
|
|
above all, he is most afraid of a lie having possession of him.
|
|
|
|
Still, he said, I do not comprehend you.
|
|
|
|
The reason is, I replied, that you attribute some profound meaning to
|
|
my words; but I am only saying that deception, or being deceived
|
|
or uninformed about the highest realities in the highest part of
|
|
themselves, which is the soul, and in that part of them to have and to
|
|
hold the lie, is what mankind least like;--that, I say, is what they
|
|
utterly detest.
|
|
|
|
There is nothing more hateful to them.
|
|
|
|
And, as I was just now remarking, this ignorance in the soul of him who
|
|
is deceived may be called the true lie; for the lie in words is only a
|
|
kind of imitation and shadowy image of a previous affection of the soul,
|
|
not pure unadulterated falsehood. Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Perfectly right.
|
|
|
|
The true lie is hated not only by the gods, but also by men?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the lie in words is in certain cases useful and not hateful; in
|
|
dealing with enemies--that would be an instance; or again, when those
|
|
whom we call our friends in a fit of madness or illusion are going to
|
|
do some harm, then it is useful and is a sort of medicine or
|
|
preventive; also in the tales of mythology, of which we were just now
|
|
speaking--because we do not know the truth about ancient times, we make
|
|
falsehood as much like truth as we can, and so turn it to account.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But can any of these reasons apply to God? Can we suppose that he is
|
|
ignorant of antiquity, and therefore has recourse to invention?
|
|
|
|
That would be ridiculous, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then the lying poet has no place in our idea of God?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
Or perhaps he may tell a lie because he is afraid of enemies?
|
|
|
|
That is inconceivable.
|
|
|
|
But he may have friends who are senseless or mad?
|
|
|
|
But no mad or senseless person can be a friend of God.
|
|
|
|
Then no motive can be imagined why God should lie?
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
Then the superhuman and divine is absolutely incapable of falsehood?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then is God perfectly simple and true both in word and deed; he changes
|
|
not; he deceives not, either by sign or word, by dream or waking vision.
|
|
|
|
Your thoughts, he said, are the reflection of my own.
|
|
|
|
You agree with me then, I said, that this is the second type or form in
|
|
which we should write and speak about divine things. The gods are not
|
|
magicians who transform themselves, neither do they deceive mankind in
|
|
any way.
|
|
|
|
I grant that.
|
|
|
|
Then, although we are admirers of Homer, we do not admire the lying
|
|
dream which Zeus sends to Agamemnon; neither will we praise the verses
|
|
of Aeschylus in which Thetis says that Apollo at her nuptials
|
|
|
|
'Was celebrating in song her fair progeny whose days were to be long,
|
|
and to know no sickness. And when he had spoken of my lot as in all
|
|
things blessed of heaven he raised a note of triumph and cheered my
|
|
soul. And I thought that the word of Phoebus, being divine and full of
|
|
prophecy, would not fail. And now he himself who uttered the strain,
|
|
he who was present at the banquet, and who said this--he it is who has
|
|
slain my son.'
|
|
|
|
These are the kind of sentiments about the gods which will arouse our
|
|
anger; and he who utters them shall be refused a chorus; neither shall
|
|
we allow teachers to make use of them in the instruction of the young,
|
|
meaning, as we do, that our guardians, as far as men can be, should be
|
|
true worshippers of the gods and like them.
|
|
|
|
I entirely agree, he said, in these principles, and promise to make them
|
|
my laws.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK III.
|
|
|
|
Such then, I said, are our principles of theology--some tales are to be
|
|
told, and others are not to be told to our disciples from their youth
|
|
upwards, if we mean them to honour the gods and their parents, and to
|
|
value friendship with one another.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and I think that our principles are right, he said.
|
|
|
|
But if they are to be courageous, must they not learn other lessons
|
|
besides these, and lessons of such a kind as will take away the fear of
|
|
death? Can any man be courageous who has the fear of death in him?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
And can he be fearless of death, or will he choose death in battle
|
|
rather than defeat and slavery, who believes the world below to be real
|
|
and terrible?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then we must assume a control over the narrators of this class of tales
|
|
as well as over the others, and beg them not simply to revile but rather
|
|
to commend the world below, intimating to them that their descriptions
|
|
are untrue, and will do harm to our future warriors.
|
|
|
|
That will be our duty, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we shall have to obliterate many obnoxious passages,
|
|
beginning with the verses,
|
|
|
|
'I would rather be a serf on the land of a poor and portionless man than
|
|
rule over all the dead who have come to nought.'
|
|
|
|
We must also expunge the verse, which tells us how Pluto feared,
|
|
|
|
'Lest the mansions grim and squalid which the gods abhor should be seen
|
|
both of mortals and immortals.'
|
|
|
|
And again:--
|
|
|
|
'O heavens! verily in the house of Hades there is soul and ghostly form
|
|
but no mind at all!'
|
|
|
|
Again of Tiresias:--
|
|
|
|
'(To him even after death did Persephone grant mind,) that he alone
|
|
should be wise; but the other souls are flitting shades.'
|
|
|
|
Again:--
|
|
|
|
'The soul flying from the limbs had gone to Hades, lamenting her fate,
|
|
leaving manhood and youth.'
|
|
|
|
Again:--
|
|
|
|
'And the soul, with shrilling cry, passed like smoke beneath the earth.'
|
|
|
|
And,--
|
|
|
|
'As bats in hollow of mystic cavern, whenever any of them has dropped
|
|
out of the string and falls from the rock, fly shrilling and cling
|
|
to one another, so did they with shrilling cry hold together as they
|
|
moved.'
|
|
|
|
And we must beg Homer and the other poets not to be angry if we strike
|
|
out these and similar passages, not because they are unpoetical, or
|
|
unattractive to the popular ear, but because the greater the poetical
|
|
charm of them, the less are they meet for the ears of boys and men who
|
|
are meant to be free, and who should fear slavery more than death.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Also we shall have to reject all the terrible and appalling names which
|
|
describe the world below--Cocytus and Styx, ghosts under the earth, and
|
|
sapless shades, and any similar words of which the very mention causes a
|
|
shudder to pass through the inmost soul of him who hears them. I do not
|
|
say that these horrible stories may not have a use of some kind; but
|
|
there is a danger that the nerves of our guardians may be rendered too
|
|
excitable and effeminate by them.
|
|
|
|
There is a real danger, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must have no more of them.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Another and a nobler strain must be composed and sung by us.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And shall we proceed to get rid of the weepings and wailings of famous
|
|
men?
|
|
|
|
They will go with the rest.
|
|
|
|
But shall we be right in getting rid of them? Reflect: our principle is
|
|
that the good man will not consider death terrible to any other good man
|
|
who is his comrade.
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is our principle.
|
|
|
|
And therefore he will not sorrow for his departed friend as though he
|
|
had suffered anything terrible?
|
|
|
|
He will not.
|
|
|
|
Such an one, as we further maintain, is sufficient for himself and his
|
|
own happiness, and therefore is least in need of other men.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And for this reason the loss of a son or brother, or the deprivation of
|
|
fortune, is to him of all men least terrible.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And therefore he will be least likely to lament, and will bear with the
|
|
greatest equanimity any misfortune of this sort which may befall him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he will feel such a misfortune far less than another.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall be right in getting rid of the lamentations of famous men,
|
|
and making them over to women (and not even to women who are good for
|
|
anything), or to men of a baser sort, that those who are being educated
|
|
by us to be the defenders of their country may scorn to do the like.
|
|
|
|
That will be very right.
|
|
|
|
Then we will once more entreat Homer and the other poets not to depict
|
|
Achilles, who is the son of a goddess, first lying on his side, then on
|
|
his back, and then on his face; then starting up and sailing in a frenzy
|
|
along the shores of the barren sea; now taking the sooty ashes in both
|
|
his hands and pouring them over his head, or weeping and wailing in the
|
|
various modes which Homer has delineated. Nor should he describe Priam
|
|
the kinsman of the gods as praying and beseeching,
|
|
|
|
'Rolling in the dirt, calling each man loudly by his name.'
|
|
|
|
Still more earnestly will we beg of him at all events not to introduce
|
|
the gods lamenting and saying,
|
|
|
|
'Alas! my misery! Alas! that I bore the bravest to my sorrow.'
|
|
|
|
But if he must introduce the gods, at any rate let him not dare so
|
|
completely to misrepresent the greatest of the gods, as to make him
|
|
say--
|
|
|
|
'O heavens! with my eyes verily I behold a dear friend of mine chased
|
|
round and round the city, and my heart is sorrowful.'
|
|
|
|
Or again:--
|
|
|
|
Woe is me that I am fated to have Sarpedon, dearest of men to me,
|
|
subdued at the hands of Patroclus the son of Menoetius.'
|
|
|
|
For if, my sweet Adeimantus, our youth seriously listen to such unworthy
|
|
representations of the gods, instead of laughing at them as they ought,
|
|
hardly will any of them deem that he himself, being but a man, can be
|
|
dishonoured by similar actions; neither will he rebuke any inclination
|
|
which may arise in his mind to say and do the like. And instead
|
|
of having any shame or self-control, he will be always whining and
|
|
lamenting on slight occasions.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is most true.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied; but that surely is what ought not to be, as the argument
|
|
has just proved to us; and by that proof we must abide until it is
|
|
disproved by a better.
|
|
|
|
It ought not to be.
|
|
|
|
Neither ought our guardians to be given to laughter. For a fit of
|
|
laughter which has been indulged to excess almost always produces a
|
|
violent reaction.
|
|
|
|
So I believe.
|
|
|
|
Then persons of worth, even if only mortal men, must not be represented
|
|
as overcome by laughter, and still less must such a representation of
|
|
the gods be allowed.
|
|
|
|
Still less of the gods, as you say, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall not suffer such an expression to be used about the gods as
|
|
that of Homer when he describes how
|
|
|
|
'Inextinguishable laughter arose among the blessed gods, when they saw
|
|
Hephaestus bustling about the mansion.'
|
|
|
|
On your views, we must not admit them.
|
|
|
|
On my views, if you like to father them on me; that we must not admit
|
|
them is certain.
|
|
|
|
Again, truth should be highly valued; if, as we were saying, a lie is
|
|
useless to the gods, and useful only as a medicine to men, then the
|
|
use of such medicines should be restricted to physicians; private
|
|
individuals have no business with them.
|
|
|
|
Clearly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then if any one at all is to have the privilege of lying, the rulers of
|
|
the State should be the persons; and they, in their dealings either with
|
|
enemies or with their own citizens, may be allowed to lie for the public
|
|
good. But nobody else should meddle with anything of the kind; and
|
|
although the rulers have this privilege, for a private man to lie to
|
|
them in return is to be deemed a more heinous fault than for the patient
|
|
or the pupil of a gymnasium not to speak the truth about his own bodily
|
|
illnesses to the physician or to the trainer, or for a sailor not to
|
|
tell the captain what is happening about the ship and the rest of the
|
|
crew, and how things are going with himself or his fellow sailors.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
If, then, the ruler catches anybody beside himself lying in the State,
|
|
|
|
'Any of the craftsmen, whether he be priest or physician or carpenter,'
|
|
|
|
he will punish him for introducing a practice which is equally
|
|
subversive and destructive of ship or State.
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, he said, if our idea of the State is ever carried out.
|
|
|
|
In the next place our youth must be temperate?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Are not the chief elements of temperance, speaking generally, obedience
|
|
to commanders and self-control in sensual pleasures?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall approve such language as that of Diomede in Homer,
|
|
|
|
'Friend, sit still and obey my word,'
|
|
|
|
and the verses which follow,
|
|
|
|
'The Greeks marched breathing prowess, ...in silent awe of their
|
|
leaders,'
|
|
|
|
and other sentiments of the same kind.
|
|
|
|
We shall.
|
|
|
|
What of this line,
|
|
|
|
'O heavy with wine, who hast the eyes of a dog and the heart of a stag,'
|
|
|
|
and of the words which follow? Would you say that these, or any similar
|
|
impertinences which private individuals are supposed to address to their
|
|
rulers, whether in verse or prose, are well or ill spoken?
|
|
|
|
They are ill spoken.
|
|
|
|
They may very possibly afford some amusement, but they do not conduce
|
|
to temperance. And therefore they are likely to do harm to our young
|
|
men--you would agree with me there?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And then, again, to make the wisest of men say that nothing in his
|
|
opinion is more glorious than
|
|
|
|
'When the tables are full of bread and meat, and the cup-bearer carries
|
|
round wine which he draws from the bowl and pours into the cups,'
|
|
|
|
is it fit or conducive to temperance for a young man to hear such words?
|
|
Or the verse
|
|
|
|
'The saddest of fates is to die and meet destiny from hunger?'
|
|
|
|
What would you say again to the tale of Zeus, who, while other gods and
|
|
men were asleep and he the only person awake, lay devising plans, but
|
|
forgot them all in a moment through his lust, and was so completely
|
|
overcome at the sight of Here that he would not even go into the hut,
|
|
but wanted to lie with her on the ground, declaring that he had never
|
|
been in such a state of rapture before, even when they first met one
|
|
another
|
|
|
|
'Without the knowledge of their parents;'
|
|
|
|
or that other tale of how Hephaestus, because of similar goings on, cast
|
|
a chain around Ares and Aphrodite?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he said, I am strongly of opinion that they ought not to hear
|
|
that sort of thing.
|
|
|
|
But any deeds of endurance which are done or told by famous men, these
|
|
they ought to see and hear; as, for example, what is said in the verses,
|
|
|
|
'He smote his breast, and thus reproached his heart, Endure, my heart;
|
|
far worse hast thou endured!'
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the next place, we must not let them be receivers of gifts or lovers
|
|
of money.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Neither must we sing to them of
|
|
|
|
'Gifts persuading gods, and persuading reverend kings.'
|
|
|
|
Neither is Phoenix, the tutor of Achilles, to be approved or deemed to
|
|
have given his pupil good counsel when he told him that he should take
|
|
the gifts of the Greeks and assist them; but that without a gift he
|
|
should not lay aside his anger. Neither will we believe or acknowledge
|
|
Achilles himself to have been such a lover of money that he took
|
|
Agamemnon's gifts, or that when he had received payment he restored the
|
|
dead body of Hector, but that without payment he was unwilling to do so.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly, he said, these are not sentiments which can be approved.
|
|
|
|
Loving Homer as I do, I hardly like to say that in attributing these
|
|
feelings to Achilles, or in believing that they are truly attributed
|
|
to him, he is guilty of downright impiety. As little can I believe the
|
|
narrative of his insolence to Apollo, where he says,
|
|
|
|
'Thou hast wronged me, O far-darter, most abominable of deities. Verily
|
|
I would be even with thee, if I had only the power;'
|
|
|
|
or his insubordination to the river-god, on whose divinity he is ready
|
|
to lay hands; or his offering to the dead Patroclus of his own hair,
|
|
which had been previously dedicated to the other river-god Spercheius,
|
|
and that he actually performed this vow; or that he dragged Hector round
|
|
the tomb of Patroclus, and slaughtered the captives at the pyre; of all
|
|
this I cannot believe that he was guilty, any more than I can allow
|
|
our citizens to believe that he, the wise Cheiron's pupil, the son of a
|
|
goddess and of Peleus who was the gentlest of men and third in descent
|
|
from Zeus, was so disordered in his wits as to be at one time the slave
|
|
of two seemingly inconsistent passions, meanness, not untainted by
|
|
avarice, combined with overweening contempt of gods and men.
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And let us equally refuse to believe, or allow to be repeated, the tale
|
|
of Theseus son of Poseidon, or of Peirithous son of Zeus, going forth as
|
|
they did to perpetrate a horrid rape; or of any other hero or son of
|
|
a god daring to do such impious and dreadful things as they falsely
|
|
ascribe to them in our day: and let us further compel the poets to
|
|
declare either that these acts were not done by them, or that they
|
|
were not the sons of gods;--both in the same breath they shall not be
|
|
permitted to affirm. We will not have them trying to persuade our youth
|
|
that the gods are the authors of evil, and that heroes are no better
|
|
than men--sentiments which, as we were saying, are neither pious nor
|
|
true, for we have already proved that evil cannot come from the gods.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
And further they are likely to have a bad effect on those who hear them;
|
|
for everybody will begin to excuse his own vices when he is convinced
|
|
that similar wickednesses are always being perpetrated by--
|
|
|
|
'The kindred of the gods, the relatives of Zeus, whose ancestral altar,
|
|
the altar of Zeus, is aloft in air on the peak of Ida,'
|
|
|
|
and who have
|
|
|
|
'the blood of deities yet flowing in their veins.'
|
|
|
|
And therefore let us put an end to such tales, lest they engender laxity
|
|
of morals among the young.
|
|
|
|
By all means, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But now that we are determining what classes of subjects are or are not
|
|
to be spoken of, let us see whether any have been omitted by us. The
|
|
manner in which gods and demigods and heroes and the world below should
|
|
be treated has been already laid down.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And what shall we say about men? That is clearly the remaining portion
|
|
of our subject.
|
|
|
|
Clearly so.
|
|
|
|
But we are not in a condition to answer this question at present, my
|
|
friend.
|
|
|
|
Why not?
|
|
|
|
Because, if I am not mistaken, we shall have to say that about men poets
|
|
and story-tellers are guilty of making the gravest misstatements when
|
|
they tell us that wicked men are often happy, and the good miserable;
|
|
and that injustice is profitable when undetected, but that justice is a
|
|
man's own loss and another's gain--these things we shall forbid them to
|
|
utter, and command them to sing and say the opposite.
|
|
|
|
To be sure we shall, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But if you admit that I am right in this, then I shall maintain that you
|
|
have implied the principle for which we have been all along contending.
|
|
|
|
I grant the truth of your inference.
|
|
|
|
That such things are or are not to be said about men is a question which
|
|
we cannot determine until we have discovered what justice is, and how
|
|
naturally advantageous to the possessor, whether he seem to be just or
|
|
not.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Enough of the subjects of poetry: let us now speak of the style; and
|
|
when this has been considered, both matter and manner will have been
|
|
completely treated.
|
|
|
|
I do not understand what you mean, said Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Then I must make you understand; and perhaps I may be more intelligible
|
|
if I put the matter in this way. You are aware, I suppose, that all
|
|
mythology and poetry is a narration of events, either past, present, or
|
|
to come?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And narration may be either simple narration, or imitation, or a union
|
|
of the two?
|
|
|
|
That again, he said, I do not quite understand.
|
|
|
|
I fear that I must be a ridiculous teacher when I have so much
|
|
difficulty in making myself apprehended. Like a bad speaker, therefore,
|
|
I will not take the whole of the subject, but will break a piece off in
|
|
illustration of my meaning. You know the first lines of the Iliad,
|
|
in which the poet says that Chryses prayed Agamemnon to release his
|
|
daughter, and that Agamemnon flew into a passion with him; whereupon
|
|
Chryses, failing of his object, invoked the anger of the God against the
|
|
Achaeans. Now as far as these lines,
|
|
|
|
'And he prayed all the Greeks, but especially the two sons of Atreus,
|
|
the chiefs of the people,'
|
|
|
|
the poet is speaking in his own person; he never leads us to suppose
|
|
that he is any one else. But in what follows he takes the person of
|
|
Chryses, and then he does all that he can to make us believe that the
|
|
speaker is not Homer, but the aged priest himself. And in this double
|
|
form he has cast the entire narrative of the events which occurred at
|
|
Troy and in Ithaca and throughout the Odyssey.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And a narrative it remains both in the speeches which the poet recites
|
|
from time to time and in the intermediate passages?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
But when the poet speaks in the person of another, may we not say that
|
|
he assimilates his style to that of the person who, as he informs you,
|
|
is going to speak?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And this assimilation of himself to another, either by the use of voice
|
|
or gesture, is the imitation of the person whose character he assumes?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
Then in this case the narrative of the poet may be said to proceed by
|
|
way of imitation?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Or, if the poet everywhere appears and never conceals himself, then
|
|
again the imitation is dropped, and his poetry becomes simple narration.
|
|
However, in order that I may make my meaning quite clear, and that you
|
|
may no more say, 'I don't understand,' I will show how the change might
|
|
be effected. If Homer had said, 'The priest came, having his daughter's
|
|
ransom in his hands, supplicating the Achaeans, and above all the
|
|
kings;' and then if, instead of speaking in the person of Chryses,
|
|
he had continued in his own person, the words would have been, not
|
|
imitation, but simple narration. The passage would have run as follows
|
|
(I am no poet, and therefore I drop the metre), 'The priest came and
|
|
prayed the gods on behalf of the Greeks that they might capture Troy
|
|
and return safely home, but begged that they would give him back his
|
|
daughter, and take the ransom which he brought, and respect the God.
|
|
Thus he spoke, and the other Greeks revered the priest and assented. But
|
|
Agamemnon was wroth, and bade him depart and not come again, lest the
|
|
staff and chaplets of the God should be of no avail to him--the daughter
|
|
of Chryses should not be released, he said--she should grow old with him
|
|
in Argos. And then he told him to go away and not to provoke him, if he
|
|
intended to get home unscathed. And the old man went away in fear and
|
|
silence, and, when he had left the camp, he called upon Apollo by his
|
|
many names, reminding him of everything which he had done pleasing to
|
|
him, whether in building his temples, or in offering sacrifice, and
|
|
praying that his good deeds might be returned to him, and that the
|
|
Achaeans might expiate his tears by the arrows of the god,'--and so on.
|
|
In this way the whole becomes simple narrative.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said.
|
|
|
|
Or you may suppose the opposite case--that the intermediate passages are
|
|
omitted, and the dialogue only left.
|
|
|
|
That also, he said, I understand; you mean, for example, as in tragedy.
|
|
|
|
You have conceived my meaning perfectly; and if I mistake not, what you
|
|
failed to apprehend before is now made clear to you, that poetry and
|
|
mythology are, in some cases, wholly imitative--instances of this are
|
|
supplied by tragedy and comedy; there is likewise the opposite style,
|
|
in which the poet is the only speaker--of this the dithyramb affords
|
|
the best example; and the combination of both is found in epic, and in
|
|
several other styles of poetry. Do I take you with me?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; I see now what you meant.
|
|
|
|
I will ask you to remember also what I began by saying, that we had done
|
|
with the subject and might proceed to the style.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
In saying this, I intended to imply that we must come to an
|
|
understanding about the mimetic art,--whether the poets, in narrating
|
|
their stories, are to be allowed by us to imitate, and if so, whether
|
|
in whole or in part, and if the latter, in what parts; or should all
|
|
imitation be prohibited?
|
|
|
|
You mean, I suspect, to ask whether tragedy and comedy shall be admitted
|
|
into our State?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but there may be more than this in question: I really do
|
|
not know as yet, but whither the argument may blow, thither we go.
|
|
|
|
And go we will, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, Adeimantus, let me ask you whether our guardians ought to be
|
|
imitators; or rather, has not this question been decided by the rule
|
|
already laid down that one man can only do one thing well, and not many;
|
|
and that if he attempt many, he will altogether fail of gaining much
|
|
reputation in any?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And this is equally true of imitation; no one man can imitate many
|
|
things as well as he would imitate a single one?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then the same person will hardly be able to play a serious part in life,
|
|
and at the same time to be an imitator and imitate many other parts as
|
|
well; for even when two species of imitation are nearly allied, the same
|
|
persons cannot succeed in both, as, for example, the writers of tragedy
|
|
and comedy--did you not just now call them imitations?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I did; and you are right in thinking that the same persons cannot
|
|
succeed in both.
|
|
|
|
Any more than they can be rhapsodists and actors at once?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Neither are comic and tragic actors the same; yet all these things are
|
|
but imitations.
|
|
|
|
They are so.
|
|
|
|
And human nature, Adeimantus, appears to have been coined into yet
|
|
smaller pieces, and to be as incapable of imitating many things well, as
|
|
of performing well the actions of which the imitations are copies.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
If then we adhere to our original notion and bear in mind that
|
|
our guardians, setting aside every other business, are to dedicate
|
|
themselves wholly to the maintenance of freedom in the State, making
|
|
this their craft, and engaging in no work which does not bear on this
|
|
end, they ought not to practise or imitate anything else; if they
|
|
imitate at all, they should imitate from youth upward only those
|
|
characters which are suitable to their profession--the courageous,
|
|
temperate, holy, free, and the like; but they should not depict or be
|
|
skilful at imitating any kind of illiberality or baseness, lest from
|
|
imitation they should come to be what they imitate. Did you never
|
|
observe how imitations, beginning in early youth and continuing far into
|
|
life, at length grow into habits and become a second nature, affecting
|
|
body, voice, and mind?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we will not allow those for whom we profess a care and of
|
|
whom we say that they ought to be good men, to imitate a woman, whether
|
|
young or old, quarrelling with her husband, or striving and vaunting
|
|
against the gods in conceit of her happiness, or when she is in
|
|
affliction, or sorrow, or weeping; and certainly not one who is in
|
|
sickness, love, or labour.
|
|
|
|
Very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither must they represent slaves, male or female, performing the
|
|
offices of slaves?
|
|
|
|
They must not.
|
|
|
|
And surely not bad men, whether cowards or any others, who do the
|
|
reverse of what we have just been prescribing, who scold or mock or
|
|
revile one another in drink or out of drink, or who in any other manner
|
|
sin against themselves and their neighbours in word or deed, as the
|
|
manner of such is. Neither should they be trained to imitate the action
|
|
or speech of men or women who are mad or bad; for madness, like vice, is
|
|
to be known but not to be practised or imitated.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Neither may they imitate smiths or other artificers, or oarsmen, or
|
|
boatswains, or the like?
|
|
|
|
How can they, he said, when they are not allowed to apply their minds to
|
|
the callings of any of these?
|
|
|
|
Nor may they imitate the neighing of horses, the bellowing of bulls, the
|
|
murmur of rivers and roll of the ocean, thunder, and all that sort of
|
|
thing?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, if madness be forbidden, neither may they copy the
|
|
behaviour of madmen.
|
|
|
|
You mean, I said, if I understand you aright, that there is one sort of
|
|
narrative style which may be employed by a truly good man when he has
|
|
anything to say, and that another sort will be used by a man of an
|
|
opposite character and education.
|
|
|
|
And which are these two sorts? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Suppose, I answered, that a just and good man in the course of a
|
|
narration comes on some saying or action of another good man,--I should
|
|
imagine that he will like to personate him, and will not be ashamed of
|
|
this sort of imitation: he will be most ready to play the part of the
|
|
good man when he is acting firmly and wisely; in a less degree when
|
|
he is overtaken by illness or love or drink, or has met with any other
|
|
disaster. But when he comes to a character which is unworthy of him, he
|
|
will not make a study of that; he will disdain such a person, and will
|
|
assume his likeness, if at all, for a moment only when he is performing
|
|
some good action; at other times he will be ashamed to play a part which
|
|
he has never practised, nor will he like to fashion and frame himself
|
|
after the baser models; he feels the employment of such an art, unless
|
|
in jest, to be beneath him, and his mind revolts at it.
|
|
|
|
So I should expect, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then he will adopt a mode of narration such as we have illustrated
|
|
out of Homer, that is to say, his style will be both imitative and
|
|
narrative; but there will be very little of the former, and a great deal
|
|
of the latter. Do you agree?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; that is the model which such a speaker must
|
|
necessarily take.
|
|
|
|
But there is another sort of character who will narrate anything, and,
|
|
the worse he is, the more unscrupulous he will be; nothing will be too
|
|
bad for him: and he will be ready to imitate anything, not as a joke,
|
|
but in right good earnest, and before a large company. As I was just now
|
|
saying, he will attempt to represent the roll of thunder, the noise of
|
|
wind and hail, or the creaking of wheels, and pulleys, and the various
|
|
sounds of flutes, pipes, trumpets, and all sorts of instruments: he will
|
|
bark like a dog, bleat like a sheep, or crow like a cock; his entire art
|
|
will consist in imitation of voice and gesture, and there will be very
|
|
little narration.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, will be his mode of speaking.
|
|
|
|
These, then, are the two kinds of style?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you would agree with me in saying that one of them is simple and has
|
|
but slight changes; and if the harmony and rhythm are also chosen
|
|
for their simplicity, the result is that the speaker, if he speaks
|
|
correctly, is always pretty much the same in style, and he will keep
|
|
within the limits of a single harmony (for the changes are not great),
|
|
and in like manner he will make use of nearly the same rhythm?
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the other requires all sorts of harmonies and all sorts of
|
|
rhythms, if the music and the style are to correspond, because the style
|
|
has all sorts of changes.
|
|
|
|
That is also perfectly true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And do not the two styles, or the mixture of the two, comprehend all
|
|
poetry, and every form of expression in words? No one can say anything
|
|
except in one or other of them or in both together.
|
|
|
|
They include all, he said.
|
|
|
|
And shall we receive into our State all the three styles, or one only of
|
|
the two unmixed styles? or would you include the mixed?
|
|
|
|
I should prefer only to admit the pure imitator of virtue.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, Adeimantus, but the mixed style is also very charming: and
|
|
indeed the pantomimic, which is the opposite of the one chosen by you,
|
|
is the most popular style with children and their attendants, and with
|
|
the world in general.
|
|
|
|
I do not deny it.
|
|
|
|
But I suppose you would argue that such a style is unsuitable to our
|
|
State, in which human nature is not twofold or manifold, for one man
|
|
plays one part only?
|
|
|
|
Yes; quite unsuitable.
|
|
|
|
And this is the reason why in our State, and in our State only, we
|
|
shall find a shoemaker to be a shoemaker and not a pilot also, and a
|
|
husbandman to be a husbandman and not a dicast also, and a soldier a
|
|
soldier and not a trader also, and the same throughout?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And therefore when any one of these pantomimic gentlemen, who are so
|
|
clever that they can imitate anything, comes to us, and makes a proposal
|
|
to exhibit himself and his poetry, we will fall down and worship him as
|
|
a sweet and holy and wonderful being; but we must also inform him that
|
|
in our State such as he are not permitted to exist; the law will not
|
|
allow them. And so when we have anointed him with myrrh, and set a
|
|
garland of wool upon his head, we shall send him away to another city.
|
|
For we mean to employ for our souls' health the rougher and severer poet
|
|
or story-teller, who will imitate the style of the virtuous only, and
|
|
will follow those models which we prescribed at first when we began the
|
|
education of our soldiers.
|
|
|
|
We certainly will, he said, if we have the power.
|
|
|
|
Then now, my friend, I said, that part of music or literary education
|
|
which relates to the story or myth may be considered to be finished; for
|
|
the matter and manner have both been discussed.
|
|
|
|
I think so too, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next in order will follow melody and song.
|
|
|
|
That is obvious.
|
|
|
|
Every one can see already what we ought to say about them, if we are to
|
|
be consistent with ourselves.
|
|
|
|
I fear, said Glaucon, laughing, that the word 'every one' hardly
|
|
includes me, for I cannot at the moment say what they should be; though
|
|
I may guess.
|
|
|
|
At any rate you can tell that a song or ode has three parts--the words,
|
|
the melody, and the rhythm; that degree of knowledge I may presuppose?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; so much as that you may.
|
|
|
|
And as for the words, there will surely be no difference between words
|
|
which are and which are not set to music; both will conform to the same
|
|
laws, and these have been already determined by us?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the melody and rhythm will depend upon the words?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
We were saying, when we spoke of the subject-matter, that we had no need
|
|
of lamentation and strains of sorrow?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And which are the harmonies expressive of sorrow? You are musical, and
|
|
can tell me.
|
|
|
|
The harmonies which you mean are the mixed or tenor Lydian, and the
|
|
full-toned or bass Lydian, and such like.
|
|
|
|
These then, I said, must be banished; even to women who have a character
|
|
to maintain they are of no use, and much less to men.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
In the next place, drunkenness and softness and indolence are utterly
|
|
unbecoming the character of our guardians.
|
|
|
|
Utterly unbecoming.
|
|
|
|
And which are the soft or drinking harmonies?
|
|
|
|
The Ionian, he replied, and the Lydian; they are termed 'relaxed.'
|
|
|
|
Well, and are these of any military use?
|
|
|
|
Quite the reverse, he replied; and if so the Dorian and the Phrygian are
|
|
the only ones which you have left.
|
|
|
|
I answered: Of the harmonies I know nothing, but I want to have one
|
|
warlike, to sound the note or accent which a brave man utters in the
|
|
hour of danger and stern resolve, or when his cause is failing, and he
|
|
is going to wounds or death or is overtaken by some other evil, and
|
|
at every such crisis meets the blows of fortune with firm step and a
|
|
determination to endure; and another to be used by him in times of peace
|
|
and freedom of action, when there is no pressure of necessity, and he is
|
|
seeking to persuade God by prayer, or man by instruction and admonition,
|
|
or on the other hand, when he is expressing his willingness to yield to
|
|
persuasion or entreaty or admonition, and which represents him when
|
|
by prudent conduct he has attained his end, not carried away by his
|
|
success, but acting moderately and wisely under the circumstances, and
|
|
acquiescing in the event. These two harmonies I ask you to leave;
|
|
the strain of necessity and the strain of freedom, the strain of the
|
|
unfortunate and the strain of the fortunate, the strain of courage, and
|
|
the strain of temperance; these, I say, leave.
|
|
|
|
And these, he replied, are the Dorian and Phrygian harmonies of which I
|
|
was just now speaking.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, if these and these only are to be used in our songs and
|
|
melodies, we shall not want multiplicity of notes or a panharmonic
|
|
scale?
|
|
|
|
I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall not maintain the artificers of lyres with three
|
|
corners and complex scales, or the makers of any other many-stringed
|
|
curiously-harmonised instruments?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
But what do you say to flute-makers and flute-players? Would you admit
|
|
them into our State when you reflect that in this composite use of
|
|
harmony the flute is worse than all the stringed instruments put
|
|
together; even the panharmonic music is only an imitation of the flute?
|
|
|
|
Clearly not.
|
|
|
|
There remain then only the lyre and the harp for use in the city, and
|
|
the shepherds may have a pipe in the country.
|
|
|
|
That is surely the conclusion to be drawn from the argument.
|
|
|
|
The preferring of Apollo and his instruments to Marsyas and his
|
|
instruments is not at all strange, I said.
|
|
|
|
Not at all, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And so, by the dog of Egypt, we have been unconsciously purging the
|
|
State, which not long ago we termed luxurious.
|
|
|
|
And we have done wisely, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then let us now finish the purgation, I said. Next in order to
|
|
harmonies, rhythms will naturally follow, and they should be subject to
|
|
the same rules, for we ought not to seek out complex systems of metre,
|
|
or metres of every kind, but rather to discover what rhythms are the
|
|
expressions of a courageous and harmonious life; and when we have found
|
|
them, we shall adapt the foot and the melody to words having a like
|
|
spirit, not the words to the foot and melody. To say what these rhythms
|
|
are will be your duty--you must teach me them, as you have already
|
|
taught me the harmonies.
|
|
|
|
But, indeed, he replied, I cannot tell you. I only know that there
|
|
are some three principles of rhythm out of which metrical systems are
|
|
framed, just as in sounds there are four notes (i.e. the four notes of
|
|
the tetrachord.) out of which all the harmonies are composed; that is
|
|
an observation which I have made. But of what sort of lives they are
|
|
severally the imitations I am unable to say.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we must take Damon into our counsels; and he will tell us
|
|
what rhythms are expressive of meanness, or insolence, or fury, or other
|
|
unworthiness, and what are to be reserved for the expression of opposite
|
|
feelings. And I think that I have an indistinct recollection of his
|
|
mentioning a complex Cretic rhythm; also a dactylic or heroic, and he
|
|
arranged them in some manner which I do not quite understand, making
|
|
the rhythms equal in the rise and fall of the foot, long and short
|
|
alternating; and, unless I am mistaken, he spoke of an iambic as well
|
|
as of a trochaic rhythm, and assigned to them short and long quantities.
|
|
Also in some cases he appeared to praise or censure the movement of the
|
|
foot quite as much as the rhythm; or perhaps a combination of the two;
|
|
for I am not certain what he meant. These matters, however, as I was
|
|
saying, had better be referred to Damon himself, for the analysis of
|
|
the subject would be difficult, you know? (Socrates expresses himself
|
|
carelessly in accordance with his assumed ignorance of the details of
|
|
the subject. In the first part of the sentence he appears to be speaking
|
|
of paeonic rhythms which are in the ratio of 3/2; in the second part, of
|
|
dactylic and anapaestic rhythms, which are in the ratio of 1/1; in the
|
|
last clause, of iambic and trochaic rhythms, which are in the ratio of
|
|
1/2 or 2/1.)
|
|
|
|
Rather so, I should say.
|
|
|
|
But there is no difficulty in seeing that grace or the absence of grace
|
|
is an effect of good or bad rhythm.
|
|
|
|
None at all.
|
|
|
|
And also that good and bad rhythm naturally assimilate to a good and bad
|
|
style; and that harmony and discord in like manner follow style; for our
|
|
principle is that rhythm and harmony are regulated by the words, and not
|
|
the words by them.
|
|
|
|
Just so, he said, they should follow the words.
|
|
|
|
And will not the words and the character of the style depend on the
|
|
temper of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And everything else on the style?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then beauty of style and harmony and grace and good rhythm depend on
|
|
simplicity,--I mean the true simplicity of a rightly and nobly ordered
|
|
mind and character, not that other simplicity which is only an euphemism
|
|
for folly?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And if our youth are to do their work in life, must they not make these
|
|
graces and harmonies their perpetual aim?
|
|
|
|
They must.
|
|
|
|
And surely the art of the painter and every other creative and
|
|
constructive art are full of them,--weaving, embroidery, architecture,
|
|
and every kind of manufacture; also nature, animal and vegetable,--in
|
|
all of them there is grace or the absence of grace. And ugliness and
|
|
discord and inharmonious motion are nearly allied to ill words and ill
|
|
nature, as grace and harmony are the twin sisters of goodness and virtue
|
|
and bear their likeness.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But shall our superintendence go no further, and are the poets only to
|
|
be required by us to express the image of the good in their works, on
|
|
pain, if they do anything else, of expulsion from our State? Or is the
|
|
same control to be extended to other artists, and are they also to be
|
|
prohibited from exhibiting the opposite forms of vice and intemperance
|
|
and meanness and indecency in sculpture and building and the other
|
|
creative arts; and is he who cannot conform to this rule of ours to be
|
|
prevented from practising his art in our State, lest the taste of our
|
|
citizens be corrupted by him? We would not have our guardians grow up
|
|
amid images of moral deformity, as in some noxious pasture, and there
|
|
browse and feed upon many a baneful herb and flower day by day, little
|
|
by little, until they silently gather a festering mass of corruption
|
|
in their own soul. Let our artists rather be those who are gifted to
|
|
discern the true nature of the beautiful and graceful; then will our
|
|
youth dwell in a land of health, amid fair sights and sounds, and
|
|
receive the good in everything; and beauty, the effluence of fair works,
|
|
shall flow into the eye and ear, like a health-giving breeze from a
|
|
purer region, and insensibly draw the soul from earliest years into
|
|
likeness and sympathy with the beauty of reason.
|
|
|
|
There can be no nobler training than that, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, I said, Glaucon, musical training is a more potent
|
|
instrument than any other, because rhythm and harmony find their way
|
|
into the inward places of the soul, on which they mightily fasten,
|
|
imparting grace, and making the soul of him who is rightly educated
|
|
graceful, or of him who is ill-educated ungraceful; and also because
|
|
he who has received this true education of the inner being will most
|
|
shrewdly perceive omissions or faults in art and nature, and with a true
|
|
taste, while he praises and rejoices over and receives into his soul the
|
|
good, and becomes noble and good, he will justly blame and hate the bad,
|
|
now in the days of his youth, even before he is able to know the reason
|
|
why; and when reason comes he will recognise and salute the friend with
|
|
whom his education has made him long familiar.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I quite agree with you in thinking that our youth should
|
|
be trained in music and on the grounds which you mention.
|
|
|
|
Just as in learning to read, I said, we were satisfied when we knew
|
|
the letters of the alphabet, which are very few, in all their recurring
|
|
sizes and combinations; not slighting them as unimportant whether they
|
|
occupy a space large or small, but everywhere eager to make them out;
|
|
and not thinking ourselves perfect in the art of reading until we
|
|
recognise them wherever they are found:
|
|
|
|
True--
|
|
|
|
Or, as we recognise the reflection of letters in the water, or in a
|
|
mirror, only when we know the letters themselves; the same art and study
|
|
giving us the knowledge of both:
|
|
|
|
Exactly--
|
|
|
|
Even so, as I maintain, neither we nor our guardians, whom we have to
|
|
educate, can ever become musical until we and they know the essential
|
|
forms of temperance, courage, liberality, magnificence, and their
|
|
kindred, as well as the contrary forms, in all their combinations,
|
|
and can recognise them and their images wherever they are found, not
|
|
slighting them either in small things or great, but believing them all
|
|
to be within the sphere of one art and study.
|
|
|
|
Most assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And when a beautiful soul harmonizes with a beautiful form, and the two
|
|
are cast in one mould, that will be the fairest of sights to him who has
|
|
an eye to see it?
|
|
|
|
The fairest indeed.
|
|
|
|
And the fairest is also the loveliest?
|
|
|
|
That may be assumed.
|
|
|
|
And the man who has the spirit of harmony will be most in love with the
|
|
loveliest; but he will not love him who is of an inharmonious soul?
|
|
|
|
That is true, he replied, if the deficiency be in his soul; but if there
|
|
be any merely bodily defect in another he will be patient of it, and
|
|
will love all the same.
|
|
|
|
I perceive, I said, that you have or have had experiences of this sort,
|
|
and I agree. But let me ask you another question: Has excess of pleasure
|
|
any affinity to temperance?
|
|
|
|
How can that be? he replied; pleasure deprives a man of the use of his
|
|
faculties quite as much as pain.
|
|
|
|
Or any affinity to virtue in general?
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
Any affinity to wantonness and intemperance?
|
|
|
|
Yes, the greatest.
|
|
|
|
And is there any greater or keener pleasure than that of sensual love?
|
|
|
|
No, nor a madder.
|
|
|
|
Whereas true love is a love of beauty and order--temperate and
|
|
harmonious?
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then no intemperance or madness should be allowed to approach true love?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then mad or intemperate pleasure must never be allowed to come near the
|
|
lover and his beloved; neither of them can have any part in it if their
|
|
love is of the right sort?
|
|
|
|
No, indeed, Socrates, it must never come near them.
|
|
|
|
Then I suppose that in the city which we are founding you would make a
|
|
law to the effect that a friend should use no other familiarity to
|
|
his love than a father would use to his son, and then only for a noble
|
|
purpose, and he must first have the other's consent; and this rule is
|
|
to limit him in all his intercourse, and he is never to be seen going
|
|
further, or, if he exceeds, he is to be deemed guilty of coarseness and
|
|
bad taste.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree, he said.
|
|
|
|
Thus much of music, which makes a fair ending; for what should be the
|
|
end of music if not the love of beauty?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said.
|
|
|
|
After music comes gymnastic, in which our youth are next to be trained.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Gymnastic as well as music should begin in early years; the training
|
|
in it should be careful and should continue through life. Now my belief
|
|
is,--and this is a matter upon which I should like to have your opinion
|
|
in confirmation of my own, but my own belief is,--not that the good body
|
|
by any bodily excellence improves the soul, but, on the contrary, that
|
|
the good soul, by her own excellence, improves the body as far as this
|
|
may be possible. What do you say?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I agree.
|
|
|
|
Then, to the mind when adequately trained, we shall be right in handing
|
|
over the more particular care of the body; and in order to avoid
|
|
prolixity we will now only give the general outlines of the subject.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
That they must abstain from intoxication has been already remarked by
|
|
us; for of all persons a guardian should be the last to get drunk and
|
|
not know where in the world he is.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that a guardian should require another guardian to take
|
|
care of him is ridiculous indeed.
|
|
|
|
But next, what shall we say of their food; for the men are in training
|
|
for the great contest of all--are they not?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And will the habit of body of our ordinary athletes be suited to them?
|
|
|
|
Why not?
|
|
|
|
I am afraid, I said, that a habit of body such as they have is but a
|
|
sleepy sort of thing, and rather perilous to health. Do you not observe
|
|
that these athletes sleep away their lives, and are liable to most
|
|
dangerous illnesses if they depart, in ever so slight a degree, from
|
|
their customary regimen?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I do.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, a finer sort of training will be required for our warrior
|
|
athletes, who are to be like wakeful dogs, and to see and hear with the
|
|
utmost keenness; amid the many changes of water and also of food, of
|
|
summer heat and winter cold, which they will have to endure when on a
|
|
campaign, they must not be liable to break down in health.
|
|
|
|
That is my view.
|
|
|
|
The really excellent gymnastic is twin sister of that simple music which
|
|
we were just now describing.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
Why, I conceive that there is a gymnastic which, like our music, is
|
|
simple and good; and especially the military gymnastic.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
My meaning may be learned from Homer; he, you know, feeds his heroes at
|
|
their feasts, when they are campaigning, on soldiers' fare; they have
|
|
no fish, although they are on the shores of the Hellespont, and they
|
|
are not allowed boiled meats but only roast, which is the food most
|
|
convenient for soldiers, requiring only that they should light a fire,
|
|
and not involving the trouble of carrying about pots and pans.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And I can hardly be mistaken in saying that sweet sauces are nowhere
|
|
mentioned in Homer. In proscribing them, however, he is not singular;
|
|
all professional athletes are well aware that a man who is to be in good
|
|
condition should take nothing of the kind.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; and knowing this, they are quite right in not taking them.
|
|
|
|
Then you would not approve of Syracusan dinners, and the refinements of
|
|
Sicilian cookery?
|
|
|
|
I think not.
|
|
|
|
Nor, if a man is to be in condition, would you allow him to have a
|
|
Corinthian girl as his fair friend?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Neither would you approve of the delicacies, as they are thought, of
|
|
Athenian confectionary?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
All such feeding and living may be rightly compared by us to melody and
|
|
song composed in the panharmonic style, and in all the rhythms.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
There complexity engendered licence, and here disease; whereas
|
|
simplicity in music was the parent of temperance in the soul; and
|
|
simplicity in gymnastic of health in the body.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when intemperance and diseases multiply in a State, halls of justice
|
|
and medicine are always being opened; and the arts of the doctor and the
|
|
lawyer give themselves airs, finding how keen is the interest which not
|
|
only the slaves but the freemen of a city take about them.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And yet what greater proof can there be of a bad and disgraceful state
|
|
of education than this, that not only artisans and the meaner sort of
|
|
people need the skill of first-rate physicians and judges, but also
|
|
those who would profess to have had a liberal education? Is it not
|
|
disgraceful, and a great sign of want of good-breeding, that a man
|
|
should have to go abroad for his law and physic because he has none of
|
|
his own at home, and must therefore surrender himself into the hands of
|
|
other men whom he makes lords and judges over him?
|
|
|
|
Of all things, he said, the most disgraceful.
|
|
|
|
Would you say 'most,' I replied, when you consider that there is
|
|
a further stage of the evil in which a man is not only a life-long
|
|
litigant, passing all his days in the courts, either as plaintiff or
|
|
defendant, but is actually led by his bad taste to pride himself on his
|
|
litigiousness; he imagines that he is a master in dishonesty; able to
|
|
take every crooked turn, and wriggle into and out of every hole,
|
|
bending like a withy and getting out of the way of justice: and all
|
|
for what?--in order to gain small points not worth mentioning, he not
|
|
knowing that so to order his life as to be able to do without a napping
|
|
judge is a far higher and nobler sort of thing. Is not that still more
|
|
disgraceful?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is still more disgraceful.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and to require the help of medicine, not when a wound
|
|
has to be cured, or on occasion of an epidemic, but just because, by
|
|
indolence and a habit of life such as we have been describing, men
|
|
fill themselves with waters and winds, as if their bodies were a marsh,
|
|
compelling the ingenious sons of Asclepius to find more names for
|
|
diseases, such as flatulence and catarrh; is not this, too, a disgrace?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, they do certainly give very strange and newfangled names
|
|
to diseases.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and I do not believe that there were any such diseases in
|
|
the days of Asclepius; and this I infer from the circumstance that the
|
|
hero Eurypylus, after he has been wounded in Homer, drinks a posset of
|
|
Pramnian wine well besprinkled with barley-meal and grated cheese, which
|
|
are certainly inflammatory, and yet the sons of Asclepius who were
|
|
at the Trojan war do not blame the damsel who gives him the drink, or
|
|
rebuke Patroclus, who is treating his case.
|
|
|
|
Well, he said, that was surely an extraordinary drink to be given to a
|
|
person in his condition.
|
|
|
|
Not so extraordinary, I replied, if you bear in mind that in former
|
|
days, as is commonly said, before the time of Herodicus, the guild of
|
|
Asclepius did not practise our present system of medicine, which may be
|
|
said to educate diseases. But Herodicus, being a trainer, and himself of
|
|
a sickly constitution, by a combination of training and doctoring found
|
|
out a way of torturing first and chiefly himself, and secondly the rest
|
|
of the world.
|
|
|
|
How was that? he said.
|
|
|
|
By the invention of lingering death; for he had a mortal disease which
|
|
he perpetually tended, and as recovery was out of the question, he
|
|
passed his entire life as a valetudinarian; he could do nothing but
|
|
attend upon himself, and he was in constant torment whenever he departed
|
|
in anything from his usual regimen, and so dying hard, by the help of
|
|
science he struggled on to old age.
|
|
|
|
A rare reward of his skill!
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; a reward which a man might fairly expect who never
|
|
understood that, if Asclepius did not instruct his descendants
|
|
in valetudinarian arts, the omission arose, not from ignorance or
|
|
inexperience of such a branch of medicine, but because he knew that in
|
|
all well-ordered states every individual has an occupation to which he
|
|
must attend, and has therefore no leisure to spend in continually being
|
|
ill. This we remark in the case of the artisan, but, ludicrously enough,
|
|
do not apply the same rule to people of the richer sort.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean this: When a carpenter is ill he asks the physician for a rough
|
|
and ready cure; an emetic or a purge or a cautery or the knife,--these
|
|
are his remedies. And if some one prescribes for him a course of
|
|
dietetics, and tells him that he must swathe and swaddle his head, and
|
|
all that sort of thing, he replies at once that he has no time to be
|
|
ill, and that he sees no good in a life which is spent in nursing
|
|
his disease to the neglect of his customary employment; and therefore
|
|
bidding good-bye to this sort of physician, he resumes his ordinary
|
|
habits, and either gets well and lives and does his business, or, if his
|
|
constitution fails, he dies and has no more trouble.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and a man in his condition of life ought to use the art of
|
|
medicine thus far only.
|
|
|
|
Has he not, I said, an occupation; and what profit would there be in his
|
|
life if he were deprived of his occupation?
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But with the rich man this is otherwise; of him we do not say that he
|
|
has any specially appointed work which he must perform, if he would
|
|
live.
|
|
|
|
He is generally supposed to have nothing to do.
|
|
|
|
Then you never heard of the saying of Phocylides, that as soon as a man
|
|
has a livelihood he should practise virtue?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, I think that he had better begin somewhat sooner.
|
|
|
|
Let us not have a dispute with him about this, I said; but rather ask
|
|
ourselves: Is the practice of virtue obligatory on the rich man, or
|
|
can he live without it? And if obligatory on him, then let us raise
|
|
a further question, whether this dieting of disorders, which is an
|
|
impediment to the application of the mind in carpentering and the
|
|
mechanical arts, does not equally stand in the way of the sentiment of
|
|
Phocylides?
|
|
|
|
Of that, he replied, there can be no doubt; such excessive care of the
|
|
body, when carried beyond the rules of gymnastic, is most inimical to
|
|
the practice of virtue.
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, I replied, and equally incompatible with the management of
|
|
a house, an army, or an office of state; and, what is most important
|
|
of all, irreconcileable with any kind of study or thought or
|
|
self-reflection--there is a constant suspicion that headache and
|
|
giddiness are to be ascribed to philosophy, and hence all practising or
|
|
making trial of virtue in the higher sense is absolutely stopped; for
|
|
a man is always fancying that he is being made ill, and is in constant
|
|
anxiety about the state of his body.
|
|
|
|
Yes, likely enough.
|
|
|
|
And therefore our politic Asclepius may be supposed to have exhibited
|
|
the power of his art only to persons who, being generally of healthy
|
|
constitution and habits of life, had a definite ailment; such as these
|
|
he cured by purges and operations, and bade them live as usual, herein
|
|
consulting the interests of the State; but bodies which disease had
|
|
penetrated through and through he would not have attempted to cure
|
|
by gradual processes of evacuation and infusion: he did not want to
|
|
lengthen out good-for-nothing lives, or to have weak fathers begetting
|
|
weaker sons;--if a man was not able to live in the ordinary way he
|
|
had no business to cure him; for such a cure would have been of no use
|
|
either to himself, or to the State.
|
|
|
|
Then, he said, you regard Asclepius as a statesman.
|
|
|
|
Clearly; and his character is further illustrated by his sons. Note that
|
|
they were heroes in the days of old and practised the medicines of which
|
|
I am speaking at the siege of Troy: You will remember how, when Pandarus
|
|
wounded Menelaus, they
|
|
|
|
'Sucked the blood out of the wound, and sprinkled soothing remedies,'
|
|
|
|
but they never prescribed what the patient was afterwards to eat or
|
|
drink in the case of Menelaus, any more than in the case of Eurypylus;
|
|
the remedies, as they conceived, were enough to heal any man who before
|
|
he was wounded was healthy and regular in his habits; and even though he
|
|
did happen to drink a posset of Pramnian wine, he might get well all the
|
|
same. But they would have nothing to do with unhealthy and intemperate
|
|
subjects, whose lives were of no use either to themselves or others; the
|
|
art of medicine was not designed for their good, and though they were as
|
|
rich as Midas, the sons of Asclepius would have declined to attend them.
|
|
|
|
They were very acute persons, those sons of Asclepius.
|
|
|
|
Naturally so, I replied. Nevertheless, the tragedians and Pindar
|
|
disobeying our behests, although they acknowledge that Asclepius was the
|
|
son of Apollo, say also that he was bribed into healing a rich man
|
|
who was at the point of death, and for this reason he was struck by
|
|
lightning. But we, in accordance with the principle already affirmed by
|
|
us, will not believe them when they tell us both;--if he was the son of
|
|
a god, we maintain that he was not avaricious; or, if he was avaricious,
|
|
he was not the son of a god.
|
|
|
|
All that, Socrates, is excellent; but I should like to put a question to
|
|
you: Ought there not to be good physicians in a State, and are not the
|
|
best those who have treated the greatest number of constitutions good
|
|
and bad? and are not the best judges in like manner those who are
|
|
acquainted with all sorts of moral natures?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, I too would have good judges and good physicians. But do
|
|
you know whom I think good?
|
|
|
|
Will you tell me?
|
|
|
|
I will, if I can. Let me however note that in the same question you join
|
|
two things which are not the same.
|
|
|
|
How so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, you join physicians and judges. Now the most skilful
|
|
physicians are those who, from their youth upwards, have combined with
|
|
the knowledge of their art the greatest experience of disease; they
|
|
had better not be robust in health, and should have had all manner of
|
|
diseases in their own persons. For the body, as I conceive, is not the
|
|
instrument with which they cure the body; in that case we could not
|
|
allow them ever to be or to have been sickly; but they cure the body
|
|
with the mind, and the mind which has become and is sick can cure
|
|
nothing.
|
|
|
|
That is very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But with the judge it is otherwise; since he governs mind by mind; he
|
|
ought not therefore to have been trained among vicious minds, and to
|
|
have associated with them from youth upwards, and to have gone through
|
|
the whole calendar of crime, only in order that he may quickly infer
|
|
the crimes of others as he might their bodily diseases from his own
|
|
self-consciousness; the honourable mind which is to form a healthy
|
|
judgment should have had no experience or contamination of evil habits
|
|
when young. And this is the reason why in youth good men often appear to
|
|
be simple, and are easily practised upon by the dishonest, because they
|
|
have no examples of what evil is in their own souls.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, they are far too apt to be deceived.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, I said, the judge should not be young; he should have learned
|
|
to know evil, not from his own soul, but from late and long observation
|
|
of the nature of evil in others: knowledge should be his guide, not
|
|
personal experience.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the ideal of a judge.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, and he will be a good man (which is my answer to your
|
|
question); for he is good who has a good soul. But the cunning and
|
|
suspicious nature of which we spoke,--he who has committed many crimes,
|
|
and fancies himself to be a master in wickedness, when he is amongst
|
|
his fellows, is wonderful in the precautions which he takes, because he
|
|
judges of them by himself: but when he gets into the company of men of
|
|
virtue, who have the experience of age, he appears to be a fool again,
|
|
owing to his unseasonable suspicions; he cannot recognise an honest man,
|
|
because he has no pattern of honesty in himself; at the same time, as
|
|
the bad are more numerous than the good, and he meets with them oftener,
|
|
he thinks himself, and is by others thought to be, rather wise than
|
|
foolish.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then the good and wise judge whom we are seeking is not this man, but
|
|
the other; for vice cannot know virtue too, but a virtuous nature,
|
|
educated by time, will acquire a knowledge both of virtue and vice: the
|
|
virtuous, and not the vicious, man has wisdom--in my opinion.
|
|
|
|
And in mine also.
|
|
|
|
This is the sort of medicine, and this is the sort of law, which you
|
|
will sanction in your state. They will minister to better natures,
|
|
giving health both of soul and of body; but those who are diseased in
|
|
their bodies they will leave to die, and the corrupt and incurable souls
|
|
they will put an end to themselves.
|
|
|
|
That is clearly the best thing both for the patients and for the State.
|
|
|
|
And thus our youth, having been educated only in that simple music
|
|
which, as we said, inspires temperance, will be reluctant to go to law.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the musician, who, keeping to the same track, is content to practise
|
|
the simple gymnastic, will have nothing to do with medicine unless in
|
|
some extreme case.
|
|
|
|
That I quite believe.
|
|
|
|
The very exercises and tolls which he undergoes are intended to
|
|
stimulate the spirited element of his nature, and not to increase his
|
|
strength; he will not, like common athletes, use exercise and regimen to
|
|
develope his muscles.
|
|
|
|
Very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither are the two arts of music and gymnastic really designed, as is
|
|
often supposed, the one for the training of the soul, the other for the
|
|
training of the body.
|
|
|
|
What then is the real object of them?
|
|
|
|
I believe, I said, that the teachers of both have in view chiefly the
|
|
improvement of the soul.
|
|
|
|
How can that be? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Did you never observe, I said, the effect on the mind itself of
|
|
exclusive devotion to gymnastic, or the opposite effect of an exclusive
|
|
devotion to music?
|
|
|
|
In what way shown? he said.
|
|
|
|
The one producing a temper of hardness and ferocity, the other of
|
|
softness and effeminacy, I replied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I am quite aware that the mere athlete becomes too much of
|
|
a savage, and that the mere musician is melted and softened beyond what
|
|
is good for him.
|
|
|
|
Yet surely, I said, this ferocity only comes from spirit, which, if
|
|
rightly educated, would give courage, but, if too much intensified, is
|
|
liable to become hard and brutal.
|
|
|
|
That I quite think.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand the philosopher will have the quality of gentleness.
|
|
And this also, when too much indulged, will turn to softness, but, if
|
|
educated rightly, will be gentle and moderate.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And in our opinion the guardians ought to have both these qualities?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And both should be in harmony?
|
|
|
|
Beyond question.
|
|
|
|
And the harmonious soul is both temperate and courageous?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the inharmonious is cowardly and boorish?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And, when a man allows music to play upon him and to pour into his soul
|
|
through the funnel of his ears those sweet and soft and melancholy airs
|
|
of which we were just now speaking, and his whole life is passed in
|
|
warbling and the delights of song; in the first stage of the process
|
|
the passion or spirit which is in him is tempered like iron, and made
|
|
useful, instead of brittle and useless. But, if he carries on the
|
|
softening and soothing process, in the next stage he begins to melt and
|
|
waste, until he has wasted away his spirit and cut out the sinews of his
|
|
soul; and he becomes a feeble warrior.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
If the element of spirit is naturally weak in him the change is speedily
|
|
accomplished, but if he have a good deal, then the power of music
|
|
weakening the spirit renders him excitable;--on the least provocation
|
|
he flames up at once, and is speedily extinguished; instead of having
|
|
spirit he grows irritable and passionate and is quite impracticable.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And so in gymnastics, if a man takes violent exercise and is a great
|
|
feeder, and the reverse of a great student of music and philosophy, at
|
|
first the high condition of his body fills him with pride and spirit,
|
|
and he becomes twice the man that he was.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And what happens? if he do nothing else, and holds no converse with the
|
|
Muses, does not even that intelligence which there may be in him, having
|
|
no taste of any sort of learning or enquiry or thought or culture,
|
|
grow feeble and dull and blind, his mind never waking up or receiving
|
|
nourishment, and his senses not being purged of their mists?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And he ends by becoming a hater of philosophy, uncivilized, never using
|
|
the weapon of persuasion,--he is like a wild beast, all violence and
|
|
fierceness, and knows no other way of dealing; and he lives in all
|
|
ignorance and evil conditions, and has no sense of propriety and grace.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And as there are two principles of human nature, one the spirited
|
|
and the other the philosophical, some God, as I should say, has given
|
|
mankind two arts answering to them (and only indirectly to the soul
|
|
and body), in order that these two principles (like the strings of
|
|
an instrument) may be relaxed or drawn tighter until they are duly
|
|
harmonized.
|
|
|
|
That appears to be the intention.
|
|
|
|
And he who mingles music with gymnastic in the fairest proportions, and
|
|
best attempers them to the soul, may be rightly called the true musician
|
|
and harmonist in a far higher sense than the tuner of the strings.
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
And such a presiding genius will be always required in our State if the
|
|
government is to last.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he will be absolutely necessary.
|
|
|
|
Such, then, are our principles of nurture and education: Where would be
|
|
the use of going into further details about the dances of our citizens,
|
|
or about their hunting and coursing, their gymnastic and equestrian
|
|
contests? For these all follow the general principle, and having found
|
|
that, we shall have no difficulty in discovering them.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that there will be no difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Very good, I said; then what is the next question? Must we not ask who
|
|
are to be rulers and who subjects?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt that the elder must rule the younger.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And that the best of these must rule.
|
|
|
|
That is also clear.
|
|
|
|
Now, are not the best husbandmen those who are most devoted to
|
|
husbandry?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And as we are to have the best of guardians for our city, must they not
|
|
be those who have most the character of guardians?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And to this end they ought to be wise and efficient, and to have a
|
|
special care of the State?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And a man will be most likely to care about that which he loves?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And he will be most likely to love that which he regards as having the
|
|
same interests with himself, and that of which the good or evil fortune
|
|
is supposed by him at any time most to affect his own?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then there must be a selection. Let us note among the guardians those
|
|
who in their whole life show the greatest eagerness to do what is for
|
|
the good of their country, and the greatest repugnance to do what is
|
|
against her interests.
|
|
|
|
Those are the right men.
|
|
|
|
And they will have to be watched at every age, in order that we may see
|
|
whether they preserve their resolution, and never, under the influence
|
|
either of force or enchantment, forget or cast off their sense of duty
|
|
to the State.
|
|
|
|
How cast off? he said.
|
|
|
|
I will explain to you, I replied. A resolution may go out of a man's
|
|
mind either with his will or against his will; with his will when he
|
|
gets rid of a falsehood and learns better, against his will whenever he
|
|
is deprived of a truth.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, the willing loss of a resolution; the meaning of
|
|
the unwilling I have yet to learn.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, do you not see that men are unwillingly deprived of good,
|
|
and willingly of evil? Is not to have lost the truth an evil, and to
|
|
possess the truth a good? and you would agree that to conceive things as
|
|
they are is to possess the truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied; I agree with you in thinking that mankind are deprived
|
|
of truth against their will.
|
|
|
|
And is not this involuntary deprivation caused either by theft, or
|
|
force, or enchantment?
|
|
|
|
Still, he replied, I do not understand you.
|
|
|
|
I fear that I must have been talking darkly, like the tragedians. I only
|
|
mean that some men are changed by persuasion and that others forget;
|
|
argument steals away the hearts of one class, and time of the other; and
|
|
this I call theft. Now you understand me?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Those again who are forced, are those whom the violence of some pain or
|
|
grief compels to change their opinion.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, and you are quite right.
|
|
|
|
And you would also acknowledge that the enchanted are those who change
|
|
their minds either under the softer influence of pleasure, or the
|
|
sterner influence of fear?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; everything that deceives may be said to enchant.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, as I was just now saying, we must enquire who are the best
|
|
guardians of their own conviction that what they think the interest
|
|
of the State is to be the rule of their lives. We must watch them from
|
|
their youth upwards, and make them perform actions in which they are
|
|
most likely to forget or to be deceived, and he who remembers and is
|
|
not deceived is to be selected, and he who fails in the trial is to be
|
|
rejected. That will be the way?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And there should also be toils and pains and conflicts prescribed for
|
|
them, in which they will be made to give further proof of the same
|
|
qualities.
|
|
|
|
Very right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And then, I said, we must try them with enchantments--that is the third
|
|
sort of test--and see what will be their behaviour: like those who take
|
|
colts amid noise and tumult to see if they are of a timid nature, so
|
|
must we take our youth amid terrors of some kind, and again pass them
|
|
into pleasures, and prove them more thoroughly than gold is proved in
|
|
the furnace, that we may discover whether they are armed against
|
|
all enchantments, and of a noble bearing always, good guardians of
|
|
themselves and of the music which they have learned, and retaining under
|
|
all circumstances a rhythmical and harmonious nature, such as will be
|
|
most serviceable to the individual and to the State. And he who at every
|
|
age, as boy and youth and in mature life, has come out of the trial
|
|
victorious and pure, shall be appointed a ruler and guardian of the
|
|
State; he shall be honoured in life and death, and shall receive
|
|
sepulture and other memorials of honour, the greatest that we have to
|
|
give. But him who fails, we must reject. I am inclined to think that
|
|
this is the sort of way in which our rulers and guardians should be
|
|
chosen and appointed. I speak generally, and not with any pretension to
|
|
exactness.
|
|
|
|
And, speaking generally, I agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
And perhaps the word 'guardian' in the fullest sense ought to be applied
|
|
to this higher class only who preserve us against foreign enemies and
|
|
maintain peace among our citizens at home, that the one may not have the
|
|
will, or the others the power, to harm us. The young men whom we
|
|
before called guardians may be more properly designated auxiliaries and
|
|
supporters of the principles of the rulers.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
How then may we devise one of those needful falsehoods of which we
|
|
lately spoke--just one royal lie which may deceive the rulers, if that
|
|
be possible, and at any rate the rest of the city?
|
|
|
|
What sort of lie? he said.
|
|
|
|
Nothing new, I replied; only an old Phoenician tale (Laws) of what has
|
|
often occurred before now in other places, (as the poets say, and have
|
|
made the world believe,) though not in our time, and I do not know
|
|
whether such an event could ever happen again, or could now even be made
|
|
probable, if it did.
|
|
|
|
How your words seem to hesitate on your lips!
|
|
|
|
You will not wonder, I replied, at my hesitation when you have heard.
|
|
|
|
Speak, he said, and fear not.
|
|
|
|
Well then, I will speak, although I really know not how to look you
|
|
in the face, or in what words to utter the audacious fiction, which
|
|
I propose to communicate gradually, first to the rulers, then to the
|
|
soldiers, and lastly to the people. They are to be told that their youth
|
|
was a dream, and the education and training which they received from
|
|
us, an appearance only; in reality during all that time they were being
|
|
formed and fed in the womb of the earth, where they themselves and their
|
|
arms and appurtenances were manufactured; when they were completed, the
|
|
earth, their mother, sent them up; and so, their country being their
|
|
mother and also their nurse, they are bound to advise for her good, and
|
|
to defend her against attacks, and her citizens they are to regard as
|
|
children of the earth and their own brothers.
|
|
|
|
You had good reason, he said, to be ashamed of the lie which you were
|
|
going to tell.
|
|
|
|
True, I replied, but there is more coming; I have only told you half.
|
|
Citizens, we shall say to them in our tale, you are brothers, yet God
|
|
has framed you differently. Some of you have the power of command, and
|
|
in the composition of these he has mingled gold, wherefore also
|
|
they have the greatest honour; others he has made of silver, to be
|
|
auxiliaries; others again who are to be husbandmen and craftsmen he has
|
|
composed of brass and iron; and the species will generally be preserved
|
|
in the children. But as all are of the same original stock, a golden
|
|
parent will sometimes have a silver son, or a silver parent a golden
|
|
son. And God proclaims as a first principle to the rulers, and above all
|
|
else, that there is nothing which they should so anxiously guard, or of
|
|
which they are to be such good guardians, as of the purity of the race.
|
|
They should observe what elements mingle in their offspring; for if the
|
|
son of a golden or silver parent has an admixture of brass and iron,
|
|
then nature orders a transposition of ranks, and the eye of the ruler
|
|
must not be pitiful towards the child because he has to descend in the
|
|
scale and become a husbandman or artisan, just as there may be sons of
|
|
artisans who having an admixture of gold or silver in them are raised
|
|
to honour, and become guardians or auxiliaries. For an oracle says that
|
|
when a man of brass or iron guards the State, it will be destroyed. Such
|
|
is the tale; is there any possibility of making our citizens believe in
|
|
it?
|
|
|
|
Not in the present generation, he replied; there is no way of
|
|
accomplishing this; but their sons may be made to believe in the tale,
|
|
and their sons' sons, and posterity after them.
|
|
|
|
I see the difficulty, I replied; yet the fostering of such a belief will
|
|
make them care more for the city and for one another. Enough, however,
|
|
of the fiction, which may now fly abroad upon the wings of rumour, while
|
|
we arm our earth-born heroes, and lead them forth under the command of
|
|
their rulers. Let them look round and select a spot whence they can best
|
|
suppress insurrection, if any prove refractory within, and also defend
|
|
themselves against enemies, who like wolves may come down on the fold
|
|
from without; there let them encamp, and when they have encamped, let
|
|
them sacrifice to the proper Gods and prepare their dwellings.
|
|
|
|
Just so, he said.
|
|
|
|
And their dwellings must be such as will shield them against the cold of
|
|
winter and the heat of summer.
|
|
|
|
I suppose that you mean houses, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but they must be the houses of soldiers, and not of
|
|
shop-keepers.
|
|
|
|
What is the difference? he said.
|
|
|
|
That I will endeavour to explain, I replied. To keep watch-dogs, who,
|
|
from want of discipline or hunger, or some evil habit or other, would
|
|
turn upon the sheep and worry them, and behave not like dogs but wolves,
|
|
would be a foul and monstrous thing in a shepherd?
|
|
|
|
Truly monstrous, he said.
|
|
|
|
And therefore every care must be taken that our auxiliaries, being
|
|
stronger than our citizens, may not grow to be too much for them and
|
|
become savage tyrants instead of friends and allies?
|
|
|
|
Yes, great care should be taken.
|
|
|
|
And would not a really good education furnish the best safeguard?
|
|
|
|
But they are well-educated already, he replied.
|
|
|
|
I cannot be so confident, my dear Glaucon, I said; I am much more
|
|
certain that they ought to be, and that true education, whatever that
|
|
may be, will have the greatest tendency to civilize and humanize them
|
|
in their relations to one another, and to those who are under their
|
|
protection.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And not only their education, but their habitations, and all that
|
|
belongs to them, should be such as will neither impair their virtue as
|
|
guardians, nor tempt them to prey upon the other citizens. Any man of
|
|
sense must acknowledge that.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
Then now let us consider what will be their way of life, if they are to
|
|
realize our idea of them. In the first place, none of them should have
|
|
any property of his own beyond what is absolutely necessary; neither
|
|
should they have a private house or store closed against any one who has
|
|
a mind to enter; their provisions should be only such as are required
|
|
by trained warriors, who are men of temperance and courage; they should
|
|
agree to receive from the citizens a fixed rate of pay, enough to meet
|
|
the expenses of the year and no more; and they will go to mess and live
|
|
together like soldiers in a camp. Gold and silver we will tell them
|
|
that they have from God; the diviner metal is within them, and they have
|
|
therefore no need of the dross which is current among men, and ought not
|
|
to pollute the divine by any such earthly admixture; for that commoner
|
|
metal has been the source of many unholy deeds, but their own is
|
|
undefiled. And they alone of all the citizens may not touch or handle
|
|
silver or gold, or be under the same roof with them, or wear them, or
|
|
drink from them. And this will be their salvation, and they will be the
|
|
saviours of the State. But should they ever acquire homes or lands
|
|
or moneys of their own, they will become housekeepers and husbandmen
|
|
instead of guardians, enemies and tyrants instead of allies of the other
|
|
citizens; hating and being hated, plotting and being plotted against,
|
|
they will pass their whole life in much greater terror of internal than
|
|
of external enemies, and the hour of ruin, both to themselves and to the
|
|
rest of the State, will be at hand. For all which reasons may we not
|
|
say that thus shall our State be ordered, and that these shall be the
|
|
regulations appointed by us for guardians concerning their houses and
|
|
all other matters?
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK IV.
|
|
|
|
Here Adeimantus interposed a question: How would you answer, Socrates,
|
|
said he, if a person were to say that you are making these people
|
|
miserable, and that they are the cause of their own unhappiness; the
|
|
city in fact belongs to them, but they are none the better for it;
|
|
whereas other men acquire lands, and build large and handsome houses,
|
|
and have everything handsome about them, offering sacrifices to the gods
|
|
on their own account, and practising hospitality; moreover, as you were
|
|
saying just now, they have gold and silver, and all that is usual among
|
|
the favourites of fortune; but our poor citizens are no better than
|
|
mercenaries who are quartered in the city and are always mounting guard?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and you may add that they are only fed, and not paid in
|
|
addition to their food, like other men; and therefore they cannot, if
|
|
they would, take a journey of pleasure; they have no money to spend on
|
|
a mistress or any other luxurious fancy, which, as the world goes, is
|
|
thought to be happiness; and many other accusations of the same nature
|
|
might be added.
|
|
|
|
But, said he, let us suppose all this to be included in the charge.
|
|
|
|
You mean to ask, I said, what will be our answer?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
If we proceed along the old path, my belief, I said, is that we shall
|
|
find the answer. And our answer will be that, even as they are, our
|
|
guardians may very likely be the happiest of men; but that our aim in
|
|
founding the State was not the disproportionate happiness of any one
|
|
class, but the greatest happiness of the whole; we thought that in a
|
|
State which is ordered with a view to the good of the whole we should
|
|
be most likely to find justice, and in the ill-ordered State injustice:
|
|
and, having found them, we might then decide which of the two is the
|
|
happier. At present, I take it, we are fashioning the happy State,
|
|
not piecemeal, or with a view of making a few happy citizens, but as a
|
|
whole; and by-and-by we will proceed to view the opposite kind of State.
|
|
Suppose that we were painting a statue, and some one came up to us
|
|
and said, Why do you not put the most beautiful colours on the most
|
|
beautiful parts of the body--the eyes ought to be purple, but you have
|
|
made them black--to him we might fairly answer, Sir, you would not
|
|
surely have us beautify the eyes to such a degree that they are no
|
|
longer eyes; consider rather whether, by giving this and the other
|
|
features their due proportion, we make the whole beautiful. And so I say
|
|
to you, do not compel us to assign to the guardians a sort of happiness
|
|
which will make them anything but guardians; for we too can clothe our
|
|
husbandmen in royal apparel, and set crowns of gold on their heads, and
|
|
bid them till the ground as much as they like, and no more. Our potters
|
|
also might be allowed to repose on couches, and feast by the fireside,
|
|
passing round the winecup, while their wheel is conveniently at hand,
|
|
and working at pottery only as much as they like; in this way we might
|
|
make every class happy--and then, as you imagine, the whole State would
|
|
be happy. But do not put this idea into our heads; for, if we listen
|
|
to you, the husbandman will be no longer a husbandman, the potter will
|
|
cease to be a potter, and no one will have the character of any distinct
|
|
class in the State. Now this is not of much consequence where the
|
|
corruption of society, and pretension to be what you are not, is
|
|
confined to cobblers; but when the guardians of the laws and of the
|
|
government are only seeming and not real guardians, then see how they
|
|
turn the State upside down; and on the other hand they alone have the
|
|
power of giving order and happiness to the State. We mean our guardians
|
|
to be true saviours and not the destroyers of the State, whereas our
|
|
opponent is thinking of peasants at a festival, who are enjoying a life
|
|
of revelry, not of citizens who are doing their duty to the State. But,
|
|
if so, we mean different things, and he is speaking of something which
|
|
is not a State. And therefore we must consider whether in appointing
|
|
our guardians we would look to their greatest happiness individually, or
|
|
whether this principle of happiness does not rather reside in the State
|
|
as a whole. But if the latter be the truth, then the guardians and
|
|
auxiliaries, and all others equally with them, must be compelled or
|
|
induced to do their own work in the best way. And thus the whole State
|
|
will grow up in a noble order, and the several classes will receive the
|
|
proportion of happiness which nature assigns to them.
|
|
|
|
I think that you are quite right.
|
|
|
|
I wonder whether you will agree with another remark which occurs to me.
|
|
|
|
What may that be?
|
|
|
|
There seem to be two causes of the deterioration of the arts.
|
|
|
|
What are they?
|
|
|
|
Wealth, I said, and poverty.
|
|
|
|
How do they act?
|
|
|
|
The process is as follows: When a potter becomes rich, will he, think
|
|
you, any longer take the same pains with his art?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
He will grow more and more indolent and careless?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And the result will be that he becomes a worse potter?
|
|
|
|
Yes; he greatly deteriorates.
|
|
|
|
But, on the other hand, if he has no money, and cannot provide himself
|
|
with tools or instruments, he will not work equally well himself, nor
|
|
will he teach his sons or apprentices to work equally well.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then, under the influence either of poverty or of wealth, workmen and
|
|
their work are equally liable to degenerate?
|
|
|
|
That is evident.
|
|
|
|
Here, then, is a discovery of new evils, I said, against which
|
|
the guardians will have to watch, or they will creep into the city
|
|
unobserved.
|
|
|
|
What evils?
|
|
|
|
Wealth, I said, and poverty; the one is the parent of luxury and
|
|
indolence, and the other of meanness and viciousness, and both of
|
|
discontent.
|
|
|
|
That is very true, he replied; but still I should like to know,
|
|
Socrates, how our city will be able to go to war, especially against an
|
|
enemy who is rich and powerful, if deprived of the sinews of war.
|
|
|
|
There would certainly be a difficulty, I replied, in going to war with
|
|
one such enemy; but there is no difficulty where there are two of them.
|
|
|
|
How so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, I said, if we have to fight, our side will be
|
|
trained warriors fighting against an army of rich men.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And do you not suppose, Adeimantus, that a single boxer who was
|
|
perfect in his art would easily be a match for two stout and well-to-do
|
|
gentlemen who were not boxers?
|
|
|
|
Hardly, if they came upon him at once.
|
|
|
|
What, now, I said, if he were able to run away and then turn and strike
|
|
at the one who first came up? And supposing he were to do this several
|
|
times under the heat of a scorching sun, might he not, being an expert,
|
|
overturn more than one stout personage?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, there would be nothing wonderful in that.
|
|
|
|
And yet rich men probably have a greater superiority in the science and
|
|
practise of boxing than they have in military qualities.
|
|
|
|
Likely enough.
|
|
|
|
Then we may assume that our athletes will be able to fight with two or
|
|
three times their own number?
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, for I think you right.
|
|
|
|
And suppose that, before engaging, our citizens send an embassy to one
|
|
of the two cities, telling them what is the truth: Silver and gold we
|
|
neither have nor are permitted to have, but you may; do you therefore
|
|
come and help us in war, and take the spoils of the other city: Who,
|
|
on hearing these words, would choose to fight against lean wiry dogs,
|
|
rather than, with the dogs on their side, against fat and tender sheep?
|
|
|
|
That is not likely; and yet there might be a danger to the poor State if
|
|
the wealth of many States were to be gathered into one.
|
|
|
|
But how simple of you to use the term State at all of any but our own!
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
You ought to speak of other States in the plural number; not one of
|
|
them is a city, but many cities, as they say in the game. For indeed any
|
|
city, however small, is in fact divided into two, one the city of the
|
|
poor, the other of the rich; these are at war with one another; and in
|
|
either there are many smaller divisions, and you would be altogether
|
|
beside the mark if you treated them all as a single State. But if you
|
|
deal with them as many, and give the wealth or power or persons of the
|
|
one to the others, you will always have a great many friends and not
|
|
many enemies. And your State, while the wise order which has now been
|
|
prescribed continues to prevail in her, will be the greatest of States,
|
|
I do not mean to say in reputation or appearance, but in deed and truth,
|
|
though she number not more than a thousand defenders. A single State
|
|
which is her equal you will hardly find, either among Hellenes or
|
|
barbarians, though many that appear to be as great and many times
|
|
greater.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And what, I said, will be the best limit for our rulers to fix when they
|
|
are considering the size of the State and the amount of territory which
|
|
they are to include, and beyond which they will not go?
|
|
|
|
What limit would you propose?
|
|
|
|
I would allow the State to increase so far as is consistent with unity;
|
|
that, I think, is the proper limit.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Here then, I said, is another order which will have to be conveyed to
|
|
our guardians: Let our city be accounted neither large nor small, but
|
|
one and self-sufficing.
|
|
|
|
And surely, said he, this is not a very severe order which we impose
|
|
upon them.
|
|
|
|
And the other, said I, of which we were speaking before is lighter
|
|
still,--I mean the duty of degrading the offspring of the guardians when
|
|
inferior, and of elevating into the rank of guardians the offspring of
|
|
the lower classes, when naturally superior. The intention was, that, in
|
|
the case of the citizens generally, each individual should be put to the
|
|
use for which nature intended him, one to one work, and then every man
|
|
would do his own business, and be one and not many; and so the whole
|
|
city would be one and not many.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that is not so difficult.
|
|
|
|
The regulations which we are prescribing, my good Adeimantus, are not,
|
|
as might be supposed, a number of great principles, but trifles all,
|
|
if care be taken, as the saying is, of the one great thing,--a thing,
|
|
however, which I would rather call, not great, but sufficient for our
|
|
purpose.
|
|
|
|
What may that be? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Education, I said, and nurture: If our citizens are well educated,
|
|
and grow into sensible men, they will easily see their way through all
|
|
these, as well as other matters which I omit; such, for example, as
|
|
marriage, the possession of women and the procreation of children, which
|
|
will all follow the general principle that friends have all things in
|
|
common, as the proverb says.
|
|
|
|
That will be the best way of settling them.
|
|
|
|
Also, I said, the State, if once started well, moves with accumulating
|
|
force like a wheel. For good nurture and education implant good
|
|
constitutions, and these good constitutions taking root in a good
|
|
education improve more and more, and this improvement affects the breed
|
|
in man as in other animals.
|
|
|
|
Very possibly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then to sum up: This is the point to which, above all, the attention of
|
|
our rulers should be directed,--that music and gymnastic be preserved in
|
|
their original form, and no innovation made. They must do their utmost
|
|
to maintain them intact. And when any one says that mankind most regard
|
|
|
|
'The newest song which the singers have,'
|
|
|
|
they will be afraid that he may be praising, not new songs, but a new
|
|
kind of song; and this ought not to be praised, or conceived to be the
|
|
meaning of the poet; for any musical innovation is full of danger to the
|
|
whole State, and ought to be prohibited. So Damon tells me, and I
|
|
can quite believe him;--he says that when modes of music change, the
|
|
fundamental laws of the State always change with them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Adeimantus; and you may add my suffrage to Damon's and your
|
|
own.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, our guardians must lay the foundations of their fortress
|
|
in music?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; the lawlessness of which you speak too easily steals in.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, in the form of amusement; and at first sight it appears
|
|
harmless.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, he said, and there is no harm; were it not that little by
|
|
little this spirit of licence, finding a home, imperceptibly penetrates
|
|
into manners and customs; whence, issuing with greater force, it invades
|
|
contracts between man and man, and from contracts goes on to laws and
|
|
constitutions, in utter recklessness, ending at last, Socrates, by an
|
|
overthrow of all rights, private as well as public.
|
|
|
|
Is that true? I said.
|
|
|
|
That is my belief, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then, as I was saying, our youth should be trained from the first in
|
|
a stricter system, for if amusements become lawless, and the youths
|
|
themselves become lawless, they can never grow up into well-conducted
|
|
and virtuous citizens.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And when they have made a good beginning in play, and by the help of
|
|
music have gained the habit of good order, then this habit of order, in
|
|
a manner how unlike the lawless play of the others! will accompany them
|
|
in all their actions and be a principle of growth to them, and if there
|
|
be any fallen places in the State will raise them up again.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Thus educated, they will invent for themselves any lesser rules which
|
|
their predecessors have altogether neglected.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean such things as these:--when the young are to be silent before
|
|
their elders; how they are to show respect to them by standing and
|
|
making them sit; what honour is due to parents; what garments or shoes
|
|
are to be worn; the mode of dressing the hair; deportment and manners in
|
|
general. You would agree with me?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But there is, I think, small wisdom in legislating about such
|
|
matters,--I doubt if it is ever done; nor are any precise written
|
|
enactments about them likely to be lasting.
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
It would seem, Adeimantus, that the direction in which education starts
|
|
a man, will determine his future life. Does not like always attract
|
|
like?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Until some one rare and grand result is reached which may be good, and
|
|
may be the reverse of good?
|
|
|
|
That is not to be denied.
|
|
|
|
And for this reason, I said, I shall not attempt to legislate further
|
|
about them.
|
|
|
|
Naturally enough, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, and about the business of the agora, and the ordinary dealings
|
|
between man and man, or again about agreements with artisans; about
|
|
insult and injury, or the commencement of actions, and the appointment
|
|
of juries, what would you say? there may also arise questions about
|
|
any impositions and exactions of market and harbour dues which may
|
|
be required, and in general about the regulations of markets, police,
|
|
harbours, and the like. But, oh heavens! shall we condescend to
|
|
legislate on any of these particulars?
|
|
|
|
I think, he said, that there is no need to impose laws about them on
|
|
good men; what regulations are necessary they will find out soon enough
|
|
for themselves.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, my friend, if God will only preserve to them the laws which
|
|
we have given them.
|
|
|
|
And without divine help, said Adeimantus, they will go on for ever
|
|
making and mending their laws and their lives in the hope of attaining
|
|
perfection.
|
|
|
|
You would compare them, I said, to those invalids who, having no
|
|
self-restraint, will not leave off their habits of intemperance?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and what a delightful life they lead! they are always
|
|
doctoring and increasing and complicating their disorders, and always
|
|
fancying that they will be cured by any nostrum which anybody advises
|
|
them to try.
|
|
|
|
Such cases are very common, he said, with invalids of this sort.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied; and the charming thing is that they deem him their worst
|
|
enemy who tells them the truth, which is simply that, unless they give
|
|
up eating and drinking and wenching and idling, neither drug nor cautery
|
|
nor spell nor amulet nor any other remedy will avail.
|
|
|
|
Charming! he replied. I see nothing charming in going into a passion
|
|
with a man who tells you what is right.
|
|
|
|
These gentlemen, I said, do not seem to be in your good graces.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
Nor would you praise the behaviour of States which act like the men whom
|
|
I was just now describing. For are there not ill-ordered States in
|
|
which the citizens are forbidden under pain of death to alter the
|
|
constitution; and yet he who most sweetly courts those who live under
|
|
this regime and indulges them and fawns upon them and is skilful in
|
|
anticipating and gratifying their humours is held to be a great and
|
|
good statesman--do not these States resemble the persons whom I was
|
|
describing?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; the States are as bad as the men; and I am very far from
|
|
praising them.
|
|
|
|
But do you not admire, I said, the coolness and dexterity of these ready
|
|
ministers of political corruption?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I do; but not of all of them, for there are some whom
|
|
the applause of the multitude has deluded into the belief that they are
|
|
really statesmen, and these are not much to be admired.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? I said; you should have more feeling for them. When a
|
|
man cannot measure, and a great many others who cannot measure declare
|
|
that he is four cubits high, can he help believing what they say?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, certainly not in that case.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, do not be angry with them; for are they not as good as a
|
|
play, trying their hand at paltry reforms such as I was describing; they
|
|
are always fancying that by legislation they will make an end of frauds
|
|
in contracts, and the other rascalities which I was mentioning, not
|
|
knowing that they are in reality cutting off the heads of a hydra?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that is just what they are doing.
|
|
|
|
I conceive, I said, that the true legislator will not trouble
|
|
himself with this class of enactments whether concerning laws or the
|
|
constitution either in an ill-ordered or in a well-ordered State; for
|
|
in the former they are quite useless, and in the latter there will be no
|
|
difficulty in devising them; and many of them will naturally flow out of
|
|
our previous regulations.
|
|
|
|
What, then, he said, is still remaining to us of the work of
|
|
legislation?
|
|
|
|
Nothing to us, I replied; but to Apollo, the God of Delphi, there
|
|
remains the ordering of the greatest and noblest and chiefest things of
|
|
all.
|
|
|
|
Which are they? he said.
|
|
|
|
The institution of temples and sacrifices, and the entire service of
|
|
gods, demigods, and heroes; also the ordering of the repositories of
|
|
the dead, and the rites which have to be observed by him who would
|
|
propitiate the inhabitants of the world below. These are matters of
|
|
which we are ignorant ourselves, and as founders of a city we should be
|
|
unwise in trusting them to any interpreter but our ancestral deity. He
|
|
is the god who sits in the centre, on the navel of the earth, and he is
|
|
the interpreter of religion to all mankind.
|
|
|
|
You are right, and we will do as you propose.
|
|
|
|
But where, amid all this, is justice? son of Ariston, tell me where. Now
|
|
that our city has been made habitable, light a candle and search, and
|
|
get your brother and Polemarchus and the rest of our friends to help,
|
|
and let us see where in it we can discover justice and where injustice,
|
|
and in what they differ from one another, and which of them the man who
|
|
would be happy should have for his portion, whether seen or unseen by
|
|
gods and men.
|
|
|
|
Nonsense, said Glaucon: did you not promise to search yourself, saying
|
|
that for you not to help justice in her need would be an impiety?
|
|
|
|
I do not deny that I said so, and as you remind me, I will be as good as
|
|
my word; but you must join.
|
|
|
|
We will, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, I hope to make the discovery in this way: I mean to begin
|
|
with the assumption that our State, if rightly ordered, is perfect.
|
|
|
|
That is most certain.
|
|
|
|
And being perfect, is therefore wise and valiant and temperate and just.
|
|
|
|
That is likewise clear.
|
|
|
|
And whichever of these qualities we find in the State, the one which is
|
|
not found will be the residue?
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
If there were four things, and we were searching for one of them,
|
|
wherever it might be, the one sought for might be known to us from the
|
|
first, and there would be no further trouble; or we might know the other
|
|
three first, and then the fourth would clearly be the one left.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And is not a similar method to be pursued about the virtues, which are
|
|
also four in number?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
First among the virtues found in the State, wisdom comes into view, and
|
|
in this I detect a certain peculiarity.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The State which we have been describing is said to be wise as being good
|
|
in counsel?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And good counsel is clearly a kind of knowledge, for not by ignorance,
|
|
but by knowledge, do men counsel well?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the kinds of knowledge in a State are many and diverse?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
There is the knowledge of the carpenter; but is that the sort of
|
|
knowledge which gives a city the title of wise and good in counsel?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not; that would only give a city the reputation of skill in
|
|
carpentering.
|
|
|
|
Then a city is not to be called wise because possessing a knowledge
|
|
which counsels for the best about wooden implements?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Nor by reason of a knowledge which advises about brazen pots, I said,
|
|
nor as possessing any other similar knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Not by reason of any of them, he said.
|
|
|
|
Nor yet by reason of a knowledge which cultivates the earth; that would
|
|
give the city the name of agricultural?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and is there any knowledge in our recently-founded State
|
|
among any of the citizens which advises, not about any particular thing
|
|
in the State, but about the whole, and considers how a State can best
|
|
deal with itself and with other States?
|
|
|
|
There certainly is.
|
|
|
|
And what is this knowledge, and among whom is it found? I asked.
|
|
|
|
It is the knowledge of the guardians, he replied, and is found among
|
|
those whom we were just now describing as perfect guardians.
|
|
|
|
And what is the name which the city derives from the possession of this
|
|
sort of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
The name of good in counsel and truly wise.
|
|
|
|
And will there be in our city more of these true guardians or more
|
|
smiths?
|
|
|
|
The smiths, he replied, will be far more numerous.
|
|
|
|
Will not the guardians be the smallest of all the classes who receive a
|
|
name from the profession of some kind of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Much the smallest.
|
|
|
|
And so by reason of the smallest part or class, and of the knowledge
|
|
which resides in this presiding and ruling part of itself, the whole
|
|
State, being thus constituted according to nature, will be wise; and
|
|
this, which has the only knowledge worthy to be called wisdom, has been
|
|
ordained by nature to be of all classes the least.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
Thus, then, I said, the nature and place in the State of one of the four
|
|
virtues has somehow or other been discovered.
|
|
|
|
And, in my humble opinion, very satisfactorily discovered, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Again, I said, there is no difficulty in seeing the nature of courage,
|
|
and in what part that quality resides which gives the name of courageous
|
|
to the State.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, every one who calls any State courageous or cowardly, will
|
|
be thinking of the part which fights and goes out to war on the State's
|
|
behalf.
|
|
|
|
No one, he replied, would ever think of any other.
|
|
|
|
The rest of the citizens may be courageous or may be cowardly, but their
|
|
courage or cowardice will not, as I conceive, have the effect of making
|
|
the city either the one or the other.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
The city will be courageous in virtue of a portion of herself which
|
|
preserves under all circumstances that opinion about the nature of
|
|
things to be feared and not to be feared in which our legislator
|
|
educated them; and this is what you term courage.
|
|
|
|
I should like to hear what you are saying once more, for I do not think
|
|
that I perfectly understand you.
|
|
|
|
I mean that courage is a kind of salvation.
|
|
|
|
Salvation of what?
|
|
|
|
Of the opinion respecting things to be feared, what they are and of
|
|
what nature, which the law implants through education; and I mean by the
|
|
words 'under all circumstances' to intimate that in pleasure or in pain,
|
|
or under the influence of desire or fear, a man preserves, and does not
|
|
lose this opinion. Shall I give you an illustration?
|
|
|
|
If you please.
|
|
|
|
You know, I said, that dyers, when they want to dye wool for making the
|
|
true sea-purple, begin by selecting their white colour first; this they
|
|
prepare and dress with much care and pains, in order that the white
|
|
ground may take the purple hue in full perfection. The dyeing then
|
|
proceeds; and whatever is dyed in this manner becomes a fast colour,
|
|
and no washing either with lyes or without them can take away the bloom.
|
|
But, when the ground has not been duly prepared, you will have noticed
|
|
how poor is the look either of purple or of any other colour.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; I know that they have a washed-out and ridiculous
|
|
appearance.
|
|
|
|
Then now, I said, you will understand what our object was in selecting
|
|
our soldiers, and educating them in music and gymnastic; we were
|
|
contriving influences which would prepare them to take the dye of the
|
|
laws in perfection, and the colour of their opinion about dangers and
|
|
of every other opinion was to be indelibly fixed by their nurture
|
|
and training, not to be washed away by such potent lyes as
|
|
pleasure--mightier agent far in washing the soul than any soda or lye;
|
|
or by sorrow, fear, and desire, the mightiest of all other solvents. And
|
|
this sort of universal saving power of true opinion in conformity with
|
|
law about real and false dangers I call and maintain to be courage,
|
|
unless you disagree.
|
|
|
|
But I agree, he replied; for I suppose that you mean to exclude mere
|
|
uninstructed courage, such as that of a wild beast or of a slave--this,
|
|
in your opinion, is not the courage which the law ordains, and ought to
|
|
have another name.
|
|
|
|
Most certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then I may infer courage to be such as you describe?
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, said I, you may, and if you add the words 'of a citizen,'
|
|
you will not be far wrong;--hereafter, if you like, we will carry the
|
|
examination further, but at present we are seeking not for courage but
|
|
justice; and for the purpose of our enquiry we have said enough.
|
|
|
|
You are right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Two virtues remain to be discovered in the State--first, temperance, and
|
|
then justice which is the end of our search.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Now, can we find justice without troubling ourselves about temperance?
|
|
|
|
I do not know how that can be accomplished, he said, nor do I desire
|
|
that justice should be brought to light and temperance lost sight of;
|
|
and therefore I wish that you would do me the favour of considering
|
|
temperance first.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, I replied, I should not be justified in refusing your
|
|
request.
|
|
|
|
Then consider, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied; I will; and as far as I can at present see, the virtue
|
|
of temperance has more of the nature of harmony and symphony than the
|
|
preceding.
|
|
|
|
How so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Temperance, I replied, is the ordering or controlling of certain
|
|
pleasures and desires; this is curiously enough implied in the saying of
|
|
'a man being his own master;' and other traces of the same notion may be
|
|
found in language.
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he said.
|
|
|
|
There is something ridiculous in the expression 'master of himself;' for
|
|
the master is also the servant and the servant the master; and in all
|
|
these modes of speaking the same person is denoted.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
The meaning is, I believe, that in the human soul there is a better and
|
|
also a worse principle; and when the better has the worse under control,
|
|
then a man is said to be master of himself; and this is a term of
|
|
praise: but when, owing to evil education or association, the better
|
|
principle, which is also the smaller, is overwhelmed by the greater mass
|
|
of the worse--in this case he is blamed and is called the slave of self
|
|
and unprincipled.
|
|
|
|
Yes, there is reason in that.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, look at our newly-created State, and there you will
|
|
find one of these two conditions realized; for the State, as you
|
|
will acknowledge, may be justly called master of itself, if the words
|
|
'temperance' and 'self-mastery' truly express the rule of the better
|
|
part over the worse.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I see that what you say is true.
|
|
|
|
Let me further note that the manifold and complex pleasures and desires
|
|
and pains are generally found in children and women and servants, and in
|
|
the freemen so called who are of the lowest and more numerous class.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the simple and moderate desires which follow reason, and are
|
|
under the guidance of mind and true opinion, are to be found only in a
|
|
few, and those the best born and best educated.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
These two, as you may perceive, have a place in our State; and the
|
|
meaner desires of the many are held down by the virtuous desires and
|
|
wisdom of the few.
|
|
|
|
That I perceive, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then if there be any city which may be described as master of its own
|
|
pleasures and desires, and master of itself, ours may claim such a
|
|
designation?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
It may also be called temperate, and for the same reasons?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And if there be any State in which rulers and subjects will be agreed as
|
|
to the question who are to rule, that again will be our State?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
And the citizens being thus agreed among themselves, in which class will
|
|
temperance be found--in the rulers or in the subjects?
|
|
|
|
In both, as I should imagine, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Do you observe that we were not far wrong in our guess that temperance
|
|
was a sort of harmony?
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
Why, because temperance is unlike courage and wisdom, each of which
|
|
resides in a part only, the one making the State wise and the other
|
|
valiant; not so temperance, which extends to the whole, and runs through
|
|
all the notes of the scale, and produces a harmony of the weaker and the
|
|
stronger and the middle class, whether you suppose them to be stronger
|
|
or weaker in wisdom or power or numbers or wealth, or anything else.
|
|
Most truly then may we deem temperance to be the agreement of the
|
|
naturally superior and inferior, as to the right to rule of either, both
|
|
in states and individuals.
|
|
|
|
I entirely agree with you.
|
|
|
|
And so, I said, we may consider three out of the four virtues to have
|
|
been discovered in our State. The last of those qualities which make a
|
|
state virtuous must be justice, if we only knew what that was.
|
|
|
|
The inference is obvious.
|
|
|
|
The time then has arrived, Glaucon, when, like huntsmen, we should
|
|
surround the cover, and look sharp that justice does not steal away, and
|
|
pass out of sight and escape us; for beyond a doubt she is somewhere in
|
|
this country: watch therefore and strive to catch a sight of her, and if
|
|
you see her first, let me know.
|
|
|
|
Would that I could! but you should regard me rather as a follower who
|
|
has just eyes enough to see what you show him--that is about as much as
|
|
I am good for.
|
|
|
|
Offer up a prayer with me and follow.
|
|
|
|
I will, but you must show me the way.
|
|
|
|
Here is no path, I said, and the wood is dark and perplexing; still we
|
|
must push on.
|
|
|
|
Let us push on.
|
|
|
|
Here I saw something: Halloo! I said, I begin to perceive a track, and I
|
|
believe that the quarry will not escape.
|
|
|
|
Good news, he said.
|
|
|
|
Truly, I said, we are stupid fellows.
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
Why, my good sir, at the beginning of our enquiry, ages ago, there was
|
|
justice tumbling out at our feet, and we never saw her; nothing could be
|
|
more ridiculous. Like people who go about looking for what they have
|
|
in their hands--that was the way with us--we looked not at what we
|
|
were seeking, but at what was far off in the distance; and therefore, I
|
|
suppose, we missed her.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean to say that in reality for a long time past we have been talking
|
|
of justice, and have failed to recognise her.
|
|
|
|
I grow impatient at the length of your exordium.
|
|
|
|
Well then, tell me, I said, whether I am right or not: You remember the
|
|
original principle which we were always laying down at the foundation
|
|
of the State, that one man should practise one thing only, the thing to
|
|
which his nature was best adapted;--now justice is this principle or a
|
|
part of it.
|
|
|
|
Yes, we often said that one man should do one thing only.
|
|
|
|
Further, we affirmed that justice was doing one's own business, and not
|
|
being a busybody; we said so again and again, and many others have said
|
|
the same to us.
|
|
|
|
Yes, we said so.
|
|
|
|
Then to do one's own business in a certain way may be assumed to be
|
|
justice. Can you tell me whence I derive this inference?
|
|
|
|
I cannot, but I should like to be told.
|
|
|
|
Because I think that this is the only virtue which remains in the
|
|
State when the other virtues of temperance and courage and wisdom are
|
|
abstracted; and, that this is the ultimate cause and condition of the
|
|
existence of all of them, and while remaining in them is also their
|
|
preservative; and we were saying that if the three were discovered by
|
|
us, justice would be the fourth or remaining one.
|
|
|
|
That follows of necessity.
|
|
|
|
If we are asked to determine which of these four qualities by its
|
|
presence contributes most to the excellence of the State, whether the
|
|
agreement of rulers and subjects, or the preservation in the soldiers of
|
|
the opinion which the law ordains about the true nature of dangers, or
|
|
wisdom and watchfulness in the rulers, or whether this other which I am
|
|
mentioning, and which is found in children and women, slave and freeman,
|
|
artisan, ruler, subject,--the quality, I mean, of every one doing his
|
|
own work, and not being a busybody, would claim the palm--the question
|
|
is not so easily answered.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied, there would be a difficulty in saying which.
|
|
|
|
Then the power of each individual in the State to do his own work
|
|
appears to compete with the other political virtues, wisdom, temperance,
|
|
courage.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the virtue which enters into this competition is justice?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Let us look at the question from another point of view: Are not
|
|
the rulers in a State those to whom you would entrust the office of
|
|
determining suits at law?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And are suits decided on any other ground but that a man may neither
|
|
take what is another's, nor be deprived of what is his own?
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is their principle.
|
|
|
|
Which is a just principle?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then on this view also justice will be admitted to be the having and
|
|
doing what is a man's own, and belongs to him?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Think, now, and say whether you agree with me or not. Suppose a
|
|
carpenter to be doing the business of a cobbler, or a cobbler of a
|
|
carpenter; and suppose them to exchange their implements or their
|
|
duties, or the same person to be doing the work of both, or whatever be
|
|
the change; do you think that any great harm would result to the State?
|
|
|
|
Not much.
|
|
|
|
But when the cobbler or any other man whom nature designed to be a
|
|
trader, having his heart lifted up by wealth or strength or the number
|
|
of his followers, or any like advantage, attempts to force his way
|
|
into the class of warriors, or a warrior into that of legislators and
|
|
guardians, for which he is unfitted, and either to take the implements
|
|
or the duties of the other; or when one man is trader, legislator, and
|
|
warrior all in one, then I think you will agree with me in saying that
|
|
this interchange and this meddling of one with another is the ruin of
|
|
the State.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
Seeing then, I said, that there are three distinct classes, any meddling
|
|
of one with another, or the change of one into another, is the greatest
|
|
harm to the State, and may be most justly termed evil-doing?
|
|
|
|
Precisely.
|
|
|
|
And the greatest degree of evil-doing to one's own city would be termed
|
|
by you injustice?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
This then is injustice; and on the other hand when the trader, the
|
|
auxiliary, and the guardian each do their own business, that is justice,
|
|
and will make the city just.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you.
|
|
|
|
We will not, I said, be over-positive as yet; but if, on trial, this
|
|
conception of justice be verified in the individual as well as in
|
|
the State, there will be no longer any room for doubt; if it be not
|
|
verified, we must have a fresh enquiry. First let us complete the old
|
|
investigation, which we began, as you remember, under the impression
|
|
that, if we could previously examine justice on the larger scale, there
|
|
would be less difficulty in discerning her in the individual. That
|
|
larger example appeared to be the State, and accordingly we constructed
|
|
as good a one as we could, knowing well that in the good State justice
|
|
would be found. Let the discovery which we made be now applied to the
|
|
individual--if they agree, we shall be satisfied; or, if there be a
|
|
difference in the individual, we will come back to the State and
|
|
have another trial of the theory. The friction of the two when rubbed
|
|
together may possibly strike a light in which justice will shine forth,
|
|
and the vision which is then revealed we will fix in our souls.
|
|
|
|
That will be in regular course; let us do as you say.
|
|
|
|
I proceeded to ask: When two things, a greater and less, are called by
|
|
the same name, are they like or unlike in so far as they are called the
|
|
same?
|
|
|
|
Like, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The just man then, if we regard the idea of justice only, will be like
|
|
the just State?
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
And a State was thought by us to be just when the three classes in the
|
|
State severally did their own business; and also thought to be temperate
|
|
and valiant and wise by reason of certain other affections and qualities
|
|
of these same classes?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so of the individual; we may assume that he has the same three
|
|
principles in his own soul which are found in the State; and he may be
|
|
rightly described in the same terms, because he is affected in the same
|
|
manner?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Once more then, O my friend, we have alighted upon an easy
|
|
question--whether the soul has these three principles or not?
|
|
|
|
An easy question! Nay, rather, Socrates, the proverb holds that hard is
|
|
the good.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said; and I do not think that the method which we are
|
|
employing is at all adequate to the accurate solution of this question;
|
|
the true method is another and a longer one. Still we may arrive at a
|
|
solution not below the level of the previous enquiry.
|
|
|
|
May we not be satisfied with that? he said;--under the circumstances, I
|
|
am quite content.
|
|
|
|
I too, I replied, shall be extremely well satisfied.
|
|
|
|
Then faint not in pursuing the speculation, he said.
|
|
|
|
Must we not acknowledge, I said, that in each of us there are the same
|
|
principles and habits which there are in the State; and that from the
|
|
individual they pass into the State?--how else can they come there? Take
|
|
the quality of passion or spirit;--it would be ridiculous to imagine
|
|
that this quality, when found in States, is not derived from the
|
|
individuals who are supposed to possess it, e.g. the Thracians,
|
|
Scythians, and in general the northern nations; and the same may be said
|
|
of the love of knowledge, which is the special characteristic of our
|
|
part of the world, or of the love of money, which may, with equal truth,
|
|
be attributed to the Phoenicians and Egyptians.
|
|
|
|
Exactly so, he said.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty in understanding this.
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
But the question is not quite so easy when we proceed to ask whether
|
|
these principles are three or one; whether, that is to say, we learn
|
|
with one part of our nature, are angry with another, and with a third
|
|
part desire the satisfaction of our natural appetites; or whether the
|
|
whole soul comes into play in each sort of action--to determine that is
|
|
the difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; there lies the difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Then let us now try and determine whether they are the same or
|
|
different.
|
|
|
|
How can we? he asked.
|
|
|
|
I replied as follows: The same thing clearly cannot act or be acted upon
|
|
in the same part or in relation to the same thing at the same time,
|
|
in contrary ways; and therefore whenever this contradiction occurs in
|
|
things apparently the same, we know that they are really not the same,
|
|
but different.
|
|
|
|
Good.
|
|
|
|
For example, I said, can the same thing be at rest and in motion at the
|
|
same time in the same part?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Still, I said, let us have a more precise statement of terms, lest we
|
|
should hereafter fall out by the way. Imagine the case of a man who is
|
|
standing and also moving his hands and his head, and suppose a person
|
|
to say that one and the same person is in motion and at rest at the same
|
|
moment--to such a mode of speech we should object, and should rather say
|
|
that one part of him is in motion while another is at rest.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And suppose the objector to refine still further, and to draw the nice
|
|
distinction that not only parts of tops, but whole tops, when they spin
|
|
round with their pegs fixed on the spot, are at rest and in motion at
|
|
the same time (and he may say the same of anything which revolves in the
|
|
same spot), his objection would not be admitted by us, because in
|
|
such cases things are not at rest and in motion in the same parts of
|
|
themselves; we should rather say that they have both an axis and a
|
|
circumference, and that the axis stands still, for there is no deviation
|
|
from the perpendicular; and that the circumference goes round. But if,
|
|
while revolving, the axis inclines either to the right or left, forwards
|
|
or backwards, then in no point of view can they be at rest.
|
|
|
|
That is the correct mode of describing them, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then none of these objections will confuse us, or incline us to believe
|
|
that the same thing at the same time, in the same part or in relation to
|
|
the same thing, can act or be acted upon in contrary ways.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, according to my way of thinking.
|
|
|
|
Yet, I said, that we may not be compelled to examine all such
|
|
objections, and prove at length that they are untrue, let us assume
|
|
their absurdity, and go forward on the understanding that hereafter, if
|
|
this assumption turn out to be untrue, all the consequences which follow
|
|
shall be withdrawn.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that will be the best way.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, would you not allow that assent and dissent, desire and
|
|
aversion, attraction and repulsion, are all of them opposites, whether
|
|
they are regarded as active or passive (for that makes no difference in
|
|
the fact of their opposition)?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, they are opposites.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and hunger and thirst, and the desires in general, and
|
|
again willing and wishing,--all these you would refer to the classes
|
|
already mentioned. You would say--would you not?--that the soul of him
|
|
who desires is seeking after the object of his desire; or that he is
|
|
drawing to himself the thing which he wishes to possess: or again,
|
|
when a person wants anything to be given him, his mind, longing for the
|
|
realization of his desire, intimates his wish to have it by a nod of
|
|
assent, as if he had been asked a question?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And what would you say of unwillingness and dislike and the absence of
|
|
desire; should not these be referred to the opposite class of repulsion
|
|
and rejection?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Admitting this to be true of desire generally, let us suppose a
|
|
particular class of desires, and out of these we will select hunger and
|
|
thirst, as they are termed, which are the most obvious of them?
|
|
|
|
Let us take that class, he said.
|
|
|
|
The object of one is food, and of the other drink?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And here comes the point: is not thirst the desire which the soul has of
|
|
drink, and of drink only; not of drink qualified by anything else; for
|
|
example, warm or cold, or much or little, or, in a word, drink of any
|
|
particular sort: but if the thirst be accompanied by heat, then the
|
|
desire is of cold drink; or, if accompanied by cold, then of warm drink;
|
|
or, if the thirst be excessive, then the drink which is desired will be
|
|
excessive; or, if not great, the quantity of drink will also be small:
|
|
but thirst pure and simple will desire drink pure and simple, which is
|
|
the natural satisfaction of thirst, as food is of hunger?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; the simple desire is, as you say, in every case of the
|
|
simple object, and the qualified desire of the qualified object.
|
|
|
|
But here a confusion may arise; and I should wish to guard against an
|
|
opponent starting up and saying that no man desires drink only, but good
|
|
drink, or food only, but good food; for good is the universal object of
|
|
desire, and thirst being a desire, will necessarily be thirst after good
|
|
drink; and the same is true of every other desire.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, the opponent might have something to say.
|
|
|
|
Nevertheless I should still maintain, that of relatives some have a
|
|
quality attached to either term of the relation; others are simple and
|
|
have their correlatives simple.
|
|
|
|
I do not know what you mean.
|
|
|
|
Well, you know of course that the greater is relative to the less?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the much greater to the much less?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the sometime greater to the sometime less, and the greater that is
|
|
to be to the less that is to be?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so of more and less, and of other correlative terms, such as the
|
|
double and the half, or again, the heavier and the lighter, the swifter
|
|
and the slower; and of hot and cold, and of any other relatives;--is not
|
|
this true of all of them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And does not the same principle hold in the sciences? The object of
|
|
science is knowledge (assuming that to be the true definition), but
|
|
the object of a particular science is a particular kind of knowledge;
|
|
I mean, for example, that the science of house-building is a kind of
|
|
knowledge which is defined and distinguished from other kinds and is
|
|
therefore termed architecture.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Because it has a particular quality which no other has?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And it has this particular quality because it has an object of a
|
|
particular kind; and this is true of the other arts and sciences?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Now, then, if I have made myself clear, you will understand my original
|
|
meaning in what I said about relatives. My meaning was, that if one term
|
|
of a relation is taken alone, the other is taken alone; if one term
|
|
is qualified, the other is also qualified. I do not mean to say that
|
|
relatives may not be disparate, or that the science of health is
|
|
healthy, or of disease necessarily diseased, or that the sciences of
|
|
good and evil are therefore good and evil; but only that, when the term
|
|
science is no longer used absolutely, but has a qualified object which
|
|
in this case is the nature of health and disease, it becomes defined,
|
|
and is hence called not merely science, but the science of medicine.
|
|
|
|
I quite understand, and I think as you do.
|
|
|
|
Would you not say that thirst is one of these essentially relative
|
|
terms, having clearly a relation--
|
|
|
|
Yes, thirst is relative to drink.
|
|
|
|
And a certain kind of thirst is relative to a certain kind of drink; but
|
|
thirst taken alone is neither of much nor little, nor of good nor bad,
|
|
nor of any particular kind of drink, but of drink only?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then the soul of the thirsty one, in so far as he is thirsty, desires
|
|
only drink; for this he yearns and tries to obtain it?
|
|
|
|
That is plain.
|
|
|
|
And if you suppose something which pulls a thirsty soul away from drink,
|
|
that must be different from the thirsty principle which draws him like
|
|
a beast to drink; for, as we were saying, the same thing cannot at the
|
|
same time with the same part of itself act in contrary ways about the
|
|
same.
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
No more than you can say that the hands of the archer push and pull the
|
|
bow at the same time, but what you say is that one hand pushes and the
|
|
other pulls.
|
|
|
|
Exactly so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And might a man be thirsty, and yet unwilling to drink?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, it constantly happens.
|
|
|
|
And in such a case what is one to say? Would you not say that there
|
|
was something in the soul bidding a man to drink, and something else
|
|
forbidding him, which is other and stronger than the principle which
|
|
bids him?
|
|
|
|
I should say so.
|
|
|
|
And the forbidding principle is derived from reason, and that which bids
|
|
and attracts proceeds from passion and disease?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then we may fairly assume that they are two, and that they differ from
|
|
one another; the one with which a man reasons, we may call the rational
|
|
principle of the soul, the other, with which he loves and hungers and
|
|
thirsts and feels the flutterings of any other desire, may be termed
|
|
the irrational or appetitive, the ally of sundry pleasures and
|
|
satisfactions?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, we may fairly assume them to be different.
|
|
|
|
Then let us finally determine that there are two principles existing in
|
|
the soul. And what of passion, or spirit? Is it a third, or akin to one
|
|
of the preceding?
|
|
|
|
I should be inclined to say--akin to desire.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, there is a story which I remember to have heard, and in
|
|
which I put faith. The story is, that Leontius, the son of Aglaion,
|
|
coming up one day from the Piraeus, under the north wall on the outside,
|
|
observed some dead bodies lying on the ground at the place of execution.
|
|
He felt a desire to see them, and also a dread and abhorrence of them;
|
|
for a time he struggled and covered his eyes, but at length the desire
|
|
got the better of him; and forcing them open, he ran up to the dead
|
|
bodies, saying, Look, ye wretches, take your fill of the fair sight.
|
|
|
|
I have heard the story myself, he said.
|
|
|
|
The moral of the tale is, that anger at times goes to war with desire,
|
|
as though they were two distinct things.
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is the meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
And are there not many other cases in which we observe that when a man's
|
|
desires violently prevail over his reason, he reviles himself, and is
|
|
angry at the violence within him, and that in this struggle, which is
|
|
like the struggle of factions in a State, his spirit is on the side of
|
|
his reason;--but for the passionate or spirited element to take part
|
|
with the desires when reason decides that she should not be opposed,
|
|
is a sort of thing which I believe that you never observed occurring in
|
|
yourself, nor, as I should imagine, in any one else?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Suppose that a man thinks he has done a wrong to another, the nobler
|
|
he is the less able is he to feel indignant at any suffering, such as
|
|
hunger, or cold, or any other pain which the injured person may inflict
|
|
upon him--these he deems to be just, and, as I say, his anger refuses to
|
|
be excited by them.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when he thinks that he is the sufferer of the wrong, then he boils
|
|
and chafes, and is on the side of what he believes to be justice; and
|
|
because he suffers hunger or cold or other pain he is only the more
|
|
determined to persevere and conquer. His noble spirit will not be
|
|
quelled until he either slays or is slain; or until he hears the voice
|
|
of the shepherd, that is, reason, bidding his dog bark no more.
|
|
|
|
The illustration is perfect, he replied; and in our State, as we were
|
|
saying, the auxiliaries were to be dogs, and to hear the voice of the
|
|
rulers, who are their shepherds.
|
|
|
|
I perceive, I said, that you quite understand me; there is, however, a
|
|
further point which I wish you to consider.
|
|
|
|
What point?
|
|
|
|
You remember that passion or spirit appeared at first sight to be a kind
|
|
of desire, but now we should say quite the contrary; for in the conflict
|
|
of the soul spirit is arrayed on the side of the rational principle.
|
|
|
|
Most assuredly.
|
|
|
|
But a further question arises: Is passion different from reason also, or
|
|
only a kind of reason; in which latter case, instead of three principles
|
|
in the soul, there will only be two, the rational and the concupiscent;
|
|
or rather, as the State was composed of three classes, traders,
|
|
auxiliaries, counsellors, so may there not be in the individual soul a
|
|
third element which is passion or spirit, and when not corrupted by bad
|
|
education is the natural auxiliary of reason?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there must be a third.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, if passion, which has already been shown to be different
|
|
from desire, turn out also to be different from reason.
|
|
|
|
But that is easily proved:--We may observe even in young children that
|
|
they are full of spirit almost as soon as they are born, whereas some
|
|
of them never seem to attain to the use of reason, and most of them late
|
|
enough.
|
|
|
|
Excellent, I said, and you may see passion equally in brute animals,
|
|
which is a further proof of the truth of what you are saying. And we may
|
|
once more appeal to the words of Homer, which have been already quoted
|
|
by us,
|
|
|
|
'He smote his breast, and thus rebuked his soul,'
|
|
|
|
for in this verse Homer has clearly supposed the power which reasons
|
|
about the better and worse to be different from the unreasoning anger
|
|
which is rebuked by it.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so, after much tossing, we have reached land, and are fairly agreed
|
|
that the same principles which exist in the State exist also in the
|
|
individual, and that they are three in number.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Must we not then infer that the individual is wise in the same way, and
|
|
in virtue of the same quality which makes the State wise?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Also that the same quality which constitutes courage in the State
|
|
constitutes courage in the individual, and that both the State and the
|
|
individual bear the same relation to all the other virtues?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And the individual will be acknowledged by us to be just in the same way
|
|
in which the State is just?
|
|
|
|
That follows, of course.
|
|
|
|
We cannot but remember that the justice of the State consisted in each
|
|
of the three classes doing the work of its own class?
|
|
|
|
We are not very likely to have forgotten, he said.
|
|
|
|
We must recollect that the individual in whom the several qualities of
|
|
his nature do their own work will be just, and will do his own work?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, we must remember that too.
|
|
|
|
And ought not the rational principle, which is wise, and has the care of
|
|
the whole soul, to rule, and the passionate or spirited principle to be
|
|
the subject and ally?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And, as we were saying, the united influence of music and gymnastic will
|
|
bring them into accord, nerving and sustaining the reason with noble
|
|
words and lessons, and moderating and soothing and civilizing the
|
|
wildness of passion by harmony and rhythm?
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And these two, thus nurtured and educated, and having learned truly to
|
|
know their own functions, will rule over the concupiscent, which in each
|
|
of us is the largest part of the soul and by nature most insatiable of
|
|
gain; over this they will keep guard, lest, waxing great and strong with
|
|
the fulness of bodily pleasures, as they are termed, the concupiscent
|
|
soul, no longer confined to her own sphere, should attempt to enslave
|
|
and rule those who are not her natural-born subjects, and overturn the
|
|
whole life of man?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Both together will they not be the best defenders of the whole soul and
|
|
the whole body against attacks from without; the one counselling, and
|
|
the other fighting under his leader, and courageously executing his
|
|
commands and counsels?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And he is to be deemed courageous whose spirit retains in pleasure and
|
|
in pain the commands of reason about what he ought or ought not to fear?
|
|
|
|
Right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And him we call wise who has in him that little part which rules, and
|
|
which proclaims these commands; that part too being supposed to have a
|
|
knowledge of what is for the interest of each of the three parts and of
|
|
the whole?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And would you not say that he is temperate who has these same elements
|
|
in friendly harmony, in whom the one ruling principle of reason, and
|
|
the two subject ones of spirit and desire are equally agreed that reason
|
|
ought to rule, and do not rebel?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, that is the true account of temperance whether in
|
|
the State or individual.
|
|
|
|
And surely, I said, we have explained again and again how and by virtue
|
|
of what quality a man will be just.
|
|
|
|
That is very certain.
|
|
|
|
And is justice dimmer in the individual, and is her form different, or
|
|
is she the same which we found her to be in the State?
|
|
|
|
There is no difference in my opinion, he said.
|
|
|
|
Because, if any doubt is still lingering in our minds, a few commonplace
|
|
instances will satisfy us of the truth of what I am saying.
|
|
|
|
What sort of instances do you mean?
|
|
|
|
If the case is put to us, must we not admit that the just State, or
|
|
the man who is trained in the principles of such a State, will be less
|
|
likely than the unjust to make away with a deposit of gold or silver?
|
|
Would any one deny this?
|
|
|
|
No one, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Will the just man or citizen ever be guilty of sacrilege or theft, or
|
|
treachery either to his friends or to his country?
|
|
|
|
Never.
|
|
|
|
Neither will he ever break faith where there have been oaths or
|
|
agreements?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
No one will be less likely to commit adultery, or to dishonour his
|
|
father and mother, or to fail in his religious duties?
|
|
|
|
No one.
|
|
|
|
And the reason is that each part of him is doing its own business,
|
|
whether in ruling or being ruled?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
Are you satisfied then that the quality which makes such men and such
|
|
states is justice, or do you hope to discover some other?
|
|
|
|
Not I, indeed.
|
|
|
|
Then our dream has been realized; and the suspicion which we entertained
|
|
at the beginning of our work of construction, that some divine power
|
|
must have conducted us to a primary form of justice, has now been
|
|
verified?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the division of labour which required the carpenter and the
|
|
shoemaker and the rest of the citizens to be doing each his own
|
|
business, and not another's, was a shadow of justice, and for that
|
|
reason it was of use?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
But in reality justice was such as we were describing, being concerned
|
|
however, not with the outward man, but with the inward, which is the
|
|
true self and concernment of man: for the just man does not permit the
|
|
several elements within him to interfere with one another, or any of
|
|
them to do the work of others,--he sets in order his own inner life, and
|
|
is his own master and his own law, and at peace with himself; and when
|
|
he has bound together the three principles within him, which may be
|
|
compared to the higher, lower, and middle notes of the scale, and the
|
|
intermediate intervals--when he has bound all these together, and is
|
|
no longer many, but has become one entirely temperate and perfectly
|
|
adjusted nature, then he proceeds to act, if he has to act, whether in
|
|
a matter of property, or in the treatment of the body, or in some affair
|
|
of politics or private business; always thinking and calling that which
|
|
preserves and co-operates with this harmonious condition, just and good
|
|
action, and the knowledge which presides over it, wisdom, and that which
|
|
at any time impairs this condition, he will call unjust action, and the
|
|
opinion which presides over it ignorance.
|
|
|
|
You have said the exact truth, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Very good; and if we were to affirm that we had discovered the just man
|
|
and the just State, and the nature of justice in each of them, we should
|
|
not be telling a falsehood?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly not.
|
|
|
|
May we say so, then?
|
|
|
|
Let us say so.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, injustice has to be considered.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Must not injustice be a strife which arises among the three
|
|
principles--a meddlesomeness, and interference, and rising up of a part
|
|
of the soul against the whole, an assertion of unlawful authority, which
|
|
is made by a rebellious subject against a true prince, of whom he is the
|
|
natural vassal,--what is all this confusion and delusion but injustice,
|
|
and intemperance and cowardice and ignorance, and every form of vice?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
And if the nature of justice and injustice be known, then the meaning of
|
|
acting unjustly and being unjust, or, again, of acting justly, will also
|
|
be perfectly clear?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, they are like disease and health; being in the soul just
|
|
what disease and health are in the body.
|
|
|
|
How so? he said.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, that which is healthy causes health, and that which is
|
|
unhealthy causes disease.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And just actions cause justice, and unjust actions cause injustice?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
And the creation of health is the institution of a natural order and
|
|
government of one by another in the parts of the body; and the creation
|
|
of disease is the production of a state of things at variance with this
|
|
natural order?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And is not the creation of justice the institution of a natural order
|
|
and government of one by another in the parts of the soul, and the
|
|
creation of injustice the production of a state of things at variance
|
|
with the natural order?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then virtue is the health and beauty and well-being of the soul, and
|
|
vice the disease and weakness and deformity of the same?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And do not good practices lead to virtue, and evil practices to vice?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Still our old question of the comparative advantage of justice and
|
|
injustice has not been answered: Which is the more profitable, to be
|
|
just and act justly and practise virtue, whether seen or unseen of
|
|
gods and men, or to be unjust and act unjustly, if only unpunished and
|
|
unreformed?
|
|
|
|
In my judgment, Socrates, the question has now become ridiculous. We
|
|
know that, when the bodily constitution is gone, life is no longer
|
|
endurable, though pampered with all kinds of meats and drinks, and
|
|
having all wealth and all power; and shall we be told that when the
|
|
very essence of the vital principle is undermined and corrupted, life
|
|
is still worth having to a man, if only he be allowed to do whatever he
|
|
likes with the single exception that he is not to acquire justice and
|
|
virtue, or to escape from injustice and vice; assuming them both to be
|
|
such as we have described?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, the question is, as you say, ridiculous. Still, as we are
|
|
near the spot at which we may see the truth in the clearest manner with
|
|
our own eyes, let us not faint by the way.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Come up hither, I said, and behold the various forms of vice, those of
|
|
them, I mean, which are worth looking at.
|
|
|
|
I am following you, he replied: proceed.
|
|
|
|
I said, The argument seems to have reached a height from which, as from
|
|
some tower of speculation, a man may look down and see that virtue
|
|
is one, but that the forms of vice are innumerable; there being four
|
|
special ones which are deserving of note.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean, I replied, that there appear to be as many forms of the soul as
|
|
there are distinct forms of the State.
|
|
|
|
How many?
|
|
|
|
There are five of the State, and five of the soul, I said.
|
|
|
|
What are they?
|
|
|
|
The first, I said, is that which we have been describing, and which may
|
|
be said to have two names, monarchy and aristocracy, accordingly as rule
|
|
is exercised by one distinguished man or by many.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But I regard the two names as describing one form only; for whether the
|
|
government is in the hands of one or many, if the governors have been
|
|
trained in the manner which we have supposed, the fundamental laws of
|
|
the State will be maintained.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK V.
|
|
|
|
Such is the good and true City or State, and the good and true man is
|
|
of the same pattern; and if this is right every other is wrong; and the
|
|
evil is one which affects not only the ordering of the State, but also
|
|
the regulation of the individual soul, and is exhibited in four forms.
|
|
|
|
What are they? he said.
|
|
|
|
I was proceeding to tell the order in which the four evil forms appeared
|
|
to me to succeed one another, when Polemarchus, who was sitting a little
|
|
way off, just beyond Adeimantus, began to whisper to him: stretching
|
|
forth his hand, he took hold of the upper part of his coat by the
|
|
shoulder, and drew him towards him, leaning forward himself so as to be
|
|
quite close and saying something in his ear, of which I only caught the
|
|
words, 'Shall we let him off, or what shall we do?'
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, said Adeimantus, raising his voice.
|
|
|
|
Who is it, I said, whom you are refusing to let off?
|
|
|
|
You, he said.
|
|
|
|
I repeated, Why am I especially not to be let off?
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, we think that you are lazy, and mean to cheat us out of a
|
|
whole chapter which is a very important part of the story; and you fancy
|
|
that we shall not notice your airy way of proceeding; as if it were
|
|
self-evident to everybody, that in the matter of women and children
|
|
'friends have all things in common.'
|
|
|
|
And was I not right, Adeimantus?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; but what is right in this particular case, like everything
|
|
else, requires to be explained; for community may be of many kinds.
|
|
Please, therefore, to say what sort of community you mean. We have been
|
|
long expecting that you would tell us something about the family life
|
|
of your citizens--how they will bring children into the world, and rear
|
|
them when they have arrived, and, in general, what is the nature of this
|
|
community of women and children--for we are of opinion that the right
|
|
or wrong management of such matters will have a great and paramount
|
|
influence on the State for good or for evil. And now, since the question
|
|
is still undetermined, and you are taking in hand another State, we have
|
|
resolved, as you heard, not to let you go until you give an account of
|
|
all this.
|
|
|
|
To that resolution, said Glaucon, you may regard me as saying Agreed.
|
|
|
|
And without more ado, said Thrasymachus, you may consider us all to be
|
|
equally agreed.
|
|
|
|
I said, You know not what you are doing in thus assailing me: What an
|
|
argument are you raising about the State! Just as I thought that I had
|
|
finished, and was only too glad that I had laid this question to sleep,
|
|
and was reflecting how fortunate I was in your acceptance of what I then
|
|
said, you ask me to begin again at the very foundation, ignorant of what
|
|
a hornet's nest of words you are stirring. Now I foresaw this gathering
|
|
trouble, and avoided it.
|
|
|
|
For what purpose do you conceive that we have come here, said
|
|
Thrasymachus,--to look for gold, or to hear discourse?
|
|
|
|
Yes, but discourse should have a limit.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates, said Glaucon, and the whole of life is the only limit
|
|
which wise men assign to the hearing of such discourses. But never mind
|
|
about us; take heart yourself and answer the question in your own way:
|
|
What sort of community of women and children is this which is to prevail
|
|
among our guardians? and how shall we manage the period between birth
|
|
and education, which seems to require the greatest care? Tell us how
|
|
these things will be.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my simple friend, but the answer is the reverse of easy; many more
|
|
doubts arise about this than about our previous conclusions. For the
|
|
practicability of what is said may be doubted; and looked at in another
|
|
point of view, whether the scheme, if ever so practicable, would be for
|
|
the best, is also doubtful. Hence I feel a reluctance to approach the
|
|
subject, lest our aspiration, my dear friend, should turn out to be a
|
|
dream only.
|
|
|
|
Fear not, he replied, for your audience will not be hard upon you; they
|
|
are not sceptical or hostile.
|
|
|
|
I said: My good friend, I suppose that you mean to encourage me by these
|
|
words.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then let me tell you that you are doing just the reverse; the
|
|
encouragement which you offer would have been all very well had I myself
|
|
believed that I knew what I was talking about: to declare the truth
|
|
about matters of high interest which a man honours and loves among wise
|
|
men who love him need occasion no fear or faltering in his mind; but to
|
|
carry on an argument when you are yourself only a hesitating enquirer,
|
|
which is my condition, is a dangerous and slippery thing; and the danger
|
|
is not that I shall be laughed at (of which the fear would be childish),
|
|
but that I shall miss the truth where I have most need to be sure of my
|
|
footing, and drag my friends after me in my fall. And I pray Nemesis not
|
|
to visit upon me the words which I am going to utter. For I do indeed
|
|
believe that to be an involuntary homicide is a less crime than to be a
|
|
deceiver about beauty or goodness or justice in the matter of laws.
|
|
And that is a risk which I would rather run among enemies than among
|
|
friends, and therefore you do well to encourage me.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon laughed and said: Well then, Socrates, in case you and your
|
|
argument do us any serious injury you shall be acquitted beforehand of
|
|
the homicide, and shall not be held to be a deceiver; take courage then
|
|
and speak.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, the law says that when a man is acquitted he is free from
|
|
guilt, and what holds at law may hold in argument.
|
|
|
|
Then why should you mind?
|
|
|
|
Well, I replied, I suppose that I must retrace my steps and say what I
|
|
perhaps ought to have said before in the proper place. The part of the
|
|
men has been played out, and now properly enough comes the turn of the
|
|
women. Of them I will proceed to speak, and the more readily since I am
|
|
invited by you.
|
|
|
|
For men born and educated like our citizens, the only way, in my
|
|
opinion, of arriving at a right conclusion about the possession and
|
|
use of women and children is to follow the path on which we originally
|
|
started, when we said that the men were to be the guardians and
|
|
watchdogs of the herd.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Let us further suppose the birth and education of our women to be
|
|
subject to similar or nearly similar regulations; then we shall see
|
|
whether the result accords with our design.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
What I mean may be put into the form of a question, I said: Are dogs
|
|
divided into hes and shes, or do they both share equally in hunting and
|
|
in keeping watch and in the other duties of dogs? or do we entrust to
|
|
the males the entire and exclusive care of the flocks, while we leave
|
|
the females at home, under the idea that the bearing and suckling their
|
|
puppies is labour enough for them?
|
|
|
|
No, he said, they share alike; the only difference between them is that
|
|
the males are stronger and the females weaker.
|
|
|
|
But can you use different animals for the same purpose, unless they are
|
|
bred and fed in the same way?
|
|
|
|
You cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then, if women are to have the same duties as men, they must have the
|
|
same nurture and education?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
The education which was assigned to the men was music and gymnastic.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then women must be taught music and gymnastic and also the art of war,
|
|
which they must practise like the men?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference, I suppose.
|
|
|
|
I should rather expect, I said, that several of our proposals, if they
|
|
are carried out, being unusual, may appear ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
No doubt of it.
|
|
|
|
Yes, and the most ridiculous thing of all will be the sight of women
|
|
naked in the palaestra, exercising with the men, especially when they
|
|
are no longer young; they certainly will not be a vision of beauty, any
|
|
more than the enthusiastic old men who in spite of wrinkles and ugliness
|
|
continue to frequent the gymnasia.
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, he said: according to present notions the proposal would be
|
|
thought ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
But then, I said, as we have determined to speak our minds, we must not
|
|
fear the jests of the wits which will be directed against this sort of
|
|
innovation; how they will talk of women's attainments both in music
|
|
and gymnastic, and above all about their wearing armour and riding upon
|
|
horseback!
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Yet having begun we must go forward to the rough places of the law; at
|
|
the same time begging of these gentlemen for once in their life to be
|
|
serious. Not long ago, as we shall remind them, the Hellenes were of the
|
|
opinion, which is still generally received among the barbarians, that
|
|
the sight of a naked man was ridiculous and improper; and when first the
|
|
Cretans and then the Lacedaemonians introduced the custom, the wits of
|
|
that day might equally have ridiculed the innovation.
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
But when experience showed that to let all things be uncovered was far
|
|
better than to cover them up, and the ludicrous effect to the outward
|
|
eye vanished before the better principle which reason asserted, then the
|
|
man was perceived to be a fool who directs the shafts of his ridicule
|
|
at any other sight but that of folly and vice, or seriously inclines to
|
|
weigh the beautiful by any other standard but that of the good.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
First, then, whether the question is to be put in jest or in earnest,
|
|
let us come to an understanding about the nature of woman: Is she
|
|
capable of sharing either wholly or partially in the actions of men, or
|
|
not at all? And is the art of war one of those arts in which she can or
|
|
can not share? That will be the best way of commencing the enquiry, and
|
|
will probably lead to the fairest conclusion.
|
|
|
|
That will be much the best way.
|
|
|
|
Shall we take the other side first and begin by arguing against
|
|
ourselves; in this manner the adversary's position will not be
|
|
undefended.
|
|
|
|
Why not? he said.
|
|
|
|
Then let us put a speech into the mouths of our opponents. They will
|
|
say: 'Socrates and Glaucon, no adversary need convict you, for you
|
|
yourselves, at the first foundation of the State, admitted the principle
|
|
that everybody was to do the one work suited to his own nature.' And
|
|
certainly, if I am not mistaken, such an admission was made by us. 'And
|
|
do not the natures of men and women differ very much indeed?' And we
|
|
shall reply: Of course they do. Then we shall be asked, 'Whether the
|
|
tasks assigned to men and to women should not be different, and such as
|
|
are agreeable to their different natures?' Certainly they should. 'But
|
|
if so, have you not fallen into a serious inconsistency in saying that
|
|
men and women, whose natures are so entirely different, ought to perform
|
|
the same actions?'--What defence will you make for us, my good Sir,
|
|
against any one who offers these objections?
|
|
|
|
That is not an easy question to answer when asked suddenly; and I shall
|
|
and I do beg of you to draw out the case on our side.
|
|
|
|
These are the objections, Glaucon, and there are many others of a like
|
|
kind, which I foresaw long ago; they made me afraid and reluctant to
|
|
take in hand any law about the possession and nurture of women and
|
|
children.
|
|
|
|
By Zeus, he said, the problem to be solved is anything but easy.
|
|
|
|
Why yes, I said, but the fact is that when a man is out of his depth,
|
|
whether he has fallen into a little swimming bath or into mid ocean, he
|
|
has to swim all the same.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And must not we swim and try to reach the shore: we will hope that
|
|
Arion's dolphin or some other miraculous help may save us?
|
|
|
|
I suppose so, he said.
|
|
|
|
Well then, let us see if any way of escape can be found. We
|
|
acknowledged--did we not? that different natures ought to have different
|
|
pursuits, and that men's and women's natures are different. And now
|
|
what are we saying?--that different natures ought to have the same
|
|
pursuits,--this is the inconsistency which is charged upon us.
|
|
|
|
Precisely.
|
|
|
|
Verily, Glaucon, I said, glorious is the power of the art of
|
|
contradiction!
|
|
|
|
Why do you say so?
|
|
|
|
Because I think that many a man falls into the practice against his
|
|
will. When he thinks that he is reasoning he is really disputing, just
|
|
because he cannot define and divide, and so know that of which he is
|
|
speaking; and he will pursue a merely verbal opposition in the spirit of
|
|
contention and not of fair discussion.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, such is very often the case; but what has that to do
|
|
with us and our argument?
|
|
|
|
A great deal; for there is certainly a danger of our getting
|
|
unintentionally into a verbal opposition.
|
|
|
|
In what way?
|
|
|
|
Why we valiantly and pugnaciously insist upon the verbal truth, that
|
|
different natures ought to have different pursuits, but we never
|
|
considered at all what was the meaning of sameness or difference of
|
|
nature, or why we distinguished them when we assigned different pursuits
|
|
to different natures and the same to the same natures.
|
|
|
|
Why, no, he said, that was never considered by us.
|
|
|
|
I said: Suppose that by way of illustration we were to ask the question
|
|
whether there is not an opposition in nature between bald men and hairy
|
|
men; and if this is admitted by us, then, if bald men are cobblers, we
|
|
should forbid the hairy men to be cobblers, and conversely?
|
|
|
|
That would be a jest, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, a jest; and why? because we never meant when we constructed
|
|
the State, that the opposition of natures should extend to every
|
|
difference, but only to those differences which affected the pursuit
|
|
in which the individual is engaged; we should have argued, for example,
|
|
that a physician and one who is in mind a physician may be said to have
|
|
the same nature.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the physician and the carpenter have different natures?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if, I said, the male and female sex appear to differ in their
|
|
fitness for any art or pursuit, we should say that such pursuit or art
|
|
ought to be assigned to one or the other of them; but if the difference
|
|
consists only in women bearing and men begetting children, this does not
|
|
amount to a proof that a woman differs from a man in respect of the
|
|
sort of education she should receive; and we shall therefore continue
|
|
to maintain that our guardians and their wives ought to have the same
|
|
pursuits.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next, we shall ask our opponent how, in reference to any of the pursuits
|
|
or arts of civic life, the nature of a woman differs from that of a man?
|
|
|
|
That will be quite fair.
|
|
|
|
And perhaps he, like yourself, will reply that to give a sufficient
|
|
answer on the instant is not easy; but after a little reflection there
|
|
is no difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, perhaps.
|
|
|
|
Suppose then that we invite him to accompany us in the argument, and
|
|
then we may hope to show him that there is nothing peculiar in the
|
|
constitution of women which would affect them in the administration of
|
|
the State.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Let us say to him: Come now, and we will ask you a question:--when you
|
|
spoke of a nature gifted or not gifted in any respect, did you mean to
|
|
say that one man will acquire a thing easily, another with difficulty; a
|
|
little learning will lead the one to discover a great deal; whereas
|
|
the other, after much study and application, no sooner learns than he
|
|
forgets; or again, did you mean, that the one has a body which is a
|
|
good servant to his mind, while the body of the other is a hindrance to
|
|
him?--would not these be the sort of differences which distinguish the
|
|
man gifted by nature from the one who is ungifted?
|
|
|
|
No one will deny that.
|
|
|
|
And can you mention any pursuit of mankind in which the male sex has not
|
|
all these gifts and qualities in a higher degree than the female? Need
|
|
I waste time in speaking of the art of weaving, and the management of
|
|
pancakes and preserves, in which womankind does really appear to be
|
|
great, and in which for her to be beaten by a man is of all things the
|
|
most absurd?
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he replied, in maintaining the general inferiority
|
|
of the female sex: although many women are in many things superior to
|
|
many men, yet on the whole what you say is true.
|
|
|
|
And if so, my friend, I said, there is no special faculty of
|
|
administration in a state which a woman has because she is a woman, or
|
|
which a man has by virtue of his sex, but the gifts of nature are alike
|
|
diffused in both; all the pursuits of men are the pursuits of women
|
|
also, but in all of them a woman is inferior to a man.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then are we to impose all our enactments on men and none of them on
|
|
women?
|
|
|
|
That will never do.
|
|
|
|
One woman has a gift of healing, another not; one is a musician, and
|
|
another has no music in her nature?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And one woman has a turn for gymnastic and military exercises, and
|
|
another is unwarlike and hates gymnastics?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And one woman is a philosopher, and another is an enemy of philosophy;
|
|
one has spirit, and another is without spirit?
|
|
|
|
That is also true.
|
|
|
|
Then one woman will have the temper of a guardian, and another not. Was
|
|
not the selection of the male guardians determined by differences of
|
|
this sort?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Men and women alike possess the qualities which make a guardian; they
|
|
differ only in their comparative strength or weakness.
|
|
|
|
Obviously.
|
|
|
|
And those women who have such qualities are to be selected as the
|
|
companions and colleagues of men who have similar qualities and whom
|
|
they resemble in capacity and in character?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And ought not the same natures to have the same pursuits?
|
|
|
|
They ought.
|
|
|
|
Then, as we were saying before, there is nothing unnatural in assigning
|
|
music and gymnastic to the wives of the guardians--to that point we come
|
|
round again.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
The law which we then enacted was agreeable to nature, and therefore not
|
|
an impossibility or mere aspiration; and the contrary practice, which
|
|
prevails at present, is in reality a violation of nature.
|
|
|
|
That appears to be true.
|
|
|
|
We had to consider, first, whether our proposals were possible, and
|
|
secondly whether they were the most beneficial?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the possibility has been acknowledged?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
The very great benefit has next to be established?
|
|
|
|
Quite so.
|
|
|
|
You will admit that the same education which makes a man a good guardian
|
|
will make a woman a good guardian; for their original nature is the
|
|
same?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
I should like to ask you a question.
|
|
|
|
What is it?
|
|
|
|
Would you say that all men are equal in excellence, or is one man better
|
|
than another?
|
|
|
|
The latter.
|
|
|
|
And in the commonwealth which we were founding do you conceive the
|
|
guardians who have been brought up on our model system to be more
|
|
perfect men, or the cobblers whose education has been cobbling?
|
|
|
|
What a ridiculous question!
|
|
|
|
You have answered me, I replied: Well, and may we not further say that
|
|
our guardians are the best of our citizens?
|
|
|
|
By far the best.
|
|
|
|
And will not their wives be the best women?
|
|
|
|
Yes, by far the best.
|
|
|
|
And can there be anything better for the interests of the State than
|
|
that the men and women of a State should be as good as possible?
|
|
|
|
There can be nothing better.
|
|
|
|
And this is what the arts of music and gymnastic, when present in such
|
|
manner as we have described, will accomplish?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then we have made an enactment not only possible but in the highest
|
|
degree beneficial to the State?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then let the wives of our guardians strip, for their virtue will be
|
|
their robe, and let them share in the toils of war and the defence of
|
|
their country; only in the distribution of labours the lighter are to be
|
|
assigned to the women, who are the weaker natures, but in other respects
|
|
their duties are to be the same. And as for the man who laughs at naked
|
|
women exercising their bodies from the best of motives, in his laughter
|
|
he is plucking
|
|
|
|
'A fruit of unripe wisdom,'
|
|
|
|
and he himself is ignorant of what he is laughing at, or what he is
|
|
about;--for that is, and ever will be, the best of sayings, That the
|
|
useful is the noble and the hurtful is the base.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Here, then, is one difficulty in our law about women, which we may say
|
|
that we have now escaped; the wave has not swallowed us up alive for
|
|
enacting that the guardians of either sex should have all their
|
|
pursuits in common; to the utility and also to the possibility of this
|
|
arrangement the consistency of the argument with itself bears witness.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was a mighty wave which you have escaped.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, but a greater is coming; you will not think much of this
|
|
when you see the next.
|
|
|
|
Go on; let me see.
|
|
|
|
The law, I said, which is the sequel of this and of all that has
|
|
preceded, is to the following effect,--'that the wives of our guardians
|
|
are to be common, and their children are to be common, and no parent is
|
|
to know his own child, nor any child his parent.'
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is a much greater wave than the other; and
|
|
the possibility as well as the utility of such a law are far more
|
|
questionable.
|
|
|
|
I do not think, I said, that there can be any dispute about the very
|
|
great utility of having wives and children in common; the possibility is
|
|
quite another matter, and will be very much disputed.
|
|
|
|
I think that a good many doubts may be raised about both.
|
|
|
|
You imply that the two questions must be combined, I replied. Now I
|
|
meant that you should admit the utility; and in this way, as I thought,
|
|
I should escape from one of them, and then there would remain only the
|
|
possibility.
|
|
|
|
But that little attempt is detected, and therefore you will please to
|
|
give a defence of both.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, I submit to my fate. Yet grant me a little favour: let
|
|
me feast my mind with the dream as day dreamers are in the habit of
|
|
feasting themselves when they are walking alone; for before they have
|
|
discovered any means of effecting their wishes--that is a matter which
|
|
never troubles them--they would rather not tire themselves by thinking
|
|
about possibilities; but assuming that what they desire is already
|
|
granted to them, they proceed with their plan, and delight in detailing
|
|
what they mean to do when their wish has come true--that is a way which
|
|
they have of not doing much good to a capacity which was never good for
|
|
much. Now I myself am beginning to lose heart, and I should like, with
|
|
your permission, to pass over the question of possibility at present.
|
|
Assuming therefore the possibility of the proposal, I shall now proceed
|
|
to enquire how the rulers will carry out these arrangements, and I shall
|
|
demonstrate that our plan, if executed, will be of the greatest benefit
|
|
to the State and to the guardians. First of all, then, if you have no
|
|
objection, I will endeavour with your help to consider the advantages of
|
|
the measure; and hereafter the question of possibility.
|
|
|
|
I have no objection; proceed.
|
|
|
|
First, I think that if our rulers and their auxiliaries are to be worthy
|
|
of the name which they bear, there must be willingness to obey in the
|
|
one and the power of command in the other; the guardians must themselves
|
|
obey the laws, and they must also imitate the spirit of them in any
|
|
details which are entrusted to their care.
|
|
|
|
That is right, he said.
|
|
|
|
You, I said, who are their legislator, having selected the men, will now
|
|
select the women and give them to them;--they must be as far as possible
|
|
of like natures with them; and they must live in common houses and meet
|
|
at common meals. None of them will have anything specially his or her
|
|
own; they will be together, and will be brought up together, and
|
|
will associate at gymnastic exercises. And so they will be drawn by
|
|
a necessity of their natures to have intercourse with each
|
|
other--necessity is not too strong a word, I think?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said;--necessity, not geometrical, but another sort of necessity
|
|
which lovers know, and which is far more convincing and constraining to
|
|
the mass of mankind.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; and this, Glaucon, like all the rest, must proceed after
|
|
an orderly fashion; in a city of the blessed, licentiousness is an
|
|
unholy thing which the rulers will forbid.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and it ought not to be permitted.
|
|
|
|
Then clearly the next thing will be to make matrimony sacred in the
|
|
highest degree, and what is most beneficial will be deemed sacred?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And how can marriages be made most beneficial?--that is a question which
|
|
I put to you, because I see in your house dogs for hunting, and of the
|
|
nobler sort of birds not a few. Now, I beseech you, do tell me, have you
|
|
ever attended to their pairing and breeding?
|
|
|
|
In what particulars?
|
|
|
|
Why, in the first place, although they are all of a good sort, are not
|
|
some better than others?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And do you breed from them all indifferently, or do you take care to
|
|
breed from the best only?
|
|
|
|
From the best.
|
|
|
|
And do you take the oldest or the youngest, or only those of ripe age?
|
|
|
|
I choose only those of ripe age.
|
|
|
|
And if care was not taken in the breeding, your dogs and birds would
|
|
greatly deteriorate?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the same of horses and animals in general?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Good heavens! my dear friend, I said, what consummate skill will our
|
|
rulers need if the same principle holds of the human species!
|
|
|
|
Certainly, the same principle holds; but why does this involve any
|
|
particular skill?
|
|
|
|
Because, I said, our rulers will often have to practise upon the body
|
|
corporate with medicines. Now you know that when patients do not require
|
|
medicines, but have only to be put under a regimen, the inferior sort
|
|
of practitioner is deemed to be good enough; but when medicine has to be
|
|
given, then the doctor should be more of a man.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said; but to what are you alluding?
|
|
|
|
I mean, I replied, that our rulers will find a considerable dose of
|
|
falsehood and deceit necessary for the good of their subjects: we were
|
|
saying that the use of all these things regarded as medicines might be
|
|
of advantage.
|
|
|
|
And we were very right.
|
|
|
|
And this lawful use of them seems likely to be often needed in the
|
|
regulations of marriages and births.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, the principle has been already laid down that the best of
|
|
either sex should be united with the best as often, and the inferior
|
|
with the inferior, as seldom as possible; and that they should rear the
|
|
offspring of the one sort of union, but not of the other, if the flock
|
|
is to be maintained in first-rate condition. Now these goings on must be
|
|
a secret which the rulers only know, or there will be a further
|
|
danger of our herd, as the guardians may be termed, breaking out into
|
|
rebellion.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Had we not better appoint certain festivals at which we will bring
|
|
together the brides and bridegrooms, and sacrifices will be offered and
|
|
suitable hymeneal songs composed by our poets: the number of weddings is
|
|
a matter which must be left to the discretion of the rulers, whose aim
|
|
will be to preserve the average of population? There are many other
|
|
things which they will have to consider, such as the effects of wars and
|
|
diseases and any similar agencies, in order as far as this is possible
|
|
to prevent the State from becoming either too large or too small.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
We shall have to invent some ingenious kind of lots which the less
|
|
worthy may draw on each occasion of our bringing them together, and then
|
|
they will accuse their own ill-luck and not the rulers.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said.
|
|
|
|
And I think that our braver and better youth, besides their other
|
|
honours and rewards, might have greater facilities of intercourse with
|
|
women given them; their bravery will be a reason, and such fathers ought
|
|
to have as many sons as possible.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the proper officers, whether male or female or both, for offices are
|
|
to be held by women as well as by men--
|
|
|
|
Yes--
|
|
|
|
The proper officers will take the offspring of the good parents to the
|
|
pen or fold, and there they will deposit them with certain nurses who
|
|
dwell in a separate quarter; but the offspring of the inferior, or of
|
|
the better when they chance to be deformed, will be put away in some
|
|
mysterious, unknown place, as they should be.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that must be done if the breed of the guardians is to be
|
|
kept pure.
|
|
|
|
They will provide for their nurture, and will bring the mothers to the
|
|
fold when they are full of milk, taking the greatest possible care that
|
|
no mother recognises her own child; and other wet-nurses may be engaged
|
|
if more are required. Care will also be taken that the process of
|
|
suckling shall not be protracted too long; and the mothers will have no
|
|
getting up at night or other trouble, but will hand over all this sort
|
|
of thing to the nurses and attendants.
|
|
|
|
You suppose the wives of our guardians to have a fine easy time of it
|
|
when they are having children.
|
|
|
|
Why, said I, and so they ought. Let us, however, proceed with our
|
|
scheme. We were saying that the parents should be in the prime of life?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And what is the prime of life? May it not be defined as a period of
|
|
about twenty years in a woman's life, and thirty in a man's?
|
|
|
|
Which years do you mean to include?
|
|
|
|
A woman, I said, at twenty years of age may begin to bear children to
|
|
the State, and continue to bear them until forty; a man may begin at
|
|
five-and-twenty, when he has passed the point at which the pulse of life
|
|
beats quickest, and continue to beget children until he be fifty-five.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, both in men and women those years are the prime of
|
|
physical as well as of intellectual vigour.
|
|
|
|
Any one above or below the prescribed ages who takes part in the public
|
|
hymeneals shall be said to have done an unholy and unrighteous thing;
|
|
the child of which he is the father, if it steals into life, will have
|
|
been conceived under auspices very unlike the sacrifices and prayers,
|
|
which at each hymeneal priestesses and priest and the whole city will
|
|
offer, that the new generation may be better and more useful than their
|
|
good and useful parents, whereas his child will be the offspring of
|
|
darkness and strange lust.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And the same law will apply to any one of those within the prescribed
|
|
age who forms a connection with any woman in the prime of life without
|
|
the sanction of the rulers; for we shall say that he is raising up a
|
|
bastard to the State, uncertified and unconsecrated.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
This applies, however, only to those who are within the specified age:
|
|
after that we allow them to range at will, except that a man may not
|
|
marry his daughter or his daughter's daughter, or his mother or his
|
|
mother's mother; and women, on the other hand, are prohibited from
|
|
marrying their sons or fathers, or son's son or father's father, and
|
|
so on in either direction. And we grant all this, accompanying the
|
|
permission with strict orders to prevent any embryo which may come into
|
|
being from seeing the light; and if any force a way to the birth, the
|
|
parents must understand that the offspring of such an union cannot be
|
|
maintained, and arrange accordingly.
|
|
|
|
That also, he said, is a reasonable proposition. But how will they know
|
|
who are fathers and daughters, and so on?
|
|
|
|
They will never know. The way will be this:--dating from the day of the
|
|
hymeneal, the bridegroom who was then married will call all the male
|
|
children who are born in the seventh and tenth month afterwards his
|
|
sons, and the female children his daughters, and they will call him
|
|
father, and he will call their children his grandchildren, and they will
|
|
call the elder generation grandfathers and grandmothers. All who were
|
|
begotten at the time when their fathers and mothers came together will
|
|
be called their brothers and sisters, and these, as I was saying, will
|
|
be forbidden to inter-marry. This, however, is not to be understood as
|
|
an absolute prohibition of the marriage of brothers and sisters; if the
|
|
lot favours them, and they receive the sanction of the Pythian oracle,
|
|
the law will allow them.
|
|
|
|
Quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Such is the scheme, Glaucon, according to which the guardians of our
|
|
State are to have their wives and families in common. And now you would
|
|
have the argument show that this community is consistent with the rest
|
|
of our polity, and also that nothing can be better--would you not?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
Shall we try to find a common basis by asking of ourselves what ought
|
|
to be the chief aim of the legislator in making laws and in the
|
|
organization of a State,--what is the greatest good, and what is the
|
|
greatest evil, and then consider whether our previous description has
|
|
the stamp of the good or of the evil?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Can there be any greater evil than discord and distraction and plurality
|
|
where unity ought to reign? or any greater good than the bond of unity?
|
|
|
|
There cannot.
|
|
|
|
And there is unity where there is community of pleasures and
|
|
pains--where all the citizens are glad or grieved on the same occasions
|
|
of joy and sorrow?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and where there is no common but only private feeling a State is
|
|
disorganized--when you have one half of the world triumphing and the
|
|
other plunged in grief at the same events happening to the city or the
|
|
citizens?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Such differences commonly originate in a disagreement about the use of
|
|
the terms 'mine' and 'not mine,' 'his' and 'not his.'
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
And is not that the best-ordered State in which the greatest number of
|
|
persons apply the terms 'mine' and 'not mine' in the same way to the
|
|
same thing?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
Or that again which most nearly approaches to the condition of the
|
|
individual--as in the body, when but a finger of one of us is hurt, the
|
|
whole frame, drawn towards the soul as a centre and forming one kingdom
|
|
under the ruling power therein, feels the hurt and sympathizes all
|
|
together with the part affected, and we say that the man has a pain in
|
|
his finger; and the same expression is used about any other part of the
|
|
body, which has a sensation of pain at suffering or of pleasure at the
|
|
alleviation of suffering.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied; and I agree with you that in the best-ordered
|
|
State there is the nearest approach to this common feeling which you
|
|
describe.
|
|
|
|
Then when any one of the citizens experiences any good or evil, the
|
|
whole State will make his case their own, and will either rejoice or
|
|
sorrow with him?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is what will happen in a well-ordered State.
|
|
|
|
It will now be time, I said, for us to return to our State and see
|
|
whether this or some other form is most in accordance with these
|
|
fundamental principles.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Our State like every other has rulers and subjects?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
All of whom will call one another citizens?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
But is there not another name which people give to their rulers in other
|
|
States?
|
|
|
|
Generally they call them masters, but in democratic States they simply
|
|
call them rulers.
|
|
|
|
And in our State what other name besides that of citizens do the people
|
|
give the rulers?
|
|
|
|
They are called saviours and helpers, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And what do the rulers call the people?
|
|
|
|
Their maintainers and foster-fathers.
|
|
|
|
And what do they call them in other States?
|
|
|
|
Slaves.
|
|
|
|
And what do the rulers call one another in other States?
|
|
|
|
Fellow-rulers.
|
|
|
|
And what in ours?
|
|
|
|
Fellow-guardians.
|
|
|
|
Did you ever know an example in any other State of a ruler who would
|
|
speak of one of his colleagues as his friend and of another as not being
|
|
his friend?
|
|
|
|
Yes, very often.
|
|
|
|
And the friend he regards and describes as one in whom he has an
|
|
interest, and the other as a stranger in whom he has no interest?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But would any of your guardians think or speak of any other guardian as
|
|
a stranger?
|
|
|
|
Certainly he would not; for every one whom they meet will be regarded
|
|
by them either as a brother or sister, or father or mother, or son or
|
|
daughter, or as the child or parent of those who are thus connected with
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Capital, I said; but let me ask you once more: Shall they be a family in
|
|
name only; or shall they in all their actions be true to the name? For
|
|
example, in the use of the word 'father,' would the care of a father be
|
|
implied and the filial reverence and duty and obedience to him which the
|
|
law commands; and is the violator of these duties to be regarded as an
|
|
impious and unrighteous person who is not likely to receive much good
|
|
either at the hands of God or of man? Are these to be or not to be the
|
|
strains which the children will hear repeated in their ears by all the
|
|
citizens about those who are intimated to them to be their parents and
|
|
the rest of their kinsfolk?
|
|
|
|
These, he said, and none other; for what can be more ridiculous than for
|
|
them to utter the names of family ties with the lips only and not to act
|
|
in the spirit of them?
|
|
|
|
Then in our city the language of harmony and concord will be more often
|
|
heard than in any other. As I was describing before, when any one is
|
|
well or ill, the universal word will be 'with me it is well' or 'it is
|
|
ill.'
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And agreeably to this mode of thinking and speaking, were we not saying
|
|
that they will have their pleasures and pains in common?
|
|
|
|
Yes, and so they will.
|
|
|
|
And they will have a common interest in the same thing which they will
|
|
alike call 'my own,' and having this common interest they will have a
|
|
common feeling of pleasure and pain?
|
|
|
|
Yes, far more so than in other States.
|
|
|
|
And the reason of this, over and above the general constitution of the
|
|
State, will be that the guardians will have a community of women and
|
|
children?
|
|
|
|
That will be the chief reason.
|
|
|
|
And this unity of feeling we admitted to be the greatest good, as was
|
|
implied in our own comparison of a well-ordered State to the relation of
|
|
the body and the members, when affected by pleasure or pain?
|
|
|
|
That we acknowledged, and very rightly.
|
|
|
|
Then the community of wives and children among our citizens is clearly
|
|
the source of the greatest good to the State?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And this agrees with the other principle which we were affirming,--that
|
|
the guardians were not to have houses or lands or any other property;
|
|
their pay was to be their food, which they were to receive from the
|
|
other citizens, and they were to have no private expenses; for we
|
|
intended them to preserve their true character of guardians.
|
|
|
|
Right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Both the community of property and the community of families, as I am
|
|
saying, tend to make them more truly guardians; they will not tear
|
|
the city in pieces by differing about 'mine' and 'not mine;' each man
|
|
dragging any acquisition which he has made into a separate house of his
|
|
own, where he has a separate wife and children and private pleasures and
|
|
pains; but all will be affected as far as may be by the same pleasures
|
|
and pains because they are all of one opinion about what is near and
|
|
dear to them, and therefore they all tend towards a common end.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And as they have nothing but their persons which they can call their
|
|
own, suits and complaints will have no existence among them; they will
|
|
be delivered from all those quarrels of which money or children or
|
|
relations are the occasion.
|
|
|
|
Of course they will.
|
|
|
|
Neither will trials for assault or insult ever be likely to occur among
|
|
them. For that equals should defend themselves against equals we shall
|
|
maintain to be honourable and right; we shall make the protection of the
|
|
person a matter of necessity.
|
|
|
|
That is good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and there is a further good in the law; viz. that if a man has a
|
|
quarrel with another he will satisfy his resentment then and there, and
|
|
not proceed to more dangerous lengths.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
To the elder shall be assigned the duty of ruling and chastising the
|
|
younger.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Nor can there be a doubt that the younger will not strike or do any
|
|
other violence to an elder, unless the magistrates command him; nor will
|
|
he slight him in any way. For there are two guardians, shame and fear,
|
|
mighty to prevent him: shame, which makes men refrain from laying hands
|
|
on those who are to them in the relation of parents; fear, that the
|
|
injured one will be succoured by the others who are his brothers, sons,
|
|
fathers.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then in every way the laws will help the citizens to keep the peace with
|
|
one another?
|
|
|
|
Yes, there will be no want of peace.
|
|
|
|
And as the guardians will never quarrel among themselves there will be
|
|
no danger of the rest of the city being divided either against them or
|
|
against one another.
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
I hardly like even to mention the little meannesses of which they will
|
|
be rid, for they are beneath notice: such, for example, as the
|
|
flattery of the rich by the poor, and all the pains and pangs which
|
|
men experience in bringing up a family, and in finding money to buy
|
|
necessaries for their household, borrowing and then repudiating, getting
|
|
how they can, and giving the money into the hands of women and slaves
|
|
to keep--the many evils of so many kinds which people suffer in this way
|
|
are mean enough and obvious enough, and not worth speaking of.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, a man has no need of eyes in order to perceive that.
|
|
|
|
And from all these evils they will be delivered, and their life will be
|
|
blessed as the life of Olympic victors and yet more blessed.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
The Olympic victor, I said, is deemed happy in receiving a part only of
|
|
the blessedness which is secured to our citizens, who have won a more
|
|
glorious victory and have a more complete maintenance at the public
|
|
cost. For the victory which they have won is the salvation of the whole
|
|
State; and the crown with which they and their children are crowned is
|
|
the fulness of all that life needs; they receive rewards from the
|
|
hands of their country while living, and after death have an honourable
|
|
burial.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and glorious rewards they are.
|
|
|
|
Do you remember, I said, how in the course of the previous discussion
|
|
some one who shall be nameless accused us of making our guardians
|
|
unhappy--they had nothing and might have possessed all things--to whom
|
|
we replied that, if an occasion offered, we might perhaps hereafter
|
|
consider this question, but that, as at present advised, we would make
|
|
our guardians truly guardians, and that we were fashioning the State
|
|
with a view to the greatest happiness, not of any particular class, but
|
|
of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
And what do you say, now that the life of our protectors is made out to
|
|
be far better and nobler than that of Olympic victors--is the life of
|
|
shoemakers, or any other artisans, or of husbandmen, to be compared with
|
|
it?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
At the same time I ought here to repeat what I have said elsewhere, that
|
|
if any of our guardians shall try to be happy in such a manner that
|
|
he will cease to be a guardian, and is not content with this safe and
|
|
harmonious life, which, in our judgment, is of all lives the best, but
|
|
infatuated by some youthful conceit of happiness which gets up into his
|
|
head shall seek to appropriate the whole state to himself, then he will
|
|
have to learn how wisely Hesiod spoke, when he said, 'half is more than
|
|
the whole.'
|
|
|
|
If he were to consult me, I should say to him: Stay where you are, when
|
|
you have the offer of such a life.
|
|
|
|
You agree then, I said, that men and women are to have a common way of
|
|
life such as we have described--common education, common children; and
|
|
they are to watch over the citizens in common whether abiding in the
|
|
city or going out to war; they are to keep watch together, and to hunt
|
|
together like dogs; and always and in all things, as far as they are
|
|
able, women are to share with the men? And in so doing they will do what
|
|
is best, and will not violate, but preserve the natural relation of the
|
|
sexes.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The enquiry, I said, has yet to be made, whether such a community
|
|
be found possible--as among other animals, so also among men--and if
|
|
possible, in what way possible?
|
|
|
|
You have anticipated the question which I was about to suggest.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty, I said, in seeing how war will be carried on by
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
Why, of course they will go on expeditions together; and will take with
|
|
them any of their children who are strong enough, that, after the manner
|
|
of the artisan's child, they may look on at the work which they will
|
|
have to do when they are grown up; and besides looking on they will
|
|
have to help and be of use in war, and to wait upon their fathers and
|
|
mothers. Did you never observe in the arts how the potters' boys look on
|
|
and help, long before they touch the wheel?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I have.
|
|
|
|
And shall potters be more careful in educating their children and in
|
|
giving them the opportunity of seeing and practising their duties than
|
|
our guardians will be?
|
|
|
|
The idea is ridiculous, he said.
|
|
|
|
There is also the effect on the parents, with whom, as with other
|
|
animals, the presence of their young ones will be the greatest incentive
|
|
to valour.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, Socrates; and yet if they are defeated, which may
|
|
often happen in war, how great the danger is! the children will be lost
|
|
as well as their parents, and the State will never recover.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; but would you never allow them to run any risk?
|
|
|
|
I am far from saying that.
|
|
|
|
Well, but if they are ever to run a risk should they not do so on some
|
|
occasion when, if they escape disaster, they will be the better for it?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Whether the future soldiers do or do not see war in the days of their
|
|
youth is a very important matter, for the sake of which some risk may
|
|
fairly be incurred.
|
|
|
|
Yes, very important.
|
|
|
|
This then must be our first step,--to make our children spectators
|
|
of war; but we must also contrive that they shall be secured against
|
|
danger; then all will be well.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Their parents may be supposed not to be blind to the risks of war, but
|
|
to know, as far as human foresight can, what expeditions are safe and
|
|
what dangerous?
|
|
|
|
That may be assumed.
|
|
|
|
And they will take them on the safe expeditions and be cautious about
|
|
the dangerous ones?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And they will place them under the command of experienced veterans who
|
|
will be their leaders and teachers?
|
|
|
|
Very properly.
|
|
|
|
Still, the dangers of war cannot be always foreseen; there is a good
|
|
deal of chance about them?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then against such chances the children must be at once furnished with
|
|
wings, in order that in the hour of need they may fly away and escape.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean that we must mount them on horses in their earliest youth, and
|
|
when they have learnt to ride, take them on horseback to see war: the
|
|
horses must not be spirited and warlike, but the most tractable and yet
|
|
the swiftest that can be had. In this way they will get an excellent
|
|
view of what is hereafter to be their own business; and if there is
|
|
danger they have only to follow their elder leaders and escape.
|
|
|
|
I believe that you are right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next, as to war; what are to be the relations of your soldiers to one
|
|
another and to their enemies? I should be inclined to propose that the
|
|
soldier who leaves his rank or throws away his arms, or is guilty of any
|
|
other act of cowardice, should be degraded into the rank of a husbandman
|
|
or artisan. What do you think?
|
|
|
|
By all means, I should say.
|
|
|
|
And he who allows himself to be taken prisoner may as well be made a
|
|
present of to his enemies; he is their lawful prey, and let them do what
|
|
they like with him.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But the hero who has distinguished himself, what shall be done to
|
|
him? In the first place, he shall receive honour in the army from his
|
|
youthful comrades; every one of them in succession shall crown him. What
|
|
do you say?
|
|
|
|
I approve.
|
|
|
|
And what do you say to his receiving the right hand of fellowship?
|
|
|
|
To that too, I agree.
|
|
|
|
But you will hardly agree to my next proposal.
|
|
|
|
What is your proposal?
|
|
|
|
That he should kiss and be kissed by them.
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, and I should be disposed to go further, and say: Let
|
|
no one whom he has a mind to kiss refuse to be kissed by him while the
|
|
expedition lasts. So that if there be a lover in the army, whether
|
|
his love be youth or maiden, he may be more eager to win the prize of
|
|
valour.
|
|
|
|
Capital, I said. That the brave man is to have more wives than others
|
|
has been already determined: and he is to have first choices in such
|
|
matters more than others, in order that he may have as many children as
|
|
possible?
|
|
|
|
Agreed.
|
|
|
|
Again, there is another manner in which, according to Homer, brave
|
|
youths should be honoured; for he tells how Ajax, after he had
|
|
distinguished himself in battle, was rewarded with long chines, which
|
|
seems to be a compliment appropriate to a hero in the flower of his age,
|
|
being not only a tribute of honour but also a very strengthening thing.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then in this, I said, Homer shall be our teacher; and we too, at
|
|
sacrifices and on the like occasions, will honour the brave according to
|
|
the measure of their valour, whether men or women, with hymns and those
|
|
other distinctions which we were mentioning; also with
|
|
|
|
'seats of precedence, and meats and full cups;'
|
|
|
|
and in honouring them, we shall be at the same time training them.
|
|
|
|
That, he replied, is excellent.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and when a man dies gloriously in war shall we not say, in
|
|
the first place, that he is of the golden race?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Nay, have we not the authority of Hesiod for affirming that when they
|
|
are dead
|
|
|
|
'They are holy angels upon the earth, authors of good, averters of evil,
|
|
the guardians of speech-gifted men'?
|
|
|
|
Yes; and we accept his authority.
|
|
|
|
We must learn of the god how we are to order the sepulture of divine and
|
|
heroic personages, and what is to be their special distinction; and we
|
|
must do as he bids?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And in ages to come we will reverence them and kneel before their
|
|
sepulchres as at the graves of heroes. And not only they but any who are
|
|
deemed pre-eminently good, whether they die from age, or in any other
|
|
way, shall be admitted to the same honours.
|
|
|
|
That is very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next, how shall our soldiers treat their enemies? What about this?
|
|
|
|
In what respect do you mean?
|
|
|
|
First of all, in regard to slavery? Do you think it right that Hellenes
|
|
should enslave Hellenic States, or allow others to enslave them, if
|
|
they can help? Should not their custom be to spare them, considering
|
|
the danger which there is that the whole race may one day fall under the
|
|
yoke of the barbarians?
|
|
|
|
To spare them is infinitely better.
|
|
|
|
Then no Hellene should be owned by them as a slave; that is a rule which
|
|
they will observe and advise the other Hellenes to observe.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; they will in this way be united against the
|
|
barbarians and will keep their hands off one another.
|
|
|
|
Next as to the slain; ought the conquerors, I said, to take anything
|
|
but their armour? Does not the practice of despoiling an enemy afford
|
|
an excuse for not facing the battle? Cowards skulk about the dead,
|
|
pretending that they are fulfilling a duty, and many an army before now
|
|
has been lost from this love of plunder.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And is there not illiberality and avarice in robbing a corpse, and also
|
|
a degree of meanness and womanishness in making an enemy of the dead
|
|
body when the real enemy has flown away and left only his fighting
|
|
gear behind him,--is not this rather like a dog who cannot get at his
|
|
assailant, quarrelling with the stones which strike him instead?
|
|
|
|
Very like a dog, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must abstain from spoiling the dead or hindering their burial?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, we most certainly must.
|
|
|
|
Neither shall we offer up arms at the temples of the gods, least of all
|
|
the arms of Hellenes, if we care to maintain good feeling with other
|
|
Hellenes; and, indeed, we have reason to fear that the offering of
|
|
spoils taken from kinsmen may be a pollution unless commanded by the god
|
|
himself?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Again, as to the devastation of Hellenic territory or the burning of
|
|
houses, what is to be the practice?
|
|
|
|
May I have the pleasure, he said, of hearing your opinion?
|
|
|
|
Both should be forbidden, in my judgment; I would take the annual
|
|
produce and no more. Shall I tell you why?
|
|
|
|
Pray do.
|
|
|
|
Why, you see, there is a difference in the names 'discord' and 'war,'
|
|
and I imagine that there is also a difference in their natures; the one
|
|
is expressive of what is internal and domestic, the other of what is
|
|
external and foreign; and the first of the two is termed discord, and
|
|
only the second, war.
|
|
|
|
That is a very proper distinction, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And may I not observe with equal propriety that the Hellenic race is all
|
|
united together by ties of blood and friendship, and alien and strange
|
|
to the barbarians?
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
And therefore when Hellenes fight with barbarians and barbarians with
|
|
Hellenes, they will be described by us as being at war when they fight,
|
|
and by nature enemies, and this kind of antagonism should be called war;
|
|
but when Hellenes fight with one another we shall say that Hellas is
|
|
then in a state of disorder and discord, they being by nature friends;
|
|
and such enmity is to be called discord.
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Consider then, I said, when that which we have acknowledged to be
|
|
discord occurs, and a city is divided, if both parties destroy the lands
|
|
and burn the houses of one another, how wicked does the strife appear!
|
|
No true lover of his country would bring himself to tear in pieces his
|
|
own nurse and mother: There might be reason in the conqueror depriving
|
|
the conquered of their harvest, but still they would have the idea of
|
|
peace in their hearts and would not mean to go on fighting for ever.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is a better temper than the other.
|
|
|
|
And will not the city, which you are founding, be an Hellenic city?
|
|
|
|
It ought to be, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then will not the citizens be good and civilized?
|
|
|
|
Yes, very civilized.
|
|
|
|
And will they not be lovers of Hellas, and think of Hellas as their own
|
|
land, and share in the common temples?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly.
|
|
|
|
And any difference which arises among them will be regarded by them as
|
|
discord only--a quarrel among friends, which is not to be called a war?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then they will quarrel as those who intend some day to be reconciled?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
They will use friendly correction, but will not enslave or destroy their
|
|
opponents; they will be correctors, not enemies?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
And as they are Hellenes themselves they will not devastate Hellas, nor
|
|
will they burn houses, nor ever suppose that the whole population of a
|
|
city--men, women, and children--are equally their enemies, for they know
|
|
that the guilt of war is always confined to a few persons and that the
|
|
many are their friends. And for all these reasons they will be unwilling
|
|
to waste their lands and rase their houses; their enmity to them will
|
|
only last until the many innocent sufferers have compelled the guilty
|
|
few to give satisfaction?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said, that our citizens should thus deal with their Hellenic
|
|
enemies; and with barbarians as the Hellenes now deal with one another.
|
|
|
|
Then let us enact this law also for our guardians:--that they are
|
|
neither to devastate the lands of Hellenes nor to burn their houses.
|
|
|
|
Agreed; and we may agree also in thinking that these, like all our
|
|
previous enactments, are very good.
|
|
|
|
But still I must say, Socrates, that if you are allowed to go on in
|
|
this way you will entirely forget the other question which at the
|
|
commencement of this discussion you thrust aside:--Is such an order of
|
|
things possible, and how, if at all? For I am quite ready to acknowledge
|
|
that the plan which you propose, if only feasible, would do all sorts of
|
|
good to the State. I will add, what you have omitted, that your citizens
|
|
will be the bravest of warriors, and will never leave their ranks, for
|
|
they will all know one another, and each will call the other father,
|
|
brother, son; and if you suppose the women to join their armies, whether
|
|
in the same rank or in the rear, either as a terror to the enemy, or as
|
|
auxiliaries in case of need, I know that they will then be absolutely
|
|
invincible; and there are many domestic advantages which might also be
|
|
mentioned and which I also fully acknowledge: but, as I admit all these
|
|
advantages and as many more as you please, if only this State of yours
|
|
were to come into existence, we need say no more about them; assuming
|
|
then the existence of the State, let us now turn to the question of
|
|
possibility and ways and means--the rest may be left.
|
|
|
|
If I loiter for a moment, you instantly make a raid upon me, I said, and
|
|
have no mercy; I have hardly escaped the first and second waves, and you
|
|
seem not to be aware that you are now bringing upon me the third, which
|
|
is the greatest and heaviest. When you have seen and heard the third
|
|
wave, I think you will be more considerate and will acknowledge
|
|
that some fear and hesitation was natural respecting a proposal so
|
|
extraordinary as that which I have now to state and investigate.
|
|
|
|
The more appeals of this sort which you make, he said, the more
|
|
determined are we that you shall tell us how such a State is possible:
|
|
speak out and at once.
|
|
|
|
Let me begin by reminding you that we found our way hither in the search
|
|
after justice and injustice.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied; but what of that?
|
|
|
|
I was only going to ask whether, if we have discovered them, we are to
|
|
require that the just man should in nothing fail of absolute justice; or
|
|
may we be satisfied with an approximation, and the attainment in him of
|
|
a higher degree of justice than is to be found in other men?
|
|
|
|
The approximation will be enough.
|
|
|
|
We were enquiring into the nature of absolute justice and into the
|
|
character of the perfectly just, and into injustice and the perfectly
|
|
unjust, that we might have an ideal. We were to look at these in order
|
|
that we might judge of our own happiness and unhappiness according to
|
|
the standard which they exhibited and the degree in which we resembled
|
|
them, but not with any view of showing that they could exist in fact.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Would a painter be any the worse because, after having delineated with
|
|
consummate art an ideal of a perfectly beautiful man, he was unable to
|
|
show that any such man could ever have existed?
|
|
|
|
He would be none the worse.
|
|
|
|
Well, and were we not creating an ideal of a perfect State?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And is our theory a worse theory because we are unable to prove the
|
|
possibility of a city being ordered in the manner described?
|
|
|
|
Surely not, he replied.
|
|
|
|
That is the truth, I said. But if, at your request, I am to try and show
|
|
how and under what conditions the possibility is highest, I must ask
|
|
you, having this in view, to repeat your former admissions.
|
|
|
|
What admissions?
|
|
|
|
I want to know whether ideals are ever fully realized in language?
|
|
Does not the word express more than the fact, and must not the actual,
|
|
whatever a man may think, always, in the nature of things, fall short of
|
|
the truth? What do you say?
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Then you must not insist on my proving that the actual State will in
|
|
every respect coincide with the ideal: if we are only able to discover
|
|
how a city may be governed nearly as we proposed, you will admit that we
|
|
have discovered the possibility which you demand; and will be contented.
|
|
I am sure that I should be contented--will not you?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I will.
|
|
|
|
Let me next endeavour to show what is that fault in States which is the
|
|
cause of their present maladministration, and what is the least change
|
|
which will enable a State to pass into the truer form; and let the
|
|
change, if possible, be of one thing only, or, if not, of two; at any
|
|
rate, let the changes be as few and slight as possible.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
I think, I said, that there might be a reform of the State if only one
|
|
change were made, which is not a slight or easy though still a possible
|
|
one.
|
|
|
|
What is it? he said.
|
|
|
|
Now then, I said, I go to meet that which I liken to the greatest of
|
|
the waves; yet shall the word be spoken, even though the wave break and
|
|
drown me in laughter and dishonour; and do you mark my words.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I said: 'Until philosophers are kings, or the kings and princes of this
|
|
world have the spirit and power of philosophy, and political greatness
|
|
and wisdom meet in one, and those commoner natures who pursue either
|
|
to the exclusion of the other are compelled to stand aside, cities
|
|
will never have rest from their evils,--nor the human race, as I
|
|
believe,--and then only will this our State have a possibility of life
|
|
and behold the light of day.' Such was the thought, my dear Glaucon,
|
|
which I would fain have uttered if it had not seemed too extravagant;
|
|
for to be convinced that in no other State can there be happiness
|
|
private or public is indeed a hard thing.
|
|
|
|
Socrates, what do you mean? I would have you consider that the word
|
|
which you have uttered is one at which numerous persons, and very
|
|
respectable persons too, in a figure pulling off their coats all in a
|
|
moment, and seizing any weapon that comes to hand, will run at you might
|
|
and main, before you know where you are, intending to do heaven knows
|
|
what; and if you don't prepare an answer, and put yourself in motion,
|
|
you will be 'pared by their fine wits,' and no mistake.
|
|
|
|
You got me into the scrape, I said.
|
|
|
|
And I was quite right; however, I will do all I can to get you out of
|
|
it; but I can only give you good-will and good advice, and, perhaps, I
|
|
may be able to fit answers to your questions better than another--that
|
|
is all. And now, having such an auxiliary, you must do your best to show
|
|
the unbelievers that you are right.
|
|
|
|
I ought to try, I said, since you offer me such invaluable assistance.
|
|
And I think that, if there is to be a chance of our escaping, we must
|
|
explain to them whom we mean when we say that philosophers are to rule
|
|
in the State; then we shall be able to defend ourselves: There will be
|
|
discovered to be some natures who ought to study philosophy and to be
|
|
leaders in the State; and others who are not born to be philosophers,
|
|
and are meant to be followers rather than leaders.
|
|
|
|
Then now for a definition, he said.
|
|
|
|
Follow me, I said, and I hope that I may in some way or other be able to
|
|
give you a satisfactory explanation.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that you remember, and therefore I need not remind you, that
|
|
a lover, if he is worthy of the name, ought to show his love, not to
|
|
some one part of that which he loves, but to the whole.
|
|
|
|
I really do not understand, and therefore beg of you to assist my
|
|
memory.
|
|
|
|
Another person, I said, might fairly reply as you do; but a man of
|
|
pleasure like yourself ought to know that all who are in the flower of
|
|
youth do somehow or other raise a pang or emotion in a lover's breast,
|
|
and are thought by him to be worthy of his affectionate regards. Is not
|
|
this a way which you have with the fair: one has a snub nose, and you
|
|
praise his charming face; the hook-nose of another has, you say, a
|
|
royal look; while he who is neither snub nor hooked has the grace of
|
|
regularity: the dark visage is manly, the fair are children of the gods;
|
|
and as to the sweet 'honey pale,' as they are called, what is the very
|
|
name but the invention of a lover who talks in diminutives, and is not
|
|
averse to paleness if appearing on the cheek of youth? In a word, there
|
|
is no excuse which you will not make, and nothing which you will not
|
|
say, in order not to lose a single flower that blooms in the spring-time
|
|
of youth.
|
|
|
|
If you make me an authority in matters of love, for the sake of the
|
|
argument, I assent.
|
|
|
|
And what do you say of lovers of wine? Do you not see them doing the
|
|
same? They are glad of any pretext of drinking any wine.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
And the same is true of ambitious men; if they cannot command an army,
|
|
they are willing to command a file; and if they cannot be honoured by
|
|
really great and important persons, they are glad to be honoured by
|
|
lesser and meaner people,--but honour of some kind they must have.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Once more let me ask: Does he who desires any class of goods, desire the
|
|
whole class or a part only?
|
|
|
|
The whole.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say of the philosopher that he is a lover, not of a part
|
|
of wisdom only, but of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Yes, of the whole.
|
|
|
|
And he who dislikes learning, especially in youth, when he has no power
|
|
of judging what is good and what is not, such an one we maintain not
|
|
to be a philosopher or a lover of knowledge, just as he who refuses his
|
|
food is not hungry, and may be said to have a bad appetite and not a
|
|
good one?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Whereas he who has a taste for every sort of knowledge and who is
|
|
curious to learn and is never satisfied, may be justly termed a
|
|
philosopher? Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Glaucon said: If curiosity makes a philosopher, you will find many a
|
|
strange being will have a title to the name. All the lovers of sights
|
|
have a delight in learning, and must therefore be included. Musical
|
|
amateurs, too, are a folk strangely out of place among philosophers, for
|
|
they are the last persons in the world who would come to anything like
|
|
a philosophical discussion, if they could help, while they run about at
|
|
the Dionysiac festivals as if they had let out their ears to hear every
|
|
chorus; whether the performance is in town or country--that makes no
|
|
difference--they are there. Now are we to maintain that all these and
|
|
any who have similar tastes, as well as the professors of quite minor
|
|
arts, are philosophers?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, I replied; they are only an imitation.
|
|
|
|
He said: Who then are the true philosophers?
|
|
|
|
Those, I said, who are lovers of the vision of truth.
|
|
|
|
That is also good, he said; but I should like to know what you mean?
|
|
|
|
To another, I replied, I might have a difficulty in explaining; but I am
|
|
sure that you will admit a proposition which I am about to make.
|
|
|
|
What is the proposition?
|
|
|
|
That since beauty is the opposite of ugliness, they are two?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And inasmuch as they are two, each of them is one?
|
|
|
|
True again.
|
|
|
|
And of just and unjust, good and evil, and of every other class, the
|
|
same remark holds: taken singly, each of them is one; but from the
|
|
various combinations of them with actions and things and with one
|
|
another, they are seen in all sorts of lights and appear many?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And this is the distinction which I draw between the sight-loving,
|
|
art-loving, practical class and those of whom I am speaking, and who are
|
|
alone worthy of the name of philosophers.
|
|
|
|
How do you distinguish them? he said.
|
|
|
|
The lovers of sounds and sights, I replied, are, as I conceive, fond of
|
|
fine tones and colours and forms and all the artificial products that
|
|
are made out of them, but their mind is incapable of seeing or loving
|
|
absolute beauty.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Few are they who are able to attain to the sight of this.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And he who, having a sense of beautiful things has no sense of absolute
|
|
beauty, or who, if another lead him to a knowledge of that beauty is
|
|
unable to follow--of such an one I ask, Is he awake or in a dream
|
|
only? Reflect: is not the dreamer, sleeping or waking, one who likens
|
|
dissimilar things, who puts the copy in the place of the real object?
|
|
|
|
I should certainly say that such an one was dreaming.
|
|
|
|
But take the case of the other, who recognises the existence of absolute
|
|
beauty and is able to distinguish the idea from the objects which
|
|
participate in the idea, neither putting the objects in the place of the
|
|
idea nor the idea in the place of the objects--is he a dreamer, or is he
|
|
awake?
|
|
|
|
He is wide awake.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say that the mind of the one who knows has knowledge, and
|
|
that the mind of the other, who opines only, has opinion?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But suppose that the latter should quarrel with us and dispute our
|
|
statement, can we administer any soothing cordial or advice to him,
|
|
without revealing to him that there is sad disorder in his wits?
|
|
|
|
We must certainly offer him some good advice, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Come, then, and let us think of something to say to him. Shall we begin
|
|
by assuring him that he is welcome to any knowledge which he may have,
|
|
and that we are rejoiced at his having it? But we should like to ask him
|
|
a question: Does he who has knowledge know something or nothing? (You
|
|
must answer for him.)
|
|
|
|
I answer that he knows something.
|
|
|
|
Something that is or is not?
|
|
|
|
Something that is; for how can that which is not ever be known?
|
|
|
|
And are we assured, after looking at the matter from many points of
|
|
view, that absolute being is or may be absolutely known, but that the
|
|
utterly non-existent is utterly unknown?
|
|
|
|
Nothing can be more certain.
|
|
|
|
Good. But if there be anything which is of such a nature as to be and
|
|
not to be, that will have a place intermediate between pure being and
|
|
the absolute negation of being?
|
|
|
|
Yes, between them.
|
|
|
|
And, as knowledge corresponded to being and ignorance of necessity to
|
|
not-being, for that intermediate between being and not-being there has
|
|
to be discovered a corresponding intermediate between ignorance and
|
|
knowledge, if there be such?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Do we admit the existence of opinion?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
As being the same with knowledge, or another faculty?
|
|
|
|
Another faculty.
|
|
|
|
Then opinion and knowledge have to do with different kinds of matter
|
|
corresponding to this difference of faculties?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And knowledge is relative to being and knows being. But before I proceed
|
|
further I will make a division.
|
|
|
|
What division?
|
|
|
|
I will begin by placing faculties in a class by themselves: they are
|
|
powers in us, and in all other things, by which we do as we do. Sight
|
|
and hearing, for example, I should call faculties. Have I clearly
|
|
explained the class which I mean?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I quite understand.
|
|
|
|
Then let me tell you my view about them. I do not see them, and
|
|
therefore the distinctions of figure, colour, and the like, which enable
|
|
me to discern the differences of some things, do not apply to them. In
|
|
speaking of a faculty I think only of its sphere and its result; and
|
|
that which has the same sphere and the same result I call the same
|
|
faculty, but that which has another sphere and another result I call
|
|
different. Would that be your way of speaking?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And will you be so very good as to answer one more question? Would you
|
|
say that knowledge is a faculty, or in what class would you place it?
|
|
|
|
Certainly knowledge is a faculty, and the mightiest of all faculties.
|
|
|
|
And is opinion also a faculty?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; for opinion is that with which we are able to form
|
|
an opinion.
|
|
|
|
And yet you were acknowledging a little while ago that knowledge is not
|
|
the same as opinion?
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, he said: how can any reasonable being ever identify that which
|
|
is infallible with that which errs?
|
|
|
|
An excellent answer, proving, I said, that we are quite conscious of a
|
|
distinction between them.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then knowledge and opinion having distinct powers have also distinct
|
|
spheres or subject-matters?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
Being is the sphere or subject-matter of knowledge, and knowledge is to
|
|
know the nature of being?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And opinion is to have an opinion?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And do we know what we opine? or is the subject-matter of opinion the
|
|
same as the subject-matter of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he replied, that has been already disproven; if difference in
|
|
faculty implies difference in the sphere or subject-matter, and if, as
|
|
we were saying, opinion and knowledge are distinct faculties, then the
|
|
sphere of knowledge and of opinion cannot be the same.
|
|
|
|
Then if being is the subject-matter of knowledge, something else must be
|
|
the subject-matter of opinion?
|
|
|
|
Yes, something else.
|
|
|
|
Well then, is not-being the subject-matter of opinion? or, rather, how
|
|
can there be an opinion at all about not-being? Reflect: when a man
|
|
has an opinion, has he not an opinion about something? Can he have an
|
|
opinion which is an opinion about nothing?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
He who has an opinion has an opinion about some one thing?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And not-being is not one thing but, properly speaking, nothing?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Of not-being, ignorance was assumed to be the necessary correlative; of
|
|
being, knowledge?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then opinion is not concerned either with being or with not-being?
|
|
|
|
Not with either.
|
|
|
|
And can therefore neither be ignorance nor knowledge?
|
|
|
|
That seems to be true.
|
|
|
|
But is opinion to be sought without and beyond either of them, in
|
|
a greater clearness than knowledge, or in a greater darkness than
|
|
ignorance?
|
|
|
|
In neither.
|
|
|
|
Then I suppose that opinion appears to you to be darker than knowledge,
|
|
but lighter than ignorance?
|
|
|
|
Both; and in no small degree.
|
|
|
|
And also to be within and between them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then you would infer that opinion is intermediate?
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
But were we not saying before, that if anything appeared to be of a sort
|
|
which is and is not at the same time, that sort of thing would appear
|
|
also to lie in the interval between pure being and absolute not-being;
|
|
and that the corresponding faculty is neither knowledge nor ignorance,
|
|
but will be found in the interval between them?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And in that interval there has now been discovered something which we
|
|
call opinion?
|
|
|
|
There has.
|
|
|
|
Then what remains to be discovered is the object which partakes equally
|
|
of the nature of being and not-being, and cannot rightly be termed
|
|
either, pure and simple; this unknown term, when discovered, we may
|
|
truly call the subject of opinion, and assign each to their proper
|
|
faculty,--the extremes to the faculties of the extremes and the mean to
|
|
the faculty of the mean.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
This being premised, I would ask the gentleman who is of opinion that
|
|
there is no absolute or unchangeable idea of beauty--in whose opinion
|
|
the beautiful is the manifold--he, I say, your lover of beautiful
|
|
sights, who cannot bear to be told that the beautiful is one, and the
|
|
just is one, or that anything is one--to him I would appeal, saying,
|
|
Will you be so very kind, sir, as to tell us whether, of all these
|
|
beautiful things, there is one which will not be found ugly; or of the
|
|
just, which will not be found unjust; or of the holy, which will not
|
|
also be unholy?
|
|
|
|
No, he replied; the beautiful will in some point of view be found ugly;
|
|
and the same is true of the rest.
|
|
|
|
And may not the many which are doubles be also halves?--doubles, that
|
|
is, of one thing, and halves of another?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And things great and small, heavy and light, as they are termed, will
|
|
not be denoted by these any more than by the opposite names?
|
|
|
|
True; both these and the opposite names will always attach to all of
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
And can any one of those many things which are called by particular
|
|
names be said to be this rather than not to be this?
|
|
|
|
He replied: They are like the punning riddles which are asked at feasts
|
|
or the children's puzzle about the eunuch aiming at the bat, with
|
|
what he hit him, as they say in the puzzle, and upon what the bat
|
|
was sitting. The individual objects of which I am speaking are also
|
|
a riddle, and have a double sense: nor can you fix them in your mind,
|
|
either as being or not-being, or both, or neither.
|
|
|
|
Then what will you do with them? I said. Can they have a better place
|
|
than between being and not-being? For they are clearly not in greater
|
|
darkness or negation than not-being, or more full of light and existence
|
|
than being.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Thus then we seem to have discovered that the many ideas which the
|
|
multitude entertain about the beautiful and about all other things are
|
|
tossing about in some region which is half-way between pure being and
|
|
pure not-being?
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and we had before agreed that anything of this kind which we might
|
|
find was to be described as matter of opinion, and not as matter of
|
|
knowledge; being the intermediate flux which is caught and detained by
|
|
the intermediate faculty.
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
Then those who see the many beautiful, and who yet neither see absolute
|
|
beauty, nor can follow any guide who points the way thither; who see the
|
|
many just, and not absolute justice, and the like,--such persons may be
|
|
said to have opinion but not knowledge?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
But those who see the absolute and eternal and immutable may be said to
|
|
know, and not to have opinion only?
|
|
|
|
Neither can that be denied.
|
|
|
|
The one love and embrace the subjects of knowledge, the other those of
|
|
opinion? The latter are the same, as I dare say you will remember, who
|
|
listened to sweet sounds and gazed upon fair colours, but would not
|
|
tolerate the existence of absolute beauty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
Shall we then be guilty of any impropriety in calling them lovers of
|
|
opinion rather than lovers of wisdom, and will they be very angry with
|
|
us for thus describing them?
|
|
|
|
I shall tell them not to be angry; no man should be angry at what is
|
|
true.
|
|
|
|
But those who love the truth in each thing are to be called lovers of
|
|
wisdom and not lovers of opinion.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK VI.
|
|
|
|
And thus, Glaucon, after the argument has gone a weary way, the true and
|
|
the false philosophers have at length appeared in view.
|
|
|
|
I do not think, he said, that the way could have been shortened.
|
|
|
|
I suppose not, I said; and yet I believe that we might have had a better
|
|
view of both of them if the discussion could have been confined to this
|
|
one subject and if there were not many other questions awaiting us,
|
|
which he who desires to see in what respect the life of the just differs
|
|
from that of the unjust must consider.
|
|
|
|
And what is the next question? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Surely, I said, the one which follows next in order. Inasmuch as
|
|
philosophers only are able to grasp the eternal and unchangeable,
|
|
and those who wander in the region of the many and variable are not
|
|
philosophers, I must ask you which of the two classes should be the
|
|
rulers of our State?
|
|
|
|
And how can we rightly answer that question?
|
|
|
|
Whichever of the two are best able to guard the laws and institutions of
|
|
our State--let them be our guardians.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Neither, I said, can there be any question that the guardian who is to
|
|
keep anything should have eyes rather than no eyes?
|
|
|
|
There can be no question of that.
|
|
|
|
And are not those who are verily and indeed wanting in the knowledge
|
|
of the true being of each thing, and who have in their souls no clear
|
|
pattern, and are unable as with a painter's eye to look at the absolute
|
|
truth and to that original to repair, and having perfect vision of the
|
|
other world to order the laws about beauty, goodness, justice in this,
|
|
if not already ordered, and to guard and preserve the order of them--are
|
|
not such persons, I ask, simply blind?
|
|
|
|
Truly, he replied, they are much in that condition.
|
|
|
|
And shall they be our guardians when there are others who, besides being
|
|
their equals in experience and falling short of them in no particular of
|
|
virtue, also know the very truth of each thing?
|
|
|
|
There can be no reason, he said, for rejecting those who have this
|
|
greatest of all great qualities; they must always have the first place
|
|
unless they fail in some other respect.
|
|
|
|
Suppose then, I said, that we determine how far they can unite this and
|
|
the other excellences.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, as we began by observing, the nature of the
|
|
philosopher has to be ascertained. We must come to an understanding
|
|
about him, and, when we have done so, then, if I am not mistaken, we
|
|
shall also acknowledge that such an union of qualities is possible, and
|
|
that those in whom they are united, and those only, should be rulers in
|
|
the State.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Let us suppose that philosophical minds always love knowledge of a sort
|
|
which shows them the eternal nature not varying from generation and
|
|
corruption.
|
|
|
|
Agreed.
|
|
|
|
And further, I said, let us agree that they are lovers of all true
|
|
being; there is no part whether greater or less, or more or less
|
|
honourable, which they are willing to renounce; as we said before of the
|
|
lover and the man of ambition.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And if they are to be what we were describing, is there not another
|
|
quality which they should also possess?
|
|
|
|
What quality?
|
|
|
|
Truthfulness: they will never intentionally receive into their mind
|
|
falsehood, which is their detestation, and they will love the truth.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that may be safely affirmed of them.
|
|
|
|
'May be,' my friend, I replied, is not the word; say rather 'must be
|
|
affirmed:' for he whose nature is amorous of anything cannot help loving
|
|
all that belongs or is akin to the object of his affections.
|
|
|
|
Right, he said.
|
|
|
|
And is there anything more akin to wisdom than truth?
|
|
|
|
How can there be?
|
|
|
|
Can the same nature be a lover of wisdom and a lover of falsehood?
|
|
|
|
Never.
|
|
|
|
The true lover of learning then must from his earliest youth, as far as
|
|
in him lies, desire all truth?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
But then again, as we know by experience, he whose desires are strong
|
|
in one direction will have them weaker in others; they will be like a
|
|
stream which has been drawn off into another channel.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
He whose desires are drawn towards knowledge in every form will be
|
|
absorbed in the pleasures of the soul, and will hardly feel bodily
|
|
pleasure--I mean, if he be a true philosopher and not a sham one.
|
|
|
|
That is most certain.
|
|
|
|
Such an one is sure to be temperate and the reverse of covetous; for the
|
|
motives which make another man desirous of having and spending, have no
|
|
place in his character.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Another criterion of the philosophical nature has also to be considered.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
There should be no secret corner of illiberality; nothing can be more
|
|
antagonistic than meanness to a soul which is ever longing after the
|
|
whole of things both divine and human.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then how can he who has magnificence of mind and is the spectator of all
|
|
time and all existence, think much of human life?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
Or can such an one account death fearful?
|
|
|
|
No indeed.
|
|
|
|
Then the cowardly and mean nature has no part in true philosophy?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or again: can he who is harmoniously constituted, who is not covetous or
|
|
mean, or a boaster, or a coward--can he, I say, ever be unjust or hard
|
|
in his dealings?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then you will soon observe whether a man is just and gentle, or rude
|
|
and unsociable; these are the signs which distinguish even in youth the
|
|
philosophical nature from the unphilosophical.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
There is another point which should be remarked.
|
|
|
|
What point?
|
|
|
|
Whether he has or has not a pleasure in learning; for no one will love
|
|
that which gives him pain, and in which after much toil he makes little
|
|
progress.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And again, if he is forgetful and retains nothing of what he learns,
|
|
will he not be an empty vessel?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
Labouring in vain, he must end in hating himself and his fruitless
|
|
occupation? Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then a soul which forgets cannot be ranked among genuine philosophic
|
|
natures; we must insist that the philosopher should have a good memory?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And once more, the inharmonious and unseemly nature can only tend to
|
|
disproportion?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
And do you consider truth to be akin to proportion or to disproportion?
|
|
|
|
To proportion.
|
|
|
|
Then, besides other qualities, we must try to find a naturally
|
|
well-proportioned and gracious mind, which will move spontaneously
|
|
towards the true being of everything.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Well, and do not all these qualities, which we have been enumerating, go
|
|
together, and are they not, in a manner, necessary to a soul, which is
|
|
to have a full and perfect participation of being?
|
|
|
|
They are absolutely necessary, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And must not that be a blameless study which he only can pursue who has
|
|
the gift of a good memory, and is quick to learn,--noble, gracious, the
|
|
friend of truth, justice, courage, temperance, who are his kindred?
|
|
|
|
The god of jealousy himself, he said, could find no fault with such a
|
|
study.
|
|
|
|
And to men like him, I said, when perfected by years and education, and
|
|
to these only you will entrust the State.
|
|
|
|
Here Adeimantus interposed and said: To these statements, Socrates, no
|
|
one can offer a reply; but when you talk in this way, a strange feeling
|
|
passes over the minds of your hearers: They fancy that they are led
|
|
astray a little at each step in the argument, owing to their own want of
|
|
skill in asking and answering questions; these littles accumulate, and
|
|
at the end of the discussion they are found to have sustained a mighty
|
|
overthrow and all their former notions appear to be turned upside down.
|
|
And as unskilful players of draughts are at last shut up by their
|
|
more skilful adversaries and have no piece to move, so they too find
|
|
themselves shut up at last; for they have nothing to say in this new
|
|
game of which words are the counters; and yet all the time they are in
|
|
the right. The observation is suggested to me by what is now occurring.
|
|
For any one of us might say, that although in words he is not able
|
|
to meet you at each step of the argument, he sees as a fact that the
|
|
votaries of philosophy, when they carry on the study, not only in youth
|
|
as a part of education, but as the pursuit of their maturer years, most
|
|
of them become strange monsters, not to say utter rogues, and that those
|
|
who may be considered the best of them are made useless to the world by
|
|
the very study which you extol.
|
|
|
|
Well, and do you think that those who say so are wrong?
|
|
|
|
I cannot tell, he replied; but I should like to know what is your
|
|
opinion.
|
|
|
|
Hear my answer; I am of opinion that they are quite right.
|
|
|
|
Then how can you be justified in saying that cities will not cease from
|
|
evil until philosophers rule in them, when philosophers are acknowledged
|
|
by us to be of no use to them?
|
|
|
|
You ask a question, I said, to which a reply can only be given in a
|
|
parable.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates; and that is a way of speaking to which you are not at all
|
|
accustomed, I suppose.
|
|
|
|
I perceive, I said, that you are vastly amused at having plunged me into
|
|
such a hopeless discussion; but now hear the parable, and then you will
|
|
be still more amused at the meagreness of my imagination: for the manner
|
|
in which the best men are treated in their own States is so grievous
|
|
that no single thing on earth is comparable to it; and therefore, if
|
|
I am to plead their cause, I must have recourse to fiction, and put
|
|
together a figure made up of many things, like the fabulous unions of
|
|
goats and stags which are found in pictures. Imagine then a fleet or a
|
|
ship in which there is a captain who is taller and stronger than any of
|
|
the crew, but he is a little deaf and has a similar infirmity in sight,
|
|
and his knowledge of navigation is not much better. The sailors are
|
|
quarrelling with one another about the steering--every one is of opinion
|
|
that he has a right to steer, though he has never learned the art of
|
|
navigation and cannot tell who taught him or when he learned, and will
|
|
further assert that it cannot be taught, and they are ready to cut in
|
|
pieces any one who says the contrary. They throng about the captain,
|
|
begging and praying him to commit the helm to them; and if at any time
|
|
they do not prevail, but others are preferred to them, they kill the
|
|
others or throw them overboard, and having first chained up the noble
|
|
captain's senses with drink or some narcotic drug, they mutiny and take
|
|
possession of the ship and make free with the stores; thus, eating
|
|
and drinking, they proceed on their voyage in such manner as might be
|
|
expected of them. Him who is their partisan and cleverly aids them in
|
|
their plot for getting the ship out of the captain's hands into their
|
|
own whether by force or persuasion, they compliment with the name of
|
|
sailor, pilot, able seaman, and abuse the other sort of man, whom they
|
|
call a good-for-nothing; but that the true pilot must pay attention
|
|
to the year and seasons and sky and stars and winds, and whatever else
|
|
belongs to his art, if he intends to be really qualified for the command
|
|
of a ship, and that he must and will be the steerer, whether other
|
|
people like or not--the possibility of this union of authority with the
|
|
steerer's art has never seriously entered into their thoughts or been
|
|
made part of their calling. Now in vessels which are in a state of
|
|
mutiny and by sailors who are mutineers, how will the true pilot be
|
|
regarded? Will he not be called by them a prater, a star-gazer, a
|
|
good-for-nothing?
|
|
|
|
Of course, said Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Then you will hardly need, I said, to hear the interpretation of the
|
|
figure, which describes the true philosopher in his relation to the
|
|
State; for you understand already.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then suppose you now take this parable to the gentleman who is surprised
|
|
at finding that philosophers have no honour in their cities; explain
|
|
it to him and try to convince him that their having honour would be far
|
|
more extraordinary.
|
|
|
|
I will.
|
|
|
|
Say to him, that, in deeming the best votaries of philosophy to be
|
|
useless to the rest of the world, he is right; but also tell him to
|
|
attribute their uselessness to the fault of those who will not use them,
|
|
and not to themselves. The pilot should not humbly beg the sailors to be
|
|
commanded by him--that is not the order of nature; neither are 'the wise
|
|
to go to the doors of the rich'--the ingenious author of this saying
|
|
told a lie--but the truth is, that, when a man is ill, whether he
|
|
be rich or poor, to the physician he must go, and he who wants to
|
|
be governed, to him who is able to govern. The ruler who is good for
|
|
anything ought not to beg his subjects to be ruled by him; although
|
|
the present governors of mankind are of a different stamp; they may be
|
|
justly compared to the mutinous sailors, and the true helmsmen to those
|
|
who are called by them good-for-nothings and star-gazers.
|
|
|
|
Precisely so, he said.
|
|
|
|
For these reasons, and among men like these, philosophy, the noblest
|
|
pursuit of all, is not likely to be much esteemed by those of the
|
|
opposite faction; not that the greatest and most lasting injury is done
|
|
to her by her opponents, but by her own professing followers, the same
|
|
of whom you suppose the accuser to say, that the greater number of them
|
|
are arrant rogues, and the best are useless; in which opinion I agreed.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the reason why the good are useless has now been explained?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then shall we proceed to show that the corruption of the majority is
|
|
also unavoidable, and that this is not to be laid to the charge of
|
|
philosophy any more than the other?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And let us ask and answer in turn, first going back to the description
|
|
of the gentle and noble nature. Truth, as you will remember, was his
|
|
leader, whom he followed always and in all things; failing in this, he
|
|
was an impostor, and had no part or lot in true philosophy.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was said.
|
|
|
|
Well, and is not this one quality, to mention no others, greatly at
|
|
variance with present notions of him?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And have we not a right to say in his defence, that the true lover of
|
|
knowledge is always striving after being--that is his nature; he will
|
|
not rest in the multiplicity of individuals which is an appearance only,
|
|
but will go on--the keen edge will not be blunted, nor the force of his
|
|
desire abate until he have attained the knowledge of the true nature
|
|
of every essence by a sympathetic and kindred power in the soul, and by
|
|
that power drawing near and mingling and becoming incorporate with very
|
|
being, having begotten mind and truth, he will have knowledge and will
|
|
live and grow truly, and then, and not till then, will he cease from his
|
|
travail.
|
|
|
|
Nothing, he said, can be more just than such a description of him.
|
|
|
|
And will the love of a lie be any part of a philosopher's nature? Will
|
|
he not utterly hate a lie?
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
And when truth is the captain, we cannot suspect any evil of the band
|
|
which he leads?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Justice and health of mind will be of the company, and temperance will
|
|
follow after?
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Neither is there any reason why I should again set in array the
|
|
philosopher's virtues, as you will doubtless remember that courage,
|
|
magnificence, apprehension, memory, were his natural gifts. And you
|
|
objected that, although no one could deny what I then said, still, if
|
|
you leave words and look at facts, the persons who are thus described
|
|
are some of them manifestly useless, and the greater number utterly
|
|
depraved; we were then led to enquire into the grounds of these
|
|
accusations, and have now arrived at the point of asking why are
|
|
the majority bad, which question of necessity brought us back to the
|
|
examination and definition of the true philosopher.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And we have next to consider the corruptions of the philosophic nature,
|
|
why so many are spoiled and so few escape spoiling--I am speaking of
|
|
those who were said to be useless but not wicked--and, when we have done
|
|
with them, we will speak of the imitators of philosophy, what manner of
|
|
men are they who aspire after a profession which is above them and of
|
|
which they are unworthy, and then, by their manifold inconsistencies,
|
|
bring upon philosophy, and upon all philosophers, that universal
|
|
reprobation of which we speak.
|
|
|
|
What are these corruptions? he said.
|
|
|
|
I will see if I can explain them to you. Every one will admit that a
|
|
nature having in perfection all the qualities which we required in a
|
|
philosopher, is a rare plant which is seldom seen among men.
|
|
|
|
Rare indeed.
|
|
|
|
And what numberless and powerful causes tend to destroy these rare
|
|
natures!
|
|
|
|
What causes?
|
|
|
|
In the first place there are their own virtues, their courage,
|
|
temperance, and the rest of them, every one of which praiseworthy
|
|
qualities (and this is a most singular circumstance) destroys and
|
|
distracts from philosophy the soul which is the possessor of them.
|
|
|
|
That is very singular, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then there are all the ordinary goods of life--beauty, wealth, strength,
|
|
rank, and great connections in the State--you understand the sort of
|
|
things--these also have a corrupting and distracting effect.
|
|
|
|
I understand; but I should like to know more precisely what you mean
|
|
about them.
|
|
|
|
Grasp the truth as a whole, I said, and in the right way; you will then
|
|
have no difficulty in apprehending the preceding remarks, and they will
|
|
no longer appear strange to you.
|
|
|
|
And how am I to do so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, we know that all germs or seeds, whether vegetable or
|
|
animal, when they fail to meet with proper nutriment or climate or soil,
|
|
in proportion to their vigour, are all the more sensitive to the want of
|
|
a suitable environment, for evil is a greater enemy to what is good than
|
|
to what is not.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
There is reason in supposing that the finest natures, when under alien
|
|
conditions, receive more injury than the inferior, because the contrast
|
|
is greater.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say, Adeimantus, that the most gifted minds, when they
|
|
are ill-educated, become pre-eminently bad? Do not great crimes and
|
|
the spirit of pure evil spring out of a fulness of nature ruined by
|
|
education rather than from any inferiority, whereas weak natures are
|
|
scarcely capable of any very great good or very great evil?
|
|
|
|
There I think that you are right.
|
|
|
|
And our philosopher follows the same analogy--he is like a plant which,
|
|
having proper nurture, must necessarily grow and mature into all virtue,
|
|
but, if sown and planted in an alien soil, becomes the most noxious of
|
|
all weeds, unless he be preserved by some divine power. Do you really
|
|
think, as people so often say, that our youth are corrupted by Sophists,
|
|
or that private teachers of the art corrupt them in any degree worth
|
|
speaking of? Are not the public who say these things the greatest of all
|
|
Sophists? And do they not educate to perfection young and old, men and
|
|
women alike, and fashion them after their own hearts?
|
|
|
|
When is this accomplished? he said.
|
|
|
|
When they meet together, and the world sits down at an assembly, or in
|
|
a court of law, or a theatre, or a camp, or in any other popular resort,
|
|
and there is a great uproar, and they praise some things which are
|
|
being said or done, and blame other things, equally exaggerating both,
|
|
shouting and clapping their hands, and the echo of the rocks and the
|
|
place in which they are assembled redoubles the sound of the praise or
|
|
blame--at such a time will not a young man's heart, as they say, leap
|
|
within him? Will any private training enable him to stand firm against
|
|
the overwhelming flood of popular opinion? or will he be carried away
|
|
by the stream? Will he not have the notions of good and evil which the
|
|
public in general have--he will do as they do, and as they are, such
|
|
will he be?
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates; necessity will compel him.
|
|
|
|
And yet, I said, there is a still greater necessity, which has not been
|
|
mentioned.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The gentle force of attainder or confiscation or death, which, as you
|
|
are aware, these new Sophists and educators, who are the public, apply
|
|
when their words are powerless.
|
|
|
|
Indeed they do; and in right good earnest.
|
|
|
|
Now what opinion of any other Sophist, or of any private person, can be
|
|
expected to overcome in such an unequal contest?
|
|
|
|
None, he replied.
|
|
|
|
No, indeed, I said, even to make the attempt is a great piece of folly;
|
|
there neither is, nor has been, nor is ever likely to be, any different
|
|
type of character which has had no other training in virtue but that
|
|
which is supplied by public opinion--I speak, my friend, of human virtue
|
|
only; what is more than human, as the proverb says, is not included:
|
|
for I would not have you ignorant that, in the present evil state of
|
|
governments, whatever is saved and comes to good is saved by the power
|
|
of God, as we may truly say.
|
|
|
|
I quite assent, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then let me crave your assent also to a further observation.
|
|
|
|
What are you going to say?
|
|
|
|
Why, that all those mercenary individuals, whom the many call Sophists
|
|
and whom they deem to be their adversaries, do, in fact, teach nothing
|
|
but the opinion of the many, that is to say, the opinions of their
|
|
assemblies; and this is their wisdom. I might compare them to a man who
|
|
should study the tempers and desires of a mighty strong beast who is
|
|
fed by him--he would learn how to approach and handle him, also at what
|
|
times and from what causes he is dangerous or the reverse, and what
|
|
is the meaning of his several cries, and by what sounds, when another
|
|
utters them, he is soothed or infuriated; and you may suppose further,
|
|
that when, by continually attending upon him, he has become perfect in
|
|
all this, he calls his knowledge wisdom, and makes of it a system or
|
|
art, which he proceeds to teach, although he has no real notion of what
|
|
he means by the principles or passions of which he is speaking, but
|
|
calls this honourable and that dishonourable, or good or evil, or just
|
|
or unjust, all in accordance with the tastes and tempers of the great
|
|
brute. Good he pronounces to be that in which the beast delights and
|
|
evil to be that which he dislikes; and he can give no other account
|
|
of them except that the just and noble are the necessary, having never
|
|
himself seen, and having no power of explaining to others the nature
|
|
of either, or the difference between them, which is immense. By heaven,
|
|
would not such an one be a rare educator?
|
|
|
|
Indeed he would.
|
|
|
|
And in what way does he who thinks that wisdom is the discernment of
|
|
the tempers and tastes of the motley multitude, whether in painting
|
|
or music, or, finally, in politics, differ from him whom I have been
|
|
describing? For when a man consorts with the many, and exhibits to
|
|
them his poem or other work of art or the service which he has done
|
|
the State, making them his judges when he is not obliged, the so-called
|
|
necessity of Diomede will oblige him to produce whatever they
|
|
praise. And yet the reasons are utterly ludicrous which they give in
|
|
confirmation of their own notions about the honourable and good. Did you
|
|
ever hear any of them which were not?
|
|
|
|
No, nor am I likely to hear.
|
|
|
|
You recognise the truth of what I have been saying? Then let me ask you
|
|
to consider further whether the world will ever be induced to believe in
|
|
the existence of absolute beauty rather than of the many beautiful, or
|
|
of the absolute in each kind rather than of the many in each kind?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then the world cannot possibly be a philosopher?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And therefore philosophers must inevitably fall under the censure of the
|
|
world?
|
|
|
|
They must.
|
|
|
|
And of individuals who consort with the mob and seek to please them?
|
|
|
|
That is evident.
|
|
|
|
Then, do you see any way in which the philosopher can be preserved in
|
|
his calling to the end? and remember what we were saying of him, that
|
|
he was to have quickness and memory and courage and magnificence--these
|
|
were admitted by us to be the true philosopher's gifts.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Will not such an one from his early childhood be in all things first
|
|
among all, especially if his bodily endowments are like his mental ones?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And his friends and fellow-citizens will want to use him as he gets
|
|
older for their own purposes?
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
Falling at his feet, they will make requests to him and do him honour
|
|
and flatter him, because they want to get into their hands now, the
|
|
power which he will one day possess.
|
|
|
|
That often happens, he said.
|
|
|
|
And what will a man such as he is be likely to do under such
|
|
circumstances, especially if he be a citizen of a great city, rich
|
|
and noble, and a tall proper youth? Will he not be full of boundless
|
|
aspirations, and fancy himself able to manage the affairs of Hellenes
|
|
and of barbarians, and having got such notions into his head will he
|
|
not dilate and elevate himself in the fulness of vain pomp and senseless
|
|
pride?
|
|
|
|
To be sure he will.
|
|
|
|
Now, when he is in this state of mind, if some one gently comes to him
|
|
and tells him that he is a fool and must get understanding, which can
|
|
only be got by slaving for it, do you think that, under such adverse
|
|
circumstances, he will be easily induced to listen?
|
|
|
|
Far otherwise.
|
|
|
|
And even if there be some one who through inherent goodness or natural
|
|
reasonableness has had his eyes opened a little and is humbled and taken
|
|
captive by philosophy, how will his friends behave when they think that
|
|
they are likely to lose the advantage which they were hoping to reap
|
|
from his companionship? Will they not do and say anything to prevent him
|
|
from yielding to his better nature and to render his teacher powerless,
|
|
using to this end private intrigues as well as public prosecutions?
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt of it.
|
|
|
|
And how can one who is thus circumstanced ever become a philosopher?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then were we not right in saying that even the very qualities which
|
|
make a man a philosopher may, if he be ill-educated, divert him from
|
|
philosophy, no less than riches and their accompaniments and the other
|
|
so-called goods of life?
|
|
|
|
We were quite right.
|
|
|
|
Thus, my excellent friend, is brought about all that ruin and failure
|
|
which I have been describing of the natures best adapted to the best of
|
|
all pursuits; they are natures which we maintain to be rare at any time;
|
|
this being the class out of which come the men who are the authors of
|
|
the greatest evil to States and individuals; and also of the greatest
|
|
good when the tide carries them in that direction; but a small man never
|
|
was the doer of any great thing either to individuals or to States.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so philosophy is left desolate, with her marriage rite incomplete:
|
|
for her own have fallen away and forsaken her, and while they are
|
|
leading a false and unbecoming life, other unworthy persons, seeing that
|
|
she has no kinsmen to be her protectors, enter in and dishonour her; and
|
|
fasten upon her the reproaches which, as you say, her reprovers utter,
|
|
who affirm of her votaries that some are good for nothing, and that the
|
|
greater number deserve the severest punishment.
|
|
|
|
That is certainly what people say.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and what else would you expect, I said, when you think of the puny
|
|
creatures who, seeing this land open to them--a land well stocked with
|
|
fair names and showy titles--like prisoners running out of prison into a
|
|
sanctuary, take a leap out of their trades into philosophy; those who
|
|
do so being probably the cleverest hands at their own miserable crafts?
|
|
For, although philosophy be in this evil case, still there remains a
|
|
dignity about her which is not to be found in the arts. And many are
|
|
thus attracted by her whose natures are imperfect and whose souls are
|
|
maimed and disfigured by their meannesses, as their bodies are by their
|
|
trades and crafts. Is not this unavoidable?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Are they not exactly like a bald little tinker who has just got out of
|
|
durance and come into a fortune; he takes a bath and puts on a new coat,
|
|
and is decked out as a bridegroom going to marry his master's daughter,
|
|
who is left poor and desolate?
|
|
|
|
A most exact parallel.
|
|
|
|
What will be the issue of such marriages? Will they not be vile and
|
|
bastard?
|
|
|
|
There can be no question of it.
|
|
|
|
And when persons who are unworthy of education approach philosophy and
|
|
make an alliance with her who is in a rank above them what sort of
|
|
ideas and opinions are likely to be generated? Will they not be sophisms
|
|
captivating to the ear, having nothing in them genuine, or worthy of or
|
|
akin to true wisdom?
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, Adeimantus, I said, the worthy disciples of philosophy will be but
|
|
a small remnant: perchance some noble and well-educated person, detained
|
|
by exile in her service, who in the absence of corrupting influences
|
|
remains devoted to her; or some lofty soul born in a mean city, the
|
|
politics of which he contemns and neglects; and there may be a gifted
|
|
few who leave the arts, which they justly despise, and come to her;--or
|
|
peradventure there are some who are restrained by our friend Theages'
|
|
bridle; for everything in the life of Theages conspired to divert him
|
|
from philosophy; but ill-health kept him away from politics. My own case
|
|
of the internal sign is hardly worth mentioning, for rarely, if ever,
|
|
has such a monitor been given to any other man. Those who belong to this
|
|
small class have tasted how sweet and blessed a possession philosophy
|
|
is, and have also seen enough of the madness of the multitude; and they
|
|
know that no politician is honest, nor is there any champion of justice
|
|
at whose side they may fight and be saved. Such an one may be compared
|
|
to a man who has fallen among wild beasts--he will not join in the
|
|
wickedness of his fellows, but neither is he able singly to resist all
|
|
their fierce natures, and therefore seeing that he would be of no use to
|
|
the State or to his friends, and reflecting that he would have to throw
|
|
away his life without doing any good either to himself or others, he
|
|
holds his peace, and goes his own way. He is like one who, in the storm
|
|
of dust and sleet which the driving wind hurries along, retires
|
|
under the shelter of a wall; and seeing the rest of mankind full of
|
|
wickedness, he is content, if only he can live his own life and be pure
|
|
from evil or unrighteousness, and depart in peace and good-will, with
|
|
bright hopes.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and he will have done a great work before he departs.
|
|
|
|
A great work--yes; but not the greatest, unless he find a State suitable
|
|
to him; for in a State which is suitable to him, he will have a larger
|
|
growth and be the saviour of his country, as well as of himself.
|
|
|
|
The causes why philosophy is in such an evil name have now been
|
|
sufficiently explained: the injustice of the charges against her has
|
|
been shown--is there anything more which you wish to say?
|
|
|
|
Nothing more on that subject, he replied; but I should like to know
|
|
which of the governments now existing is in your opinion the one adapted
|
|
to her.
|
|
|
|
Not any of them, I said; and that is precisely the accusation which I
|
|
bring against them--not one of them is worthy of the philosophic nature,
|
|
and hence that nature is warped and estranged;--as the exotic seed
|
|
which is sown in a foreign land becomes denaturalized, and is wont to be
|
|
overpowered and to lose itself in the new soil, even so this growth
|
|
of philosophy, instead of persisting, degenerates and receives another
|
|
character. But if philosophy ever finds in the State that perfection
|
|
which she herself is, then will be seen that she is in truth divine, and
|
|
that all other things, whether natures of men or institutions, are but
|
|
human;--and now, I know, that you are going to ask, What that State is:
|
|
|
|
No, he said; there you are wrong, for I was going to ask another
|
|
question--whether it is the State of which we are the founders and
|
|
inventors, or some other?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, ours in most respects; but you may remember my saying
|
|
before, that some living authority would always be required in the
|
|
State having the same idea of the constitution which guided you when as
|
|
legislator you were laying down the laws.
|
|
|
|
That was said, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, but not in a satisfactory manner; you frightened us by interposing
|
|
objections, which certainly showed that the discussion would be long and
|
|
difficult; and what still remains is the reverse of easy.
|
|
|
|
What is there remaining?
|
|
|
|
The question how the study of philosophy may be so ordered as not to be
|
|
the ruin of the State: All great attempts are attended with risk; 'hard
|
|
is the good,' as men say.
|
|
|
|
Still, he said, let the point be cleared up, and the enquiry will then
|
|
be complete.
|
|
|
|
I shall not be hindered, I said, by any want of will, but, if at all,
|
|
by a want of power: my zeal you may see for yourselves; and please to
|
|
remark in what I am about to say how boldly and unhesitatingly I declare
|
|
that States should pursue philosophy, not as they do now, but in a
|
|
different spirit.
|
|
|
|
In what manner?
|
|
|
|
At present, I said, the students of philosophy are quite young;
|
|
beginning when they are hardly past childhood, they devote only the time
|
|
saved from moneymaking and housekeeping to such pursuits; and even those
|
|
of them who are reputed to have most of the philosophic spirit, when
|
|
they come within sight of the great difficulty of the subject, I mean
|
|
dialectic, take themselves off. In after life when invited by some one
|
|
else, they may, perhaps, go and hear a lecture, and about this they make
|
|
much ado, for philosophy is not considered by them to be their
|
|
proper business: at last, when they grow old, in most cases they are
|
|
extinguished more truly than Heracleitus' sun, inasmuch as they never
|
|
light up again. (Heraclitus said that the sun was extinguished every
|
|
evening and relighted every morning.)
|
|
|
|
But what ought to be their course?
|
|
|
|
Just the opposite. In childhood and youth their study, and what
|
|
philosophy they learn, should be suited to their tender years: during
|
|
this period while they are growing up towards manhood, the chief and
|
|
special care should be given to their bodies that they may have them
|
|
to use in the service of philosophy; as life advances and the intellect
|
|
begins to mature, let them increase the gymnastics of the soul; but
|
|
when the strength of our citizens fails and is past civil and military
|
|
duties, then let them range at will and engage in no serious labour,
|
|
as we intend them to live happily here, and to crown this life with a
|
|
similar happiness in another.
|
|
|
|
How truly in earnest you are, Socrates! he said; I am sure of that; and
|
|
yet most of your hearers, if I am not mistaken, are likely to be still
|
|
more earnest in their opposition to you, and will never be convinced;
|
|
Thrasymachus least of all.
|
|
|
|
Do not make a quarrel, I said, between Thrasymachus and me, who have
|
|
recently become friends, although, indeed, we were never enemies; for I
|
|
shall go on striving to the utmost until I either convert him and other
|
|
men, or do something which may profit them against the day when they
|
|
live again, and hold the like discourse in another state of existence.
|
|
|
|
You are speaking of a time which is not very near.
|
|
|
|
Rather, I replied, of a time which is as nothing in comparison with
|
|
eternity. Nevertheless, I do not wonder that the many refuse to believe;
|
|
for they have never seen that of which we are now speaking realized;
|
|
they have seen only a conventional imitation of philosophy, consisting
|
|
of words artificially brought together, not like these of ours having
|
|
a natural unity. But a human being who in word and work is perfectly
|
|
moulded, as far as he can be, into the proportion and likeness of
|
|
virtue--such a man ruling in a city which bears the same image, they
|
|
have never yet seen, neither one nor many of them--do you think that
|
|
they ever did?
|
|
|
|
No indeed.
|
|
|
|
No, my friend, and they have seldom, if ever, heard free and noble
|
|
sentiments; such as men utter when they are earnestly and by every means
|
|
in their power seeking after truth for the sake of knowledge, while
|
|
they look coldly on the subtleties of controversy, of which the end is
|
|
opinion and strife, whether they meet with them in the courts of law or
|
|
in society.
|
|
|
|
They are strangers, he said, to the words of which you speak.
|
|
|
|
And this was what we foresaw, and this was the reason why truth forced
|
|
us to admit, not without fear and hesitation, that neither cities nor
|
|
States nor individuals will ever attain perfection until the small
|
|
class of philosophers whom we termed useless but not corrupt are
|
|
providentially compelled, whether they will or not, to take care of the
|
|
State, and until a like necessity be laid on the State to obey them; or
|
|
until kings, or if not kings, the sons of kings or princes, are divinely
|
|
inspired with a true love of true philosophy. That either or both of
|
|
these alternatives are impossible, I see no reason to affirm: if
|
|
they were so, we might indeed be justly ridiculed as dreamers and
|
|
visionaries. Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Quite right.
|
|
|
|
If then, in the countless ages of the past, or at the present hour in
|
|
some foreign clime which is far away and beyond our ken, the perfected
|
|
philosopher is or has been or hereafter shall be compelled by a superior
|
|
power to have the charge of the State, we are ready to assert to the
|
|
death, that this our constitution has been, and is--yea, and will be
|
|
whenever the Muse of Philosophy is queen. There is no impossibility in
|
|
all this; that there is a difficulty, we acknowledge ourselves.
|
|
|
|
My opinion agrees with yours, he said.
|
|
|
|
But do you mean to say that this is not the opinion of the multitude?
|
|
|
|
I should imagine not, he replied.
|
|
|
|
O my friend, I said, do not attack the multitude: they will change their
|
|
minds, if, not in an aggressive spirit, but gently and with the view
|
|
of soothing them and removing their dislike of over-education, you show
|
|
them your philosophers as they really are and describe as you were just
|
|
now doing their character and profession, and then mankind will see that
|
|
he of whom you are speaking is not such as they supposed--if they view
|
|
him in this new light, they will surely change their notion of him, and
|
|
answer in another strain. Who can be at enmity with one who loves them,
|
|
who that is himself gentle and free from envy will be jealous of one
|
|
in whom there is no jealousy? Nay, let me answer for you, that in a few
|
|
this harsh temper may be found but not in the majority of mankind.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
And do you not also think, as I do, that the harsh feeling which the
|
|
many entertain towards philosophy originates in the pretenders, who rush
|
|
in uninvited, and are always abusing them, and finding fault with them,
|
|
who make persons instead of things the theme of their conversation? and
|
|
nothing can be more unbecoming in philosophers than this.
|
|
|
|
It is most unbecoming.
|
|
|
|
For he, Adeimantus, whose mind is fixed upon true being, has surely no
|
|
time to look down upon the affairs of earth, or to be filled with malice
|
|
and envy, contending against men; his eye is ever directed towards
|
|
things fixed and immutable, which he sees neither injuring nor injured
|
|
by one another, but all in order moving according to reason; these he
|
|
imitates, and to these he will, as far as he can, conform himself. Can a
|
|
man help imitating that with which he holds reverential converse?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And the philosopher holding converse with the divine order, becomes
|
|
orderly and divine, as far as the nature of man allows; but like every
|
|
one else, he will suffer from detraction.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And if a necessity be laid upon him of fashioning, not only himself,
|
|
but human nature generally, whether in States or individuals, into
|
|
that which he beholds elsewhere, will he, think you, be an unskilful
|
|
artificer of justice, temperance, and every civil virtue?
|
|
|
|
Anything but unskilful.
|
|
|
|
And if the world perceives that what we are saying about him is the
|
|
truth, will they be angry with philosophy? Will they disbelieve us, when
|
|
we tell them that no State can be happy which is not designed by artists
|
|
who imitate the heavenly pattern?
|
|
|
|
They will not be angry if they understand, he said. But how will they
|
|
draw out the plan of which you are speaking?
|
|
|
|
They will begin by taking the State and the manners of men, from which,
|
|
as from a tablet, they will rub out the picture, and leave a clean
|
|
surface. This is no easy task. But whether easy or not, herein will lie
|
|
the difference between them and every other legislator,--they will have
|
|
nothing to do either with individual or State, and will inscribe no
|
|
laws, until they have either found, or themselves made, a clean surface.
|
|
|
|
They will be very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Having effected this, they will proceed to trace an outline of the
|
|
constitution?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
And when they are filling in the work, as I conceive, they will often
|
|
turn their eyes upwards and downwards: I mean that they will first look
|
|
at absolute justice and beauty and temperance, and again at the human
|
|
copy; and will mingle and temper the various elements of life into the
|
|
image of a man; and this they will conceive according to that other
|
|
image, which, when existing among men, Homer calls the form and likeness
|
|
of God.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And one feature they will erase, and another they will put in, until
|
|
they have made the ways of men, as far as possible, agreeable to the
|
|
ways of God?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he said, in no way could they make a fairer picture.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, are we beginning to persuade those whom you described
|
|
as rushing at us with might and main, that the painter of constitutions
|
|
is such an one as we are praising; at whom they were so very indignant
|
|
because to his hands we committed the State; and are they growing a
|
|
little calmer at what they have just heard?
|
|
|
|
Much calmer, if there is any sense in them.
|
|
|
|
Why, where can they still find any ground for objection? Will they doubt
|
|
that the philosopher is a lover of truth and being?
|
|
|
|
They would not be so unreasonable.
|
|
|
|
Or that his nature, being such as we have delineated, is akin to the
|
|
highest good?
|
|
|
|
Neither can they doubt this.
|
|
|
|
But again, will they tell us that such a nature, placed under favourable
|
|
circumstances, will not be perfectly good and wise if any ever was? Or
|
|
will they prefer those whom we have rejected?
|
|
|
|
Surely not.
|
|
|
|
Then will they still be angry at our saying, that, until philosophers
|
|
bear rule, States and individuals will have no rest from evil, nor will
|
|
this our imaginary State ever be realized?
|
|
|
|
I think that they will be less angry.
|
|
|
|
Shall we assume that they are not only less angry but quite gentle,
|
|
and that they have been converted and for very shame, if for no other
|
|
reason, cannot refuse to come to terms?
|
|
|
|
By all means, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then let us suppose that the reconciliation has been effected. Will any
|
|
one deny the other point, that there may be sons of kings or princes who
|
|
are by nature philosophers?
|
|
|
|
Surely no man, he said.
|
|
|
|
And when they have come into being will any one say that they must of
|
|
necessity be destroyed; that they can hardly be saved is not denied even
|
|
by us; but that in the whole course of ages no single one of them can
|
|
escape--who will venture to affirm this?
|
|
|
|
Who indeed!
|
|
|
|
But, said I, one is enough; let there be one man who has a city obedient
|
|
to his will, and he might bring into existence the ideal polity about
|
|
which the world is so incredulous.
|
|
|
|
Yes, one is enough.
|
|
|
|
The ruler may impose the laws and institutions which we have been
|
|
describing, and the citizens may possibly be willing to obey them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And that others should approve, of what we approve, is no miracle or
|
|
impossibility?
|
|
|
|
I think not.
|
|
|
|
But we have sufficiently shown, in what has preceded, that all this, if
|
|
only possible, is assuredly for the best.
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
And now we say not only that our laws, if they could be enacted, would
|
|
be for the best, but also that the enactment of them, though difficult,
|
|
is not impossible.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
And so with pain and toil we have reached the end of one subject, but
|
|
more remains to be discussed;--how and by what studies and pursuits will
|
|
the saviours of the constitution be created, and at what ages are they
|
|
to apply themselves to their several studies?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
I omitted the troublesome business of the possession of women, and the
|
|
procreation of children, and the appointment of the rulers, because
|
|
I knew that the perfect State would be eyed with jealousy and was
|
|
difficult of attainment; but that piece of cleverness was not of much
|
|
service to me, for I had to discuss them all the same. The women and
|
|
children are now disposed of, but the other question of the rulers must
|
|
be investigated from the very beginning. We were saying, as you will
|
|
remember, that they were to be lovers of their country, tried by the
|
|
test of pleasures and pains, and neither in hardships, nor in dangers,
|
|
nor at any other critical moment were to lose their patriotism--he was
|
|
to be rejected who failed, but he who always came forth pure, like gold
|
|
tried in the refiner's fire, was to be made a ruler, and to receive
|
|
honours and rewards in life and after death. This was the sort of thing
|
|
which was being said, and then the argument turned aside and veiled her
|
|
face; not liking to stir the question which has now arisen.
|
|
|
|
I perfectly remember, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my friend, I said, and I then shrank from hazarding the bold
|
|
word; but now let me dare to say--that the perfect guardian must be a
|
|
philosopher.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, let that be affirmed.
|
|
|
|
And do not suppose that there will be many of them; for the gifts which
|
|
were deemed by us to be essential rarely grow together; they are mostly
|
|
found in shreds and patches.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
You are aware, I replied, that quick intelligence, memory, sagacity,
|
|
cleverness, and similar qualities, do not often grow together, and that
|
|
persons who possess them and are at the same time high-spirited and
|
|
magnanimous are not so constituted by nature as to live orderly and in a
|
|
peaceful and settled manner; they are driven any way by their impulses,
|
|
and all solid principle goes out of them.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, those steadfast natures which can better be depended
|
|
upon, which in a battle are impregnable to fear and immovable, are
|
|
equally immovable when there is anything to be learned; they are
|
|
always in a torpid state, and are apt to yawn and go to sleep over any
|
|
intellectual toil.
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And yet we were saying that both qualities were necessary in those to
|
|
whom the higher education is to be imparted, and who are to share in any
|
|
office or command.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And will they be a class which is rarely found?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed.
|
|
|
|
Then the aspirant must not only be tested in those labours and dangers
|
|
and pleasures which we mentioned before, but there is another kind of
|
|
probation which we did not mention--he must be exercised also in many
|
|
kinds of knowledge, to see whether the soul will be able to endure the
|
|
highest of all, or will faint under them, as in any other studies and
|
|
exercises.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, you are quite right in testing him. But what do you mean
|
|
by the highest of all knowledge?
|
|
|
|
You may remember, I said, that we divided the soul into three parts; and
|
|
distinguished the several natures of justice, temperance, courage, and
|
|
wisdom?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he said, if I had forgotten, I should not deserve to hear more.
|
|
|
|
And do you remember the word of caution which preceded the discussion of
|
|
them?
|
|
|
|
To what do you refer?
|
|
|
|
We were saying, if I am not mistaken, that he who wanted to see them in
|
|
their perfect beauty must take a longer and more circuitous way, at
|
|
the end of which they would appear; but that we could add on a popular
|
|
exposition of them on a level with the discussion which had preceded.
|
|
And you replied that such an exposition would be enough for you, and so
|
|
the enquiry was continued in what to me seemed to be a very inaccurate
|
|
manner; whether you were satisfied or not, it is for you to say.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I thought and the others thought that you gave us a fair
|
|
measure of truth.
|
|
|
|
But, my friend, I said, a measure of such things which in any degree
|
|
falls short of the whole truth is not fair measure; for nothing
|
|
imperfect is the measure of anything, although persons are too apt to be
|
|
contented and think that they need search no further.
|
|
|
|
Not an uncommon case when people are indolent.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and there cannot be any worse fault in a guardian of the
|
|
State and of the laws.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The guardian then, I said, must be required to take the longer circuit,
|
|
and toil at learning as well as at gymnastics, or he will never reach
|
|
the highest knowledge of all which, as we were just now saying, is his
|
|
proper calling.
|
|
|
|
What, he said, is there a knowledge still higher than this--higher than
|
|
justice and the other virtues?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, there is. And of the virtues too we must behold not the
|
|
outline merely, as at present--nothing short of the most finished
|
|
picture should satisfy us. When little things are elaborated with an
|
|
infinity of pains, in order that they may appear in their full beauty
|
|
and utmost clearness, how ridiculous that we should not think the
|
|
highest truths worthy of attaining the highest accuracy!
|
|
|
|
A right noble thought; but do you suppose that we shall refrain from
|
|
asking you what is this highest knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Nay, I said, ask if you will; but I am certain that you have heard the
|
|
answer many times, and now you either do not understand me or, as I
|
|
rather think, you are disposed to be troublesome; for you have often
|
|
been told that the idea of good is the highest knowledge, and that all
|
|
other things become useful and advantageous only by their use of this.
|
|
You can hardly be ignorant that of this I was about to speak, concerning
|
|
which, as you have often heard me say, we know so little; and, without
|
|
which, any other knowledge or possession of any kind will profit us
|
|
nothing. Do you think that the possession of all other things is of
|
|
any value if we do not possess the good? or the knowledge of all other
|
|
things if we have no knowledge of beauty and goodness?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
You are further aware that most people affirm pleasure to be the good,
|
|
but the finer sort of wits say it is knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you are aware too that the latter cannot explain what they mean by
|
|
knowledge, but are obliged after all to say knowledge of the good?
|
|
|
|
How ridiculous!
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, that they should begin by reproaching us with our ignorance
|
|
of the good, and then presume our knowledge of it--for the good they
|
|
define to be knowledge of the good, just as if we understood them when
|
|
they use the term 'good'--this is of course ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And those who make pleasure their good are in equal perplexity; for they
|
|
are compelled to admit that there are bad pleasures as well as good.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And therefore to acknowledge that bad and good are the same?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt about the numerous difficulties in which this
|
|
question is involved.
|
|
|
|
There can be none.
|
|
|
|
Further, do we not see that many are willing to do or to have or to seem
|
|
to be what is just and honourable without the reality; but no one is
|
|
satisfied with the appearance of good--the reality is what they seek; in
|
|
the case of the good, appearance is despised by every one.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Of this then, which every soul of man pursues and makes the end of all
|
|
his actions, having a presentiment that there is such an end, and
|
|
yet hesitating because neither knowing the nature nor having the same
|
|
assurance of this as of other things, and therefore losing whatever
|
|
good there is in other things,--of a principle such and so great as this
|
|
ought the best men in our State, to whom everything is entrusted, to be
|
|
in the darkness of ignorance?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
I am sure, I said, that he who does not know how the beautiful and
|
|
the just are likewise good will be but a sorry guardian of them; and
|
|
I suspect that no one who is ignorant of the good will have a true
|
|
knowledge of them.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a shrewd suspicion of yours.
|
|
|
|
And if we only have a guardian who has this knowledge our State will be
|
|
perfectly ordered?
|
|
|
|
Of course, he replied; but I wish that you would tell me whether you
|
|
conceive this supreme principle of the good to be knowledge or pleasure,
|
|
or different from either?
|
|
|
|
Aye, I said, I knew all along that a fastidious gentleman like you would
|
|
not be contented with the thoughts of other people about these matters.
|
|
|
|
True, Socrates; but I must say that one who like you has passed a
|
|
lifetime in the study of philosophy should not be always repeating the
|
|
opinions of others, and never telling his own.
|
|
|
|
Well, but has any one a right to say positively what he does not know?
|
|
|
|
Not, he said, with the assurance of positive certainty; he has no right
|
|
to do that: but he may say what he thinks, as a matter of opinion.
|
|
|
|
And do you not know, I said, that all mere opinions are bad, and the
|
|
best of them blind? You would not deny that those who have any true
|
|
notion without intelligence are only like blind men who feel their way
|
|
along the road?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And do you wish to behold what is blind and crooked and base, when
|
|
others will tell you of brightness and beauty?
|
|
|
|
Still, I must implore you, Socrates, said Glaucon, not to turn away just
|
|
as you are reaching the goal; if you will only give such an explanation
|
|
of the good as you have already given of justice and temperance and the
|
|
other virtues, we shall be satisfied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my friend, and I shall be at least equally satisfied, but I cannot
|
|
help fearing that I shall fail, and that my indiscreet zeal will bring
|
|
ridicule upon me. No, sweet sirs, let us not at present ask what is the
|
|
actual nature of the good, for to reach what is now in my thoughts
|
|
would be an effort too great for me. But of the child of the good who
|
|
is likest him, I would fain speak, if I could be sure that you wished to
|
|
hear--otherwise, not.
|
|
|
|
By all means, he said, tell us about the child, and you shall remain in
|
|
our debt for the account of the parent.
|
|
|
|
I do indeed wish, I replied, that I could pay, and you receive, the
|
|
account of the parent, and not, as now, of the offspring only; take,
|
|
however, this latter by way of interest, and at the same time have a
|
|
care that I do not render a false account, although I have no intention
|
|
of deceiving you.
|
|
|
|
Yes, we will take all the care that we can: proceed.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, but I must first come to an understanding with you, and
|
|
remind you of what I have mentioned in the course of this discussion,
|
|
and at many other times.
|
|
|
|
What?
|
|
|
|
The old story, that there is a many beautiful and a many good, and so
|
|
of other things which we describe and define; to all of them the term
|
|
'many' is applied.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And there is an absolute beauty and an absolute good, and of other
|
|
things to which the term 'many' is applied there is an absolute; for
|
|
they may be brought under a single idea, which is called the essence of
|
|
each.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
The many, as we say, are seen but not known, and the ideas are known but
|
|
not seen.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And what is the organ with which we see the visible things?
|
|
|
|
The sight, he said.
|
|
|
|
And with the hearing, I said, we hear, and with the other senses
|
|
perceive the other objects of sense?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But have you remarked that sight is by far the most costly and complex
|
|
piece of workmanship which the artificer of the senses ever contrived?
|
|
|
|
No, I never have, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then reflect; has the ear or voice need of any third or additional
|
|
nature in order that the one may be able to hear and the other to be
|
|
heard?
|
|
|
|
Nothing of the sort.
|
|
|
|
No, indeed, I replied; and the same is true of most, if not all, the
|
|
other senses--you would not say that any of them requires such an
|
|
addition?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
But you see that without the addition of some other nature there is no
|
|
seeing or being seen?
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Sight being, as I conceive, in the eyes, and he who has eyes wanting to
|
|
see; colour being also present in them, still unless there be a third
|
|
nature specially adapted to the purpose, the owner of the eyes will see
|
|
nothing and the colours will be invisible.
|
|
|
|
Of what nature are you speaking?
|
|
|
|
Of that which you term light, I replied.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Noble, then, is the bond which links together sight and visibility, and
|
|
great beyond other bonds by no small difference of nature; for light is
|
|
their bond, and light is no ignoble thing?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, the reverse of ignoble.
|
|
|
|
And which, I said, of the gods in heaven would you say was the lord of
|
|
this element? Whose is that light which makes the eye to see perfectly
|
|
and the visible to appear?
|
|
|
|
You mean the sun, as you and all mankind say.
|
|
|
|
May not the relation of sight to this deity be described as follows?
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
Neither sight nor the eye in which sight resides is the sun?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
Yet of all the organs of sense the eye is the most like the sun?
|
|
|
|
By far the most like.
|
|
|
|
And the power which the eye possesses is a sort of effluence which is
|
|
dispensed from the sun?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Then the sun is not sight, but the author of sight who is recognised by
|
|
sight?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And this is he whom I call the child of the good, whom the good begat in
|
|
his own likeness, to be in the visible world, in relation to sight
|
|
and the things of sight, what the good is in the intellectual world in
|
|
relation to mind and the things of mind:
|
|
|
|
Will you be a little more explicit? he said.
|
|
|
|
Why, you know, I said, that the eyes, when a person directs them towards
|
|
objects on which the light of day is no longer shining, but the moon
|
|
and stars only, see dimly, and are nearly blind; they seem to have no
|
|
clearness of vision in them?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
But when they are directed towards objects on which the sun shines, they
|
|
see clearly and there is sight in them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the soul is like the eye: when resting upon that on which truth and
|
|
being shine, the soul perceives and understands, and is radiant with
|
|
intelligence; but when turned towards the twilight of becoming and
|
|
perishing, then she has opinion only, and goes blinking about, and
|
|
is first of one opinion and then of another, and seems to have no
|
|
intelligence?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
Now, that which imparts truth to the known and the power of knowing to
|
|
the knower is what I would have you term the idea of good, and this
|
|
you will deem to be the cause of science, and of truth in so far as
|
|
the latter becomes the subject of knowledge; beautiful too, as are both
|
|
truth and knowledge, you will be right in esteeming this other nature as
|
|
more beautiful than either; and, as in the previous instance, light and
|
|
sight may be truly said to be like the sun, and yet not to be the sun,
|
|
so in this other sphere, science and truth may be deemed to be like the
|
|
good, but not the good; the good has a place of honour yet higher.
|
|
|
|
What a wonder of beauty that must be, he said, which is the author of
|
|
science and truth, and yet surpasses them in beauty; for you surely
|
|
cannot mean to say that pleasure is the good?
|
|
|
|
God forbid, I replied; but may I ask you to consider the image in
|
|
another point of view?
|
|
|
|
In what point of view?
|
|
|
|
You would say, would you not, that the sun is not only the author of
|
|
visibility in all visible things, but of generation and nourishment and
|
|
growth, though he himself is not generation?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
In like manner the good may be said to be not only the author of
|
|
knowledge to all things known, but of their being and essence, and yet
|
|
the good is not essence, but far exceeds essence in dignity and power.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon said, with a ludicrous earnestness: By the light of heaven, how
|
|
amazing!
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and the exaggeration may be set down to you; for you made
|
|
me utter my fancies.
|
|
|
|
And pray continue to utter them; at any rate let us hear if there is
|
|
anything more to be said about the similitude of the sun.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, there is a great deal more.
|
|
|
|
Then omit nothing, however slight.
|
|
|
|
I will do my best, I said; but I should think that a great deal will
|
|
have to be omitted.
|
|
|
|
I hope not, he said.
|
|
|
|
You have to imagine, then, that there are two ruling powers, and that
|
|
one of them is set over the intellectual world, the other over the
|
|
visible. I do not say heaven, lest you should fancy that I am playing
|
|
upon the name ('ourhanoz, orhatoz'). May I suppose that you have this
|
|
distinction of the visible and intelligible fixed in your mind?
|
|
|
|
I have.
|
|
|
|
Now take a line which has been cut into two unequal parts, and divide
|
|
each of them again in the same proportion, and suppose the two
|
|
main divisions to answer, one to the visible and the other to the
|
|
intelligible, and then compare the subdivisions in respect of their
|
|
clearness and want of clearness, and you will find that the first
|
|
section in the sphere of the visible consists of images. And by images I
|
|
mean, in the first place, shadows, and in the second place, reflections
|
|
in water and in solid, smooth and polished bodies and the like: Do you
|
|
understand?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I understand.
|
|
|
|
Imagine, now, the other section, of which this is only the resemblance,
|
|
to include the animals which we see, and everything that grows or is
|
|
made.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Would you not admit that both the sections of this division have
|
|
different degrees of truth, and that the copy is to the original as the
|
|
sphere of opinion is to the sphere of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Most undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Next proceed to consider the manner in which the sphere of the
|
|
intellectual is to be divided.
|
|
|
|
In what manner?
|
|
|
|
Thus:--There are two subdivisions, in the lower of which the soul uses
|
|
the figures given by the former division as images; the enquiry can only
|
|
be hypothetical, and instead of going upwards to a principle descends
|
|
to the other end; in the higher of the two, the soul passes out of
|
|
hypotheses, and goes up to a principle which is above hypotheses, making
|
|
no use of images as in the former case, but proceeding only in and
|
|
through the ideas themselves.
|
|
|
|
I do not quite understand your meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then I will try again; you will understand me better when I have made
|
|
some preliminary remarks. You are aware that students of geometry,
|
|
arithmetic, and the kindred sciences assume the odd and the even and the
|
|
figures and three kinds of angles and the like in their several branches
|
|
of science; these are their hypotheses, which they and every body are
|
|
supposed to know, and therefore they do not deign to give any account of
|
|
them either to themselves or others; but they begin with them, and go
|
|
on until they arrive at last, and in a consistent manner, at their
|
|
conclusion?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I know.
|
|
|
|
And do you not know also that although they make use of the visible
|
|
forms and reason about them, they are thinking not of these, but of the
|
|
ideals which they resemble; not of the figures which they draw, but
|
|
of the absolute square and the absolute diameter, and so on--the forms
|
|
which they draw or make, and which have shadows and reflections in water
|
|
of their own, are converted by them into images, but they are really
|
|
seeking to behold the things themselves, which can only be seen with the
|
|
eye of the mind?
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And of this kind I spoke as the intelligible, although in the search
|
|
after it the soul is compelled to use hypotheses; not ascending to
|
|
a first principle, because she is unable to rise above the region of
|
|
hypothesis, but employing the objects of which the shadows below are
|
|
resemblances in their turn as images, they having in relation to the
|
|
shadows and reflections of them a greater distinctness, and therefore a
|
|
higher value.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, that you are speaking of the province of geometry
|
|
and the sister arts.
|
|
|
|
And when I speak of the other division of the intelligible, you will
|
|
understand me to speak of that other sort of knowledge which reason
|
|
herself attains by the power of dialectic, using the hypotheses not as
|
|
first principles, but only as hypotheses--that is to say, as steps and
|
|
points of departure into a world which is above hypotheses, in order
|
|
that she may soar beyond them to the first principle of the whole; and
|
|
clinging to this and then to that which depends on this, by successive
|
|
steps she descends again without the aid of any sensible object, from
|
|
ideas, through ideas, and in ideas she ends.
|
|
|
|
I understand you, he replied; not perfectly, for you seem to me to
|
|
be describing a task which is really tremendous; but, at any rate, I
|
|
understand you to say that knowledge and being, which the science of
|
|
dialectic contemplates, are clearer than the notions of the arts, as
|
|
they are termed, which proceed from hypotheses only: these are also
|
|
contemplated by the understanding, and not by the senses: yet, because
|
|
they start from hypotheses and do not ascend to a principle, those who
|
|
contemplate them appear to you not to exercise the higher reason
|
|
upon them, although when a first principle is added to them they are
|
|
cognizable by the higher reason. And the habit which is concerned
|
|
with geometry and the cognate sciences I suppose that you would term
|
|
understanding and not reason, as being intermediate between opinion and
|
|
reason.
|
|
|
|
You have quite conceived my meaning, I said; and now, corresponding to
|
|
these four divisions, let there be four faculties in the soul--reason
|
|
answering to the highest, understanding to the second, faith (or
|
|
conviction) to the third, and perception of shadows to the last--and let
|
|
there be a scale of them, and let us suppose that the several faculties
|
|
have clearness in the same degree that their objects have truth.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he replied, and give my assent, and accept your
|
|
arrangement.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK VII.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, let me show in a figure how far our nature is
|
|
enlightened or unenlightened:--Behold! human beings living in a
|
|
underground den, which has a mouth open towards the light and reaching
|
|
all along the den; here they have been from their childhood, and have
|
|
their legs and necks chained so that they cannot move, and can only
|
|
see before them, being prevented by the chains from turning round
|
|
their heads. Above and behind them a fire is blazing at a distance, and
|
|
between the fire and the prisoners there is a raised way; and you will
|
|
see, if you look, a low wall built along the way, like the screen which
|
|
marionette players have in front of them, over which they show the
|
|
puppets.
|
|
|
|
I see.
|
|
|
|
And do you see, I said, men passing along the wall carrying all sorts of
|
|
vessels, and statues and figures of animals made of wood and stone and
|
|
various materials, which appear over the wall? Some of them are talking,
|
|
others silent.
|
|
|
|
You have shown me a strange image, and they are strange prisoners.
|
|
|
|
Like ourselves, I replied; and they see only their own shadows, or the
|
|
shadows of one another, which the fire throws on the opposite wall of
|
|
the cave?
|
|
|
|
True, he said; how could they see anything but the shadows if they were
|
|
never allowed to move their heads?
|
|
|
|
And of the objects which are being carried in like manner they would
|
|
only see the shadows?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And if they were able to converse with one another, would they not
|
|
suppose that they were naming what was actually before them?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And suppose further that the prison had an echo which came from the
|
|
other side, would they not be sure to fancy when one of the passers-by
|
|
spoke that the voice which they heard came from the passing shadow?
|
|
|
|
No question, he replied.
|
|
|
|
To them, I said, the truth would be literally nothing but the shadows of
|
|
the images.
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
And now look again, and see what will naturally follow if the prisoners
|
|
are released and disabused of their error. At first, when any of them is
|
|
liberated and compelled suddenly to stand up and turn his neck round and
|
|
walk and look towards the light, he will suffer sharp pains; the glare
|
|
will distress him, and he will be unable to see the realities of which
|
|
in his former state he had seen the shadows; and then conceive some one
|
|
saying to him, that what he saw before was an illusion, but that now,
|
|
when he is approaching nearer to being and his eye is turned towards
|
|
more real existence, he has a clearer vision,--what will be his reply?
|
|
And you may further imagine that his instructor is pointing to the
|
|
objects as they pass and requiring him to name them,--will he not be
|
|
perplexed? Will he not fancy that the shadows which he formerly saw are
|
|
truer than the objects which are now shown to him?
|
|
|
|
Far truer.
|
|
|
|
And if he is compelled to look straight at the light, will he not have
|
|
a pain in his eyes which will make him turn away to take refuge in the
|
|
objects of vision which he can see, and which he will conceive to be in
|
|
reality clearer than the things which are now being shown to him?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And suppose once more, that he is reluctantly dragged up a steep and
|
|
rugged ascent, and held fast until he is forced into the presence of
|
|
the sun himself, is he not likely to be pained and irritated? When he
|
|
approaches the light his eyes will be dazzled, and he will not be able
|
|
to see anything at all of what are now called realities.
|
|
|
|
Not all in a moment, he said.
|
|
|
|
He will require to grow accustomed to the sight of the upper world.
|
|
And first he will see the shadows best, next the reflections of men and
|
|
other objects in the water, and then the objects themselves; then he
|
|
will gaze upon the light of the moon and the stars and the spangled
|
|
heaven; and he will see the sky and the stars by night better than the
|
|
sun or the light of the sun by day?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Last of all he will be able to see the sun, and not mere reflections of
|
|
him in the water, but he will see him in his own proper place, and not
|
|
in another; and he will contemplate him as he is.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
He will then proceed to argue that this is he who gives the season and
|
|
the years, and is the guardian of all that is in the visible world, and
|
|
in a certain way the cause of all things which he and his fellows have
|
|
been accustomed to behold?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said, he would first see the sun and then reason about him.
|
|
|
|
And when he remembered his old habitation, and the wisdom of the den
|
|
and his fellow-prisoners, do you not suppose that he would felicitate
|
|
himself on the change, and pity them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he would.
|
|
|
|
And if they were in the habit of conferring honours among themselves
|
|
on those who were quickest to observe the passing shadows and to remark
|
|
which of them went before, and which followed after, and which were
|
|
together; and who were therefore best able to draw conclusions as to the
|
|
future, do you think that he would care for such honours and glories, or
|
|
envy the possessors of them? Would he not say with Homer,
|
|
|
|
'Better to be the poor servant of a poor master,'
|
|
|
|
and to endure anything, rather than think as they do and live after
|
|
their manner?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I think that he would rather suffer anything than
|
|
entertain these false notions and live in this miserable manner.
|
|
|
|
Imagine once more, I said, such an one coming suddenly out of the sun
|
|
to be replaced in his old situation; would he not be certain to have his
|
|
eyes full of darkness?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said.
|
|
|
|
And if there were a contest, and he had to compete in measuring the
|
|
shadows with the prisoners who had never moved out of the den, while
|
|
his sight was still weak, and before his eyes had become steady (and the
|
|
time which would be needed to acquire this new habit of sight might be
|
|
very considerable), would he not be ridiculous? Men would say of him
|
|
that up he went and down he came without his eyes; and that it was
|
|
better not even to think of ascending; and if any one tried to loose
|
|
another and lead him up to the light, let them only catch the offender,
|
|
and they would put him to death.
|
|
|
|
No question, he said.
|
|
|
|
This entire allegory, I said, you may now append, dear Glaucon, to the
|
|
previous argument; the prison-house is the world of sight, the light of
|
|
the fire is the sun, and you will not misapprehend me if you interpret
|
|
the journey upwards to be the ascent of the soul into the intellectual
|
|
world according to my poor belief, which, at your desire, I have
|
|
expressed--whether rightly or wrongly God knows. But, whether true or
|
|
false, my opinion is that in the world of knowledge the idea of good
|
|
appears last of all, and is seen only with an effort; and, when seen,
|
|
is also inferred to be the universal author of all things beautiful and
|
|
right, parent of light and of the lord of light in this visible world,
|
|
and the immediate source of reason and truth in the intellectual; and
|
|
that this is the power upon which he who would act rationally either in
|
|
public or private life must have his eye fixed.
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said, as far as I am able to understand you.
|
|
|
|
Moreover, I said, you must not wonder that those who attain to this
|
|
beatific vision are unwilling to descend to human affairs; for their
|
|
souls are ever hastening into the upper world where they desire to
|
|
dwell; which desire of theirs is very natural, if our allegory may be
|
|
trusted.
|
|
|
|
Yes, very natural.
|
|
|
|
And is there anything surprising in one who passes from divine
|
|
contemplations to the evil state of man, misbehaving himself in a
|
|
ridiculous manner; if, while his eyes are blinking and before he has
|
|
become accustomed to the surrounding darkness, he is compelled to fight
|
|
in courts of law, or in other places, about the images or the shadows of
|
|
images of justice, and is endeavouring to meet the conceptions of those
|
|
who have never yet seen absolute justice?
|
|
|
|
Anything but surprising, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Any one who has common sense will remember that the bewilderments of the
|
|
eyes are of two kinds, and arise from two causes, either from coming out
|
|
of the light or from going into the light, which is true of the mind's
|
|
eye, quite as much as of the bodily eye; and he who remembers this when
|
|
he sees any one whose vision is perplexed and weak, will not be too
|
|
ready to laugh; he will first ask whether that soul of man has come out
|
|
of the brighter life, and is unable to see because unaccustomed to the
|
|
dark, or having turned from darkness to the day is dazzled by excess
|
|
of light. And he will count the one happy in his condition and state of
|
|
being, and he will pity the other; or, if he have a mind to laugh at the
|
|
soul which comes from below into the light, there will be more reason
|
|
in this than in the laugh which greets him who returns from above out of
|
|
the light into the den.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a very just distinction.
|
|
|
|
But then, if I am right, certain professors of education must be wrong
|
|
when they say that they can put a knowledge into the soul which was not
|
|
there before, like sight into blind eyes.
|
|
|
|
They undoubtedly say this, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Whereas, our argument shows that the power and capacity of learning
|
|
exists in the soul already; and that just as the eye was unable to turn
|
|
from darkness to light without the whole body, so too the instrument of
|
|
knowledge can only by the movement of the whole soul be turned from the
|
|
world of becoming into that of being, and learn by degrees to endure
|
|
the sight of being, and of the brightest and best of being, or in other
|
|
words, of the good.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And must there not be some art which will effect conversion in the
|
|
easiest and quickest manner; not implanting the faculty of sight, for
|
|
that exists already, but has been turned in the wrong direction, and is
|
|
looking away from the truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, such an art may be presumed.
|
|
|
|
And whereas the other so-called virtues of the soul seem to be akin to
|
|
bodily qualities, for even when they are not originally innate they can
|
|
be implanted later by habit and exercise, the virtue of wisdom more than
|
|
anything else contains a divine element which always remains, and by
|
|
this conversion is rendered useful and profitable; or, on the other
|
|
hand, hurtful and useless. Did you never observe the narrow intelligence
|
|
flashing from the keen eye of a clever rogue--how eager he is, how
|
|
clearly his paltry soul sees the way to his end; he is the reverse of
|
|
blind, but his keen eye-sight is forced into the service of evil, and he
|
|
is mischievous in proportion to his cleverness?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But what if there had been a circumcision of such natures in the days
|
|
of their youth; and they had been severed from those sensual pleasures,
|
|
such as eating and drinking, which, like leaden weights, were attached
|
|
to them at their birth, and which drag them down and turn the vision
|
|
of their souls upon the things that are below--if, I say, they had been
|
|
released from these impediments and turned in the opposite direction,
|
|
the very same faculty in them would have seen the truth as keenly as
|
|
they see what their eyes are turned to now.
|
|
|
|
Very likely.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and there is another thing which is likely, or rather a
|
|
necessary inference from what has preceded, that neither the uneducated
|
|
and uninformed of the truth, nor yet those who never make an end of
|
|
their education, will be able ministers of State; not the former,
|
|
because they have no single aim of duty which is the rule of all their
|
|
actions, private as well as public; nor the latter, because they will
|
|
not act at all except upon compulsion, fancying that they are already
|
|
dwelling apart in the islands of the blest.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, the business of us who are the founders of the State
|
|
will be to compel the best minds to attain that knowledge which we have
|
|
already shown to be the greatest of all--they must continue to ascend
|
|
until they arrive at the good; but when they have ascended and seen
|
|
enough we must not allow them to do as they do now.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean that they remain in the upper world: but this must not be
|
|
allowed; they must be made to descend again among the prisoners in the
|
|
den, and partake of their labours and honours, whether they are worth
|
|
having or not.
|
|
|
|
But is not this unjust? he said; ought we to give them a worse life,
|
|
when they might have a better?
|
|
|
|
You have again forgotten, my friend, I said, the intention of the
|
|
legislator, who did not aim at making any one class in the State happy
|
|
above the rest; the happiness was to be in the whole State, and he
|
|
held the citizens together by persuasion and necessity, making them
|
|
benefactors of the State, and therefore benefactors of one another;
|
|
to this end he created them, not to please themselves, but to be his
|
|
instruments in binding up the State.
|
|
|
|
True, he said, I had forgotten.
|
|
|
|
Observe, Glaucon, that there will be no injustice in compelling our
|
|
philosophers to have a care and providence of others; we shall explain
|
|
to them that in other States, men of their class are not obliged to
|
|
share in the toils of politics: and this is reasonable, for they grow up
|
|
at their own sweet will, and the government would rather not have them.
|
|
Being self-taught, they cannot be expected to show any gratitude for a
|
|
culture which they have never received. But we have brought you into
|
|
the world to be rulers of the hive, kings of yourselves and of the other
|
|
citizens, and have educated you far better and more perfectly than they
|
|
have been educated, and you are better able to share in the double duty.
|
|
Wherefore each of you, when his turn comes, must go down to the general
|
|
underground abode, and get the habit of seeing in the dark. When you
|
|
have acquired the habit, you will see ten thousand times better than the
|
|
inhabitants of the den, and you will know what the several images are,
|
|
and what they represent, because you have seen the beautiful and just
|
|
and good in their truth. And thus our State, which is also yours, will
|
|
be a reality, and not a dream only, and will be administered in a spirit
|
|
unlike that of other States, in which men fight with one another about
|
|
shadows only and are distracted in the struggle for power, which in
|
|
their eyes is a great good. Whereas the truth is that the State in which
|
|
the rulers are most reluctant to govern is always the best and most
|
|
quietly governed, and the State in which they are most eager, the worst.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And will our pupils, when they hear this, refuse to take their turn at
|
|
the toils of State, when they are allowed to spend the greater part of
|
|
their time with one another in the heavenly light?
|
|
|
|
Impossible, he answered; for they are just men, and the commands which
|
|
we impose upon them are just; there can be no doubt that every one of
|
|
them will take office as a stern necessity, and not after the fashion of
|
|
our present rulers of State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my friend, I said; and there lies the point. You must contrive for
|
|
your future rulers another and a better life than that of a ruler, and
|
|
then you may have a well-ordered State; for only in the State which
|
|
offers this, will they rule who are truly rich, not in silver and gold,
|
|
but in virtue and wisdom, which are the true blessings of life. Whereas
|
|
if they go to the administration of public affairs, poor and hungering
|
|
after their own private advantage, thinking that hence they are to
|
|
snatch the chief good, order there can never be; for they will be
|
|
fighting about office, and the civil and domestic broils which thus
|
|
arise will be the ruin of the rulers themselves and of the whole State.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And the only life which looks down upon the life of political ambition
|
|
is that of true philosophy. Do you know of any other?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, I do not, he said.
|
|
|
|
And those who govern ought not to be lovers of the task? For, if they
|
|
are, there will be rival lovers, and they will fight.
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
Who then are those whom we shall compel to be guardians? Surely they
|
|
will be the men who are wisest about affairs of State, and by whom the
|
|
State is best administered, and who at the same time have other honours
|
|
and another and a better life than that of politics?
|
|
|
|
They are the men, and I will choose them, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And now shall we consider in what way such guardians will be produced,
|
|
and how they are to be brought from darkness to light,--as some are said
|
|
to have ascended from the world below to the gods?
|
|
|
|
By all means, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The process, I said, is not the turning over of an oyster-shell (In
|
|
allusion to a game in which two parties fled or pursued according as an
|
|
oyster-shell which was thrown into the air fell with the dark or light
|
|
side uppermost.), but the turning round of a soul passing from a day
|
|
which is little better than night to the true day of being, that is, the
|
|
ascent from below, which we affirm to be true philosophy?
|
|
|
|
Quite so.
|
|
|
|
And should we not enquire what sort of knowledge has the power of
|
|
effecting such a change?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
What sort of knowledge is there which would draw the soul from becoming
|
|
to being? And another consideration has just occurred to me: You will
|
|
remember that our young men are to be warrior athletes?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was said.
|
|
|
|
Then this new kind of knowledge must have an additional quality?
|
|
|
|
What quality?
|
|
|
|
Usefulness in war.
|
|
|
|
Yes, if possible.
|
|
|
|
There were two parts in our former scheme of education, were there not?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
There was gymnastic which presided over the growth and decay of the
|
|
body, and may therefore be regarded as having to do with generation and
|
|
corruption?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then that is not the knowledge which we are seeking to discover?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
But what do you say of music, which also entered to a certain extent
|
|
into our former scheme?
|
|
|
|
Music, he said, as you will remember, was the counterpart of gymnastic,
|
|
and trained the guardians by the influences of habit, by harmony making
|
|
them harmonious, by rhythm rhythmical, but not giving them science; and
|
|
the words, whether fabulous or possibly true, had kindred elements of
|
|
rhythm and harmony in them. But in music there was nothing which tended
|
|
to that good which you are now seeking.
|
|
|
|
You are most accurate, I said, in your recollection; in music there
|
|
certainly was nothing of the kind. But what branch of knowledge is
|
|
there, my dear Glaucon, which is of the desired nature; since all the
|
|
useful arts were reckoned mean by us?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly; and yet if music and gymnastic are excluded, and the arts
|
|
are also excluded, what remains?
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, there may be nothing left of our special subjects; and
|
|
then we shall have to take something which is not special, but of
|
|
universal application.
|
|
|
|
What may that be?
|
|
|
|
A something which all arts and sciences and intelligences use in common,
|
|
and which every one first has to learn among the elements of education.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The little matter of distinguishing one, two, and three--in a word,
|
|
number and calculation:--do not all arts and sciences necessarily
|
|
partake of them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then the art of war partakes of them?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Then Palamedes, whenever he appears in tragedy, proves Agamemnon
|
|
ridiculously unfit to be a general. Did you never remark how he declares
|
|
that he had invented number, and had numbered the ships and set in array
|
|
the ranks of the army at Troy; which implies that they had never been
|
|
numbered before, and Agamemnon must be supposed literally to have been
|
|
incapable of counting his own feet--how could he if he was ignorant of
|
|
number? And if that is true, what sort of general must he have been?
|
|
|
|
I should say a very strange one, if this was as you say.
|
|
|
|
Can we deny that a warrior should have a knowledge of arithmetic?
|
|
|
|
Certainly he should, if he is to have the smallest understanding of
|
|
military tactics, or indeed, I should rather say, if he is to be a man
|
|
at all.
|
|
|
|
I should like to know whether you have the same notion which I have of
|
|
this study?
|
|
|
|
What is your notion?
|
|
|
|
It appears to me to be a study of the kind which we are seeking, and
|
|
which leads naturally to reflection, but never to have been rightly
|
|
used; for the true use of it is simply to draw the soul towards being.
|
|
|
|
Will you explain your meaning? he said.
|
|
|
|
I will try, I said; and I wish you would share the enquiry with me,
|
|
and say 'yes' or 'no' when I attempt to distinguish in my own mind what
|
|
branches of knowledge have this attracting power, in order that we may
|
|
have clearer proof that arithmetic is, as I suspect, one of them.
|
|
|
|
Explain, he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean to say that objects of sense are of two kinds; some of them do
|
|
not invite thought because the sense is an adequate judge of them; while
|
|
in the case of other objects sense is so untrustworthy that further
|
|
enquiry is imperatively demanded.
|
|
|
|
You are clearly referring, he said, to the manner in which the senses
|
|
are imposed upon by distance, and by painting in light and shade.
|
|
|
|
No, I said, that is not at all my meaning.
|
|
|
|
Then what is your meaning?
|
|
|
|
When speaking of uninviting objects, I mean those which do not pass from
|
|
one sensation to the opposite; inviting objects are those which do; in
|
|
this latter case the sense coming upon the object, whether at a distance
|
|
or near, gives no more vivid idea of anything in particular than of its
|
|
opposite. An illustration will make my meaning clearer:--here are three
|
|
fingers--a little finger, a second finger, and a middle finger.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
You may suppose that they are seen quite close: And here comes the
|
|
point.
|
|
|
|
What is it?
|
|
|
|
Each of them equally appears a finger, whether seen in the middle or
|
|
at the extremity, whether white or black, or thick or thin--it makes no
|
|
difference; a finger is a finger all the same. In these cases a man is
|
|
not compelled to ask of thought the question what is a finger? for the
|
|
sight never intimates to the mind that a finger is other than a finger.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, I said, as we might expect, there is nothing here which
|
|
invites or excites intelligence.
|
|
|
|
There is not, he said.
|
|
|
|
But is this equally true of the greatness and smallness of the fingers?
|
|
Can sight adequately perceive them? and is no difference made by the
|
|
circumstance that one of the fingers is in the middle and another at
|
|
the extremity? And in like manner does the touch adequately perceive the
|
|
qualities of thickness or thinness, of softness or hardness? And so of
|
|
the other senses; do they give perfect intimations of such matters? Is
|
|
not their mode of operation on this wise--the sense which is concerned
|
|
with the quality of hardness is necessarily concerned also with the
|
|
quality of softness, and only intimates to the soul that the same thing
|
|
is felt to be both hard and soft?
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he said.
|
|
|
|
And must not the soul be perplexed at this intimation which the sense
|
|
gives of a hard which is also soft? What, again, is the meaning of
|
|
light and heavy, if that which is light is also heavy, and that which is
|
|
heavy, light?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, these intimations which the soul receives are very curious
|
|
and require to be explained.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and in these perplexities the soul naturally summons to her
|
|
aid calculation and intelligence, that she may see whether the several
|
|
objects announced to her are one or two.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And if they turn out to be two, is not each of them one and different?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if each is one, and both are two, she will conceive the two as in
|
|
a state of division, for if there were undivided they could only be
|
|
conceived of as one?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The eye certainly did see both small and great, but only in a confused
|
|
manner; they were not distinguished.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the thinking mind, intending to light up the chaos, was
|
|
compelled to reverse the process, and look at small and great as
|
|
separate and not confused.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Was not this the beginning of the enquiry 'What is great?' and 'What is
|
|
small?'
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
And thus arose the distinction of the visible and the intelligible.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
This was what I meant when I spoke of impressions which invited the
|
|
intellect, or the reverse--those which are simultaneous with opposite
|
|
impressions, invite thought; those which are not simultaneous do not.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, and agree with you.
|
|
|
|
And to which class do unity and number belong?
|
|
|
|
I do not know, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Think a little and you will see that what has preceded will supply the
|
|
answer; for if simple unity could be adequately perceived by the sight
|
|
or by any other sense, then, as we were saying in the case of the
|
|
finger, there would be nothing to attract towards being; but when there
|
|
is some contradiction always present, and one is the reverse of one and
|
|
involves the conception of plurality, then thought begins to be aroused
|
|
within us, and the soul perplexed and wanting to arrive at a decision
|
|
asks 'What is absolute unity?' This is the way in which the study of the
|
|
one has a power of drawing and converting the mind to the contemplation
|
|
of true being.
|
|
|
|
And surely, he said, this occurs notably in the case of one; for we see
|
|
the same thing to be both one and infinite in multitude?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and this being true of one must be equally true of all
|
|
number?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And all arithmetic and calculation have to do with number?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And they appear to lead the mind towards truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, in a very remarkable manner.
|
|
|
|
Then this is knowledge of the kind for which we are seeking, having a
|
|
double use, military and philosophical; for the man of war must learn
|
|
the art of number or he will not know how to array his troops, and the
|
|
philosopher also, because he has to rise out of the sea of change and
|
|
lay hold of true being, and therefore he must be an arithmetician.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And our guardian is both warrior and philosopher?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then this is a kind of knowledge which legislation may fitly prescribe;
|
|
and we must endeavour to persuade those who are to be the principal men
|
|
of our State to go and learn arithmetic, not as amateurs, but they must
|
|
carry on the study until they see the nature of numbers with the mind
|
|
only; nor again, like merchants or retail-traders, with a view to buying
|
|
or selling, but for the sake of their military use, and of the soul
|
|
herself; and because this will be the easiest way for her to pass from
|
|
becoming to truth and being.
|
|
|
|
That is excellent, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and now having spoken of it, I must add how charming the
|
|
science is! and in how many ways it conduces to our desired end, if
|
|
pursued in the spirit of a philosopher, and not of a shopkeeper!
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean, as I was saying, that arithmetic has a very great and elevating
|
|
effect, compelling the soul to reason about abstract number, and
|
|
rebelling against the introduction of visible or tangible objects into
|
|
the argument. You know how steadily the masters of the art repel and
|
|
ridicule any one who attempts to divide absolute unity when he is
|
|
calculating, and if you divide, they multiply (Meaning either (1)
|
|
that they integrate the number because they deny the possibility of
|
|
fractions; or (2) that division is regarded by them as a process of
|
|
multiplication, for the fractions of one continue to be units.), taking
|
|
care that one shall continue one and not become lost in fractions.
|
|
|
|
That is very true.
|
|
|
|
Now, suppose a person were to say to them: O my friends, what are these
|
|
wonderful numbers about which you are reasoning, in which, as you say,
|
|
there is a unity such as you demand, and each unit is equal, invariable,
|
|
indivisible,--what would they answer?
|
|
|
|
They would answer, as I should conceive, that they were speaking of
|
|
those numbers which can only be realized in thought.
|
|
|
|
Then you see that this knowledge may be truly called necessary,
|
|
necessitating as it clearly does the use of the pure intelligence in the
|
|
attainment of pure truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is a marked characteristic of it.
|
|
|
|
And have you further observed, that those who have a natural talent for
|
|
calculation are generally quick at every other kind of knowledge; and
|
|
even the dull, if they have had an arithmetical training, although they
|
|
may derive no other advantage from it, always become much quicker than
|
|
they would otherwise have been.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And indeed, you will not easily find a more difficult study, and not
|
|
many as difficult.
|
|
|
|
You will not.
|
|
|
|
And, for all these reasons, arithmetic is a kind of knowledge in which
|
|
the best natures should be trained, and which must not be given up.
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Let this then be made one of our subjects of education. And next, shall
|
|
we enquire whether the kindred science also concerns us?
|
|
|
|
You mean geometry?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said, we are concerned with that part of geometry which
|
|
relates to war; for in pitching a camp, or taking up a position,
|
|
or closing or extending the lines of an army, or any other military
|
|
manoeuvre, whether in actual battle or on a march, it will make all the
|
|
difference whether a general is or is not a geometrician.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, but for that purpose a very little of either geometry or
|
|
calculation will be enough; the question relates rather to the greater
|
|
and more advanced part of geometry--whether that tends in any degree
|
|
to make more easy the vision of the idea of good; and thither, as I was
|
|
saying, all things tend which compel the soul to turn her gaze towards
|
|
that place, where is the full perfection of being, which she ought, by
|
|
all means, to behold.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then if geometry compels us to view being, it concerns us; if becoming
|
|
only, it does not concern us?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is what we assert.
|
|
|
|
Yet anybody who has the least acquaintance with geometry will not deny
|
|
that such a conception of the science is in flat contradiction to the
|
|
ordinary language of geometricians.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
They have in view practice only, and are always speaking, in a narrow
|
|
and ridiculous manner, of squaring and extending and applying and the
|
|
like--they confuse the necessities of geometry with those of daily life;
|
|
whereas knowledge is the real object of the whole science.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then must not a further admission be made?
|
|
|
|
What admission?
|
|
|
|
That the knowledge at which geometry aims is knowledge of the eternal,
|
|
and not of aught perishing and transient.
|
|
|
|
That, he replied, may be readily allowed, and is true.
|
|
|
|
Then, my noble friend, geometry will draw the soul towards truth,
|
|
and create the spirit of philosophy, and raise up that which is now
|
|
unhappily allowed to fall down.
|
|
|
|
Nothing will be more likely to have such an effect.
|
|
|
|
Then nothing should be more sternly laid down than that the inhabitants
|
|
of your fair city should by all means learn geometry. Moreover the
|
|
science has indirect effects, which are not small.
|
|
|
|
Of what kind? he said.
|
|
|
|
There are the military advantages of which you spoke, I said; and in all
|
|
departments of knowledge, as experience proves, any one who has studied
|
|
geometry is infinitely quicker of apprehension than one who has not.
|
|
|
|
Yes indeed, he said, there is an infinite difference between them.
|
|
|
|
Then shall we propose this as a second branch of knowledge which our
|
|
youth will study?
|
|
|
|
Let us do so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And suppose we make astronomy the third--what do you say?
|
|
|
|
I am strongly inclined to it, he said; the observation of the seasons
|
|
and of months and years is as essential to the general as it is to the
|
|
farmer or sailor.
|
|
|
|
I am amused, I said, at your fear of the world, which makes you guard
|
|
against the appearance of insisting upon useless studies; and I quite
|
|
admit the difficulty of believing that in every man there is an eye
|
|
of the soul which, when by other pursuits lost and dimmed, is by these
|
|
purified and re-illumined; and is more precious far than ten thousand
|
|
bodily eyes, for by it alone is truth seen. Now there are two classes of
|
|
persons: one class of those who will agree with you and will take
|
|
your words as a revelation; another class to whom they will be utterly
|
|
unmeaning, and who will naturally deem them to be idle tales, for they
|
|
see no sort of profit which is to be obtained from them. And therefore
|
|
you had better decide at once with which of the two you are proposing to
|
|
argue. You will very likely say with neither, and that your chief aim in
|
|
carrying on the argument is your own improvement; at the same time you
|
|
do not grudge to others any benefit which they may receive.
|
|
|
|
I think that I should prefer to carry on the argument mainly on my own
|
|
behalf.
|
|
|
|
Then take a step backward, for we have gone wrong in the order of the
|
|
sciences.
|
|
|
|
What was the mistake? he said.
|
|
|
|
After plane geometry, I said, we proceeded at once to solids in
|
|
revolution, instead of taking solids in themselves; whereas after the
|
|
second dimension the third, which is concerned with cubes and dimensions
|
|
of depth, ought to have followed.
|
|
|
|
That is true, Socrates; but so little seems to be known as yet about
|
|
these subjects.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, I said, and for two reasons:--in the first place, no
|
|
government patronises them; this leads to a want of energy in the
|
|
pursuit of them, and they are difficult; in the second place, students
|
|
cannot learn them unless they have a director. But then a director
|
|
can hardly be found, and even if he could, as matters now stand,
|
|
the students, who are very conceited, would not attend to him. That,
|
|
however, would be otherwise if the whole State became the director of
|
|
these studies and gave honour to them; then disciples would want to
|
|
come, and there would be continuous and earnest search, and discoveries
|
|
would be made; since even now, disregarded as they are by the world, and
|
|
maimed of their fair proportions, and although none of their votaries
|
|
can tell the use of them, still these studies force their way by their
|
|
natural charm, and very likely, if they had the help of the State, they
|
|
would some day emerge into light.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there is a remarkable charm in them. But I do not clearly
|
|
understand the change in the order. First you began with a geometry of
|
|
plane surfaces?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said.
|
|
|
|
And you placed astronomy next, and then you made a step backward?
|
|
|
|
Yes, and I have delayed you by my hurry; the ludicrous state of solid
|
|
geometry, which, in natural order, should have followed, made me pass
|
|
over this branch and go on to astronomy, or motion of solids.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then assuming that the science now omitted would come into existence
|
|
if encouraged by the State, let us go on to astronomy, which will be
|
|
fourth.
|
|
|
|
The right order, he replied. And now, Socrates, as you rebuked the
|
|
vulgar manner in which I praised astronomy before, my praise shall
|
|
be given in your own spirit. For every one, as I think, must see that
|
|
astronomy compels the soul to look upwards and leads us from this world
|
|
to another.
|
|
|
|
Every one but myself, I said; to every one else this may be clear, but
|
|
not to me.
|
|
|
|
And what then would you say?
|
|
|
|
I should rather say that those who elevate astronomy into philosophy
|
|
appear to me to make us look downwards and not upwards.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he asked.
|
|
|
|
You, I replied, have in your mind a truly sublime conception of our
|
|
knowledge of the things above. And I dare say that if a person were to
|
|
throw his head back and study the fretted ceiling, you would still think
|
|
that his mind was the percipient, and not his eyes. And you are very
|
|
likely right, and I may be a simpleton: but, in my opinion, that
|
|
knowledge only which is of being and of the unseen can make the soul
|
|
look upwards, and whether a man gapes at the heavens or blinks on the
|
|
ground, seeking to learn some particular of sense, I would deny that he
|
|
can learn, for nothing of that sort is matter of science; his soul is
|
|
looking downwards, not upwards, whether his way to knowledge is by water
|
|
or by land, whether he floats, or only lies on his back.
|
|
|
|
I acknowledge, he said, the justice of your rebuke. Still, I should like
|
|
to ascertain how astronomy can be learned in any manner more conducive
|
|
to that knowledge of which we are speaking?
|
|
|
|
I will tell you, I said: The starry heaven which we behold is wrought
|
|
upon a visible ground, and therefore, although the fairest and most
|
|
perfect of visible things, must necessarily be deemed inferior far to
|
|
the true motions of absolute swiftness and absolute slowness, which are
|
|
relative to each other, and carry with them that which is contained in
|
|
them, in the true number and in every true figure. Now, these are to be
|
|
apprehended by reason and intelligence, but not by sight.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The spangled heavens should be used as a pattern and with a view to that
|
|
higher knowledge; their beauty is like the beauty of figures or pictures
|
|
excellently wrought by the hand of Daedalus, or some other great artist,
|
|
which we may chance to behold; any geometrician who saw them would
|
|
appreciate the exquisiteness of their workmanship, but he would never
|
|
dream of thinking that in them he could find the true equal or the true
|
|
double, or the truth of any other proportion.
|
|
|
|
No, he replied, such an idea would be ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
And will not a true astronomer have the same feeling when he looks at
|
|
the movements of the stars? Will he not think that heaven and the things
|
|
in heaven are framed by the Creator of them in the most perfect manner?
|
|
But he will never imagine that the proportions of night and day, or of
|
|
both to the month, or of the month to the year, or of the stars to these
|
|
and to one another, and any other things that are material and visible
|
|
can also be eternal and subject to no deviation--that would be absurd;
|
|
and it is equally absurd to take so much pains in investigating their
|
|
exact truth.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree, though I never thought of this before.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, in astronomy, as in geometry, we should employ problems,
|
|
and let the heavens alone if we would approach the subject in the right
|
|
way and so make the natural gift of reason to be of any real use.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a work infinitely beyond our present astronomers.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and there are many other things which must also have a
|
|
similar extension given to them, if our legislation is to be of any
|
|
value. But can you tell me of any other suitable study?
|
|
|
|
No, he said, not without thinking.
|
|
|
|
Motion, I said, has many forms, and not one only; two of them are
|
|
obvious enough even to wits no better than ours; and there are others,
|
|
as I imagine, which may be left to wiser persons.
|
|
|
|
But where are the two?
|
|
|
|
There is a second, I said, which is the counterpart of the one already
|
|
named.
|
|
|
|
And what may that be?
|
|
|
|
The second, I said, would seem relatively to the ears to be what the
|
|
first is to the eyes; for I conceive that as the eyes are designed to
|
|
look up at the stars, so are the ears to hear harmonious motions; and
|
|
these are sister sciences--as the Pythagoreans say, and we, Glaucon,
|
|
agree with them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But this, I said, is a laborious study, and therefore we had better go
|
|
and learn of them; and they will tell us whether there are any other
|
|
applications of these sciences. At the same time, we must not lose sight
|
|
of our own higher object.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
There is a perfection which all knowledge ought to reach, and which our
|
|
pupils ought also to attain, and not to fall short of, as I was saying
|
|
that they did in astronomy. For in the science of harmony, as you
|
|
probably know, the same thing happens. The teachers of harmony compare
|
|
the sounds and consonances which are heard only, and their labour, like
|
|
that of the astronomers, is in vain.
|
|
|
|
Yes, by heaven! he said; and 'tis as good as a play to hear them talking
|
|
about their condensed notes, as they call them; they put their ears
|
|
close alongside of the strings like persons catching a sound from their
|
|
neighbour's wall--one set of them declaring that they distinguish an
|
|
intermediate note and have found the least interval which should be
|
|
the unit of measurement; the others insisting that the two sounds have
|
|
passed into the same--either party setting their ears before their
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
You mean, I said, those gentlemen who tease and torture the strings and
|
|
rack them on the pegs of the instrument: I might carry on the metaphor
|
|
and speak after their manner of the blows which the plectrum gives,
|
|
and make accusations against the strings, both of backwardness and
|
|
forwardness to sound; but this would be tedious, and therefore I will
|
|
only say that these are not the men, and that I am referring to the
|
|
Pythagoreans, of whom I was just now proposing to enquire about harmony.
|
|
For they too are in error, like the astronomers; they investigate the
|
|
numbers of the harmonies which are heard, but they never attain to
|
|
problems--that is to say, they never reach the natural harmonies of
|
|
number, or reflect why some numbers are harmonious and others not.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a thing of more than mortal knowledge.
|
|
|
|
A thing, I replied, which I would rather call useful; that is, if sought
|
|
after with a view to the beautiful and good; but if pursued in any other
|
|
spirit, useless.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Now, when all these studies reach the point of inter-communion and
|
|
connection with one another, and come to be considered in their mutual
|
|
affinities, then, I think, but not till then, will the pursuit of them
|
|
have a value for our objects; otherwise there is no profit in them.
|
|
|
|
I suspect so; but you are speaking, Socrates, of a vast work.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? I said; the prelude or what? Do you not know that all
|
|
this is but the prelude to the actual strain which we have to learn? For
|
|
you surely would not regard the skilled mathematician as a dialectician?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not, he said; I have hardly ever known a mathematician who was
|
|
capable of reasoning.
|
|
|
|
But do you imagine that men who are unable to give and take a reason
|
|
will have the knowledge which we require of them?
|
|
|
|
Neither can this be supposed.
|
|
|
|
And so, Glaucon, I said, we have at last arrived at the hymn of
|
|
dialectic. This is that strain which is of the intellect only, but which
|
|
the faculty of sight will nevertheless be found to imitate; for sight,
|
|
as you may remember, was imagined by us after a while to behold the
|
|
real animals and stars, and last of all the sun himself. And so with
|
|
dialectic; when a person starts on the discovery of the absolute by
|
|
the light of reason only, and without any assistance of sense, and
|
|
perseveres until by pure intelligence he arrives at the perception
|
|
of the absolute good, he at last finds himself at the end of the
|
|
intellectual world, as in the case of sight at the end of the visible.
|
|
|
|
Exactly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then this is the progress which you call dialectic?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But the release of the prisoners from chains, and their translation
|
|
from the shadows to the images and to the light, and the ascent from the
|
|
underground den to the sun, while in his presence they are vainly trying
|
|
to look on animals and plants and the light of the sun, but are able to
|
|
perceive even with their weak eyes the images in the water (which are
|
|
divine), and are the shadows of true existence (not shadows of images
|
|
cast by a light of fire, which compared with the sun is only an
|
|
image)--this power of elevating the highest principle in the soul to
|
|
the contemplation of that which is best in existence, with which we may
|
|
compare the raising of that faculty which is the very light of the body
|
|
to the sight of that which is brightest in the material and visible
|
|
world--this power is given, as I was saying, by all that study and
|
|
pursuit of the arts which has been described.
|
|
|
|
I agree in what you are saying, he replied, which may be hard to
|
|
believe, yet, from another point of view, is harder still to deny. This,
|
|
however, is not a theme to be treated of in passing only, but will have
|
|
to be discussed again and again. And so, whether our conclusion be true
|
|
or false, let us assume all this, and proceed at once from the prelude
|
|
or preamble to the chief strain (A play upon the Greek word, which means
|
|
both 'law' and 'strain.'), and describe that in like manner. Say, then,
|
|
what is the nature and what are the divisions of dialectic, and what
|
|
are the paths which lead thither; for these paths will also lead to our
|
|
final rest.
|
|
|
|
Dear Glaucon, I said, you will not be able to follow me here, though
|
|
I would do my best, and you should behold not an image only but the
|
|
absolute truth, according to my notion. Whether what I told you would
|
|
or would not have been a reality I cannot venture to say; but you would
|
|
have seen something like reality; of that I am confident.
|
|
|
|
Doubtless, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But I must also remind you, that the power of dialectic alone can reveal
|
|
this, and only to one who is a disciple of the previous sciences.
|
|
|
|
Of that assertion you may be as confident as of the last.
|
|
|
|
And assuredly no one will argue that there is any other method
|
|
of comprehending by any regular process all true existence or of
|
|
ascertaining what each thing is in its own nature; for the arts in
|
|
general are concerned with the desires or opinions of men, or are
|
|
cultivated with a view to production and construction, or for the
|
|
preservation of such productions and constructions; and as to the
|
|
mathematical sciences which, as we were saying, have some apprehension
|
|
of true being--geometry and the like--they only dream about being,
|
|
but never can they behold the waking reality so long as they leave the
|
|
hypotheses which they use unexamined, and are unable to give an account
|
|
of them. For when a man knows not his own first principle, and when the
|
|
conclusion and intermediate steps are also constructed out of he knows
|
|
not what, how can he imagine that such a fabric of convention can ever
|
|
become science?
|
|
|
|
Impossible, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then dialectic, and dialectic alone, goes directly to the first
|
|
principle and is the only science which does away with hypotheses in
|
|
order to make her ground secure; the eye of the soul, which is literally
|
|
buried in an outlandish slough, is by her gentle aid lifted upwards;
|
|
and she uses as handmaids and helpers in the work of conversion, the
|
|
sciences which we have been discussing. Custom terms them sciences,
|
|
but they ought to have some other name, implying greater clearness
|
|
than opinion and less clearness than science: and this, in our previous
|
|
sketch, was called understanding. But why should we dispute about names
|
|
when we have realities of such importance to consider?
|
|
|
|
Why indeed, he said, when any name will do which expresses the thought
|
|
of the mind with clearness?
|
|
|
|
At any rate, we are satisfied, as before, to have four divisions;
|
|
two for intellect and two for opinion, and to call the first division
|
|
science, the second understanding, the third belief, and the fourth
|
|
perception of shadows, opinion being concerned with becoming, and
|
|
intellect with being; and so to make a proportion:--
|
|
|
|
As being is to becoming, so is pure intellect to opinion. And as
|
|
intellect is to opinion, so is science to belief, and understanding to
|
|
the perception of shadows.
|
|
|
|
But let us defer the further correlation and subdivision of the subjects
|
|
of opinion and of intellect, for it will be a long enquiry, many times
|
|
longer than this has been.
|
|
|
|
As far as I understand, he said, I agree.
|
|
|
|
And do you also agree, I said, in describing the dialectician as one who
|
|
attains a conception of the essence of each thing? And he who does not
|
|
possess and is therefore unable to impart this conception, in
|
|
whatever degree he fails, may in that degree also be said to fail in
|
|
intelligence? Will you admit so much?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; how can I deny it?
|
|
|
|
And you would say the same of the conception of the good? Until the
|
|
person is able to abstract and define rationally the idea of good,
|
|
and unless he can run the gauntlet of all objections, and is ready to
|
|
disprove them, not by appeals to opinion, but to absolute truth, never
|
|
faltering at any step of the argument--unless he can do all this, you
|
|
would say that he knows neither the idea of good nor any other good; he
|
|
apprehends only a shadow, if anything at all, which is given by opinion
|
|
and not by science;--dreaming and slumbering in this life, before he
|
|
is well awake here, he arrives at the world below, and has his final
|
|
quietus.
|
|
|
|
In all that I should most certainly agree with you.
|
|
|
|
And surely you would not have the children of your ideal State, whom you
|
|
are nurturing and educating--if the ideal ever becomes a reality--you
|
|
would not allow the future rulers to be like posts (Literally 'lines,'
|
|
probably the starting-point of a race-course.), having no reason in
|
|
them, and yet to be set in authority over the highest matters?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then you will make a law that they shall have such an education as
|
|
will enable them to attain the greatest skill in asking and answering
|
|
questions?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, you and I together will make it.
|
|
|
|
Dialectic, then, as you will agree, is the coping-stone of the sciences,
|
|
and is set over them; no other science can be placed higher--the nature
|
|
of knowledge can no further go?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said.
|
|
|
|
But to whom we are to assign these studies, and in what way they are to
|
|
be assigned, are questions which remain to be considered.
|
|
|
|
Yes, clearly.
|
|
|
|
You remember, I said, how the rulers were chosen before?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
The same natures must still be chosen, and the preference again given
|
|
to the surest and the bravest, and, if possible, to the fairest; and,
|
|
having noble and generous tempers, they should also have the natural
|
|
gifts which will facilitate their education.
|
|
|
|
And what are these?
|
|
|
|
Such gifts as keenness and ready powers of acquisition; for the mind
|
|
more often faints from the severity of study than from the severity of
|
|
gymnastics: the toil is more entirely the mind's own, and is not shared
|
|
with the body.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Further, he of whom we are in search should have a good memory, and be
|
|
an unwearied solid man who is a lover of labour in any line; or he will
|
|
never be able to endure the great amount of bodily exercise and to go
|
|
through all the intellectual discipline and study which we require of
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; he must have natural gifts.
|
|
|
|
The mistake at present is, that those who study philosophy have no
|
|
vocation, and this, as I was before saying, is the reason why she has
|
|
fallen into disrepute: her true sons should take her by the hand and not
|
|
bastards.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
In the first place, her votary should not have a lame or halting
|
|
industry--I mean, that he should not be half industrious and half idle:
|
|
as, for example, when a man is a lover of gymnastic and hunting, and all
|
|
other bodily exercises, but a hater rather than a lover of the labour
|
|
of learning or listening or enquiring. Or the occupation to which he
|
|
devotes himself may be of an opposite kind, and he may have the other
|
|
sort of lameness.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And as to truth, I said, is not a soul equally to be deemed halt and
|
|
lame which hates voluntary falsehood and is extremely indignant at
|
|
herself and others when they tell lies, but is patient of involuntary
|
|
falsehood, and does not mind wallowing like a swinish beast in the mire
|
|
of ignorance, and has no shame at being detected?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And, again, in respect of temperance, courage, magnificence, and every
|
|
other virtue, should we not carefully distinguish between the true son
|
|
and the bastard? for where there is no discernment of such qualities
|
|
states and individuals unconsciously err; and the state makes a ruler,
|
|
and the individual a friend, of one who, being defective in some part of
|
|
virtue, is in a figure lame or a bastard.
|
|
|
|
That is very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
All these things, then, will have to be carefully considered by us; and
|
|
if only those whom we introduce to this vast system of education and
|
|
training are sound in body and mind, justice herself will have nothing
|
|
to say against us, and we shall be the saviours of the constitution and
|
|
of the State; but, if our pupils are men of another stamp, the reverse
|
|
will happen, and we shall pour a still greater flood of ridicule on
|
|
philosophy than she has to endure at present.
|
|
|
|
That would not be creditable.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, I said; and yet perhaps, in thus turning jest into
|
|
earnest I am equally ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
In what respect?
|
|
|
|
I had forgotten, I said, that we were not serious, and spoke with too
|
|
much excitement. For when I saw philosophy so undeservedly trampled
|
|
under foot of men I could not help feeling a sort of indignation at the
|
|
authors of her disgrace: and my anger made me too vehement.
|
|
|
|
Indeed! I was listening, and did not think so.
|
|
|
|
But I, who am the speaker, felt that I was. And now let me remind you
|
|
that, although in our former selection we chose old men, we must not do
|
|
so in this. Solon was under a delusion when he said that a man when he
|
|
grows old may learn many things--for he can no more learn much than he
|
|
can run much; youth is the time for any extraordinary toil.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And, therefore, calculation and geometry and all the other elements of
|
|
instruction, which are a preparation for dialectic, should be presented
|
|
to the mind in childhood; not, however, under any notion of forcing our
|
|
system of education.
|
|
|
|
Why not?
|
|
|
|
Because a freeman ought not to be a slave in the acquisition of
|
|
knowledge of any kind. Bodily exercise, when compulsory, does no harm
|
|
to the body; but knowledge which is acquired under compulsion obtains no
|
|
hold on the mind.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then, my good friend, I said, do not use compulsion, but let early
|
|
education be a sort of amusement; you will then be better able to find
|
|
out the natural bent.
|
|
|
|
That is a very rational notion, he said.
|
|
|
|
Do you remember that the children, too, were to be taken to see the
|
|
battle on horseback; and that if there were no danger they were to be
|
|
brought close up and, like young hounds, have a taste of blood given
|
|
them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
The same practice may be followed, I said, in all these things--labours,
|
|
lessons, dangers--and he who is most at home in all of them ought to be
|
|
enrolled in a select number.
|
|
|
|
At what age?
|
|
|
|
At the age when the necessary gymnastics are over: the period whether of
|
|
two or three years which passes in this sort of training is useless for
|
|
any other purpose; for sleep and exercise are unpropitious to learning;
|
|
and the trial of who is first in gymnastic exercises is one of the most
|
|
important tests to which our youth are subjected.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
After that time those who are selected from the class of twenty years
|
|
old will be promoted to higher honour, and the sciences which they
|
|
learned without any order in their early education will now be brought
|
|
together, and they will be able to see the natural relationship of them
|
|
to one another and to true being.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the only kind of knowledge which takes lasting
|
|
root.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and the capacity for such knowledge is the great criterion
|
|
of dialectical talent: the comprehensive mind is always the dialectical.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
These, I said, are the points which you must consider; and those who
|
|
have most of this comprehension, and who are most steadfast in their
|
|
learning, and in their military and other appointed duties, when they
|
|
have arrived at the age of thirty have to be chosen by you out of the
|
|
select class, and elevated to higher honour; and you will have to prove
|
|
them by the help of dialectic, in order to learn which of them is able
|
|
to give up the use of sight and the other senses, and in company with
|
|
truth to attain absolute being: And here, my friend, great caution is
|
|
required.
|
|
|
|
Why great caution?
|
|
|
|
Do you not remark, I said, how great is the evil which dialectic has
|
|
introduced?
|
|
|
|
What evil? he said.
|
|
|
|
The students of the art are filled with lawlessness.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Do you think that there is anything so very unnatural or inexcusable in
|
|
their case? or will you make allowance for them?
|
|
|
|
In what way make allowance?
|
|
|
|
I want you, I said, by way of parallel, to imagine a supposititious son
|
|
who is brought up in great wealth; he is one of a great and numerous
|
|
family, and has many flatterers. When he grows up to manhood, he learns
|
|
that his alleged are not his real parents; but who the real are he
|
|
is unable to discover. Can you guess how he will be likely to behave
|
|
towards his flatterers and his supposed parents, first of all during the
|
|
period when he is ignorant of the false relation, and then again when he
|
|
knows? Or shall I guess for you?
|
|
|
|
If you please.
|
|
|
|
Then I should say, that while he is ignorant of the truth he will be
|
|
likely to honour his father and his mother and his supposed relations
|
|
more than the flatterers; he will be less inclined to neglect them when
|
|
in need, or to do or say anything against them; and he will be less
|
|
willing to disobey them in any important matter.
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
But when he has made the discovery, I should imagine that he would
|
|
diminish his honour and regard for them, and would become more devoted
|
|
to the flatterers; their influence over him would greatly increase; he
|
|
would now live after their ways, and openly associate with them, and,
|
|
unless he were of an unusually good disposition, he would trouble
|
|
himself no more about his supposed parents or other relations.
|
|
|
|
Well, all that is very probable. But how is the image applicable to the
|
|
disciples of philosophy?
|
|
|
|
In this way: you know that there are certain principles about justice
|
|
and honour, which were taught us in childhood, and under their parental
|
|
authority we have been brought up, obeying and honouring them.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
There are also opposite maxims and habits of pleasure which flatter and
|
|
attract the soul, but do not influence those of us who have any sense of
|
|
right, and they continue to obey and honour the maxims of their fathers.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Now, when a man is in this state, and the questioning spirit asks what
|
|
is fair or honourable, and he answers as the legislator has taught him,
|
|
and then arguments many and diverse refute his words, until he is driven
|
|
into believing that nothing is honourable any more than dishonourable,
|
|
or just and good any more than the reverse, and so of all the notions
|
|
which he most valued, do you think that he will still honour and obey
|
|
them as before?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And when he ceases to think them honourable and natural as heretofore,
|
|
and he fails to discover the true, can he be expected to pursue any life
|
|
other than that which flatters his desires?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
And from being a keeper of the law he is converted into a breaker of it?
|
|
|
|
Unquestionably.
|
|
|
|
Now all this is very natural in students of philosophy such as I have
|
|
described, and also, as I was just now saying, most excusable.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; and, I may add, pitiable.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, that your feelings may not be moved to pity about our
|
|
citizens who are now thirty years of age, every care must be taken in
|
|
introducing them to dialectic.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
There is a danger lest they should taste the dear delight too early; for
|
|
youngsters, as you may have observed, when they first get the taste
|
|
in their mouths, argue for amusement, and are always contradicting and
|
|
refuting others in imitation of those who refute them; like puppy-dogs,
|
|
they rejoice in pulling and tearing at all who come near them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there is nothing which they like better.
|
|
|
|
And when they have made many conquests and received defeats at the hands
|
|
of many, they violently and speedily get into a way of not believing
|
|
anything which they believed before, and hence, not only they, but
|
|
philosophy and all that relates to it is apt to have a bad name with the
|
|
rest of the world.
|
|
|
|
Too true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when a man begins to get older, he will no longer be guilty of such
|
|
insanity; he will imitate the dialectician who is seeking for truth, and
|
|
not the eristic, who is contradicting for the sake of amusement; and the
|
|
greater moderation of his character will increase instead of diminishing
|
|
the honour of the pursuit.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And did we not make special provision for this, when we said that the
|
|
disciples of philosophy were to be orderly and steadfast, not, as now,
|
|
any chance aspirant or intruder?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Suppose, I said, the study of philosophy to take the place of gymnastics
|
|
and to be continued diligently and earnestly and exclusively for twice
|
|
the number of years which were passed in bodily exercise--will that be
|
|
enough?
|
|
|
|
Would you say six or four years? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Say five years, I replied; at the end of the time they must be sent down
|
|
again into the den and compelled to hold any military or other office
|
|
which young men are qualified to hold: in this way they will get their
|
|
experience of life, and there will be an opportunity of trying whether,
|
|
when they are drawn all manner of ways by temptation, they will stand
|
|
firm or flinch.
|
|
|
|
And how long is this stage of their lives to last?
|
|
|
|
Fifteen years, I answered; and when they have reached fifty years of
|
|
age, then let those who still survive and have distinguished themselves
|
|
in every action of their lives and in every branch of knowledge come at
|
|
last to their consummation: the time has now arrived at which they must
|
|
raise the eye of the soul to the universal light which lightens all
|
|
things, and behold the absolute good; for that is the pattern according
|
|
to which they are to order the State and the lives of individuals, and
|
|
the remainder of their own lives also; making philosophy their chief
|
|
pursuit, but, when their turn comes, toiling also at politics and ruling
|
|
for the public good, not as though they were performing some heroic
|
|
action, but simply as a matter of duty; and when they have brought up in
|
|
each generation others like themselves and left them in their place to
|
|
be governors of the State, then they will depart to the Islands of the
|
|
Blest and dwell there; and the city will give them public memorials and
|
|
sacrifices and honour them, if the Pythian oracle consent, as demigods,
|
|
but if not, as in any case blessed and divine.
|
|
|
|
You are a sculptor, Socrates, and have made statues of our governors
|
|
faultless in beauty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, Glaucon, and of our governesses too; for you must not
|
|
suppose that what I have been saying applies to men only and not to
|
|
women as far as their natures can go.
|
|
|
|
There you are right, he said, since we have made them to share in all
|
|
things like the men.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and you would agree (would you not?) that what has
|
|
been said about the State and the government is not a mere dream, and
|
|
although difficult not impossible, but only possible in the way which
|
|
has been supposed; that is to say, when the true philosopher kings are
|
|
born in a State, one or more of them, despising the honours of this
|
|
present world which they deem mean and worthless, esteeming above all
|
|
things right and the honour that springs from right, and regarding
|
|
justice as the greatest and most necessary of all things, whose
|
|
ministers they are, and whose principles will be exalted by them when
|
|
they set in order their own city?
|
|
|
|
How will they proceed?
|
|
|
|
They will begin by sending out into the country all the inhabitants of
|
|
the city who are more than ten years old, and will take possession of
|
|
their children, who will be unaffected by the habits of their parents;
|
|
these they will train in their own habits and laws, I mean in the laws
|
|
which we have given them: and in this way the State and constitution of
|
|
which we were speaking will soonest and most easily attain happiness,
|
|
and the nation which has such a constitution will gain most.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that will be the best way. And I think, Socrates, that you have
|
|
very well described how, if ever, such a constitution might come into
|
|
being.
|
|
|
|
Enough then of the perfect State, and of the man who bears its
|
|
image--there is no difficulty in seeing how we shall describe him.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty, he replied; and I agree with you in thinking
|
|
that nothing more need be said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK VIII.
|
|
|
|
And so, Glaucon, we have arrived at the conclusion that in the perfect
|
|
State wives and children are to be in common; and that all education
|
|
and the pursuits of war and peace are also to be common, and the best
|
|
philosophers and the bravest warriors are to be their kings?
|
|
|
|
That, replied Glaucon, has been acknowledged.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and we have further acknowledged that the governors, when
|
|
appointed themselves, will take their soldiers and place them in houses
|
|
such as we were describing, which are common to all, and contain nothing
|
|
private, or individual; and about their property, you remember what we
|
|
agreed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember that no one was to have any of the ordinary possessions
|
|
of mankind; they were to be warrior athletes and guardians, receiving
|
|
from the other citizens, in lieu of annual payment, only their
|
|
maintenance, and they were to take care of themselves and of the whole
|
|
State.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; and now that this division of our task is concluded, let
|
|
us find the point at which we digressed, that we may return into the old
|
|
path.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty in returning; you implied, then as now, that you
|
|
had finished the description of the State: you said that such a State
|
|
was good, and that the man was good who answered to it, although, as now
|
|
appears, you had more excellent things to relate both of State and man.
|
|
And you said further, that if this was the true form, then the others
|
|
were false; and of the false forms, you said, as I remember, that there
|
|
were four principal ones, and that their defects, and the defects of
|
|
the individuals corresponding to them, were worth examining. When we had
|
|
seen all the individuals, and finally agreed as to who was the best and
|
|
who was the worst of them, we were to consider whether the best was not
|
|
also the happiest, and the worst the most miserable. I asked you
|
|
what were the four forms of government of which you spoke, and then
|
|
Polemarchus and Adeimantus put in their word; and you began again, and
|
|
have found your way to the point at which we have now arrived.
|
|
|
|
Your recollection, I said, is most exact.
|
|
|
|
Then, like a wrestler, he replied, you must put yourself again in the
|
|
same position; and let me ask the same questions, and do you give me the
|
|
same answer which you were about to give me then.
|
|
|
|
Yes, if I can, I will, I said.
|
|
|
|
I shall particularly wish to hear what were the four constitutions of
|
|
which you were speaking.
|
|
|
|
That question, I said, is easily answered: the four governments of which
|
|
I spoke, so far as they have distinct names, are, first, those of Crete
|
|
and Sparta, which are generally applauded; what is termed oligarchy
|
|
comes next; this is not equally approved, and is a form of government
|
|
which teems with evils: thirdly, democracy, which naturally follows
|
|
oligarchy, although very different: and lastly comes tyranny, great
|
|
and famous, which differs from them all, and is the fourth and worst
|
|
disorder of a State. I do not know, do you? of any other constitution
|
|
which can be said to have a distinct character. There are lordships and
|
|
principalities which are bought and sold, and some other intermediate
|
|
forms of government. But these are nondescripts and may be found equally
|
|
among Hellenes and among barbarians.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, we certainly hear of many curious forms of government
|
|
which exist among them.
|
|
|
|
Do you know, I said, that governments vary as the dispositions of men
|
|
vary, and that there must be as many of the one as there are of the
|
|
other? For we cannot suppose that States are made of 'oak and rock,' and
|
|
not out of the human natures which are in them, and which in a figure
|
|
turn the scale and draw other things after them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the States are as the men are; they grow out of human
|
|
characters.
|
|
|
|
Then if the constitutions of States are five, the dispositions of
|
|
individual minds will also be five?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Him who answers to aristocracy, and whom we rightly call just and good,
|
|
we have already described.
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
Then let us now proceed to describe the inferior sort of natures, being
|
|
the contentious and ambitious, who answer to the Spartan polity; also
|
|
the oligarchical, democratical, and tyrannical. Let us place the most
|
|
just by the side of the most unjust, and when we see them we shall be
|
|
able to compare the relative happiness or unhappiness of him who leads
|
|
a life of pure justice or pure injustice. The enquiry will then be
|
|
completed. And we shall know whether we ought to pursue injustice,
|
|
as Thrasymachus advises, or in accordance with the conclusions of the
|
|
argument to prefer justice.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied, we must do as you say.
|
|
|
|
Shall we follow our old plan, which we adopted with a view to clearness,
|
|
of taking the State first and then proceeding to the individual, and
|
|
begin with the government of honour?--I know of no name for such a
|
|
government other than timocracy, or perhaps timarchy. We will compare
|
|
with this the like character in the individual; and, after that,
|
|
consider oligarchy and the oligarchical man; and then again we will turn
|
|
our attention to democracy and the democratical man; and lastly, we
|
|
will go and view the city of tyranny, and once more take a look into the
|
|
tyrant's soul, and try to arrive at a satisfactory decision.
|
|
|
|
That way of viewing and judging of the matter will be very suitable.
|
|
|
|
First, then, I said, let us enquire how timocracy (the government of
|
|
honour) arises out of aristocracy (the government of the best). Clearly,
|
|
all political changes originate in divisions of the actual governing
|
|
power; a government which is united, however small, cannot be moved.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
In what way, then, will our city be moved, and in what manner will the
|
|
two classes of auxiliaries and rulers disagree among themselves or with
|
|
one another? Shall we, after the manner of Homer, pray the Muses to tell
|
|
us 'how discord first arose'? Shall we imagine them in solemn mockery,
|
|
to play and jest with us as if we were children, and to address us in a
|
|
lofty tragic vein, making believe to be in earnest?
|
|
|
|
How would they address us?
|
|
|
|
After this manner:--A city which is thus constituted can hardly be
|
|
shaken; but, seeing that everything which has a beginning has also an
|
|
end, even a constitution such as yours will not last for ever, but will
|
|
in time be dissolved. And this is the dissolution:--In plants that grow
|
|
in the earth, as well as in animals that move on the earth's surface,
|
|
fertility and sterility of soul and body occur when the circumferences
|
|
of the circles of each are completed, which in short-lived existences
|
|
pass over a short space, and in long-lived ones over a long space. But
|
|
to the knowledge of human fecundity and sterility all the wisdom and
|
|
education of your rulers will not attain; the laws which regulate them
|
|
will not be discovered by an intelligence which is alloyed with sense,
|
|
but will escape them, and they will bring children into the world when
|
|
they ought not. Now that which is of divine birth has a period which is
|
|
contained in a perfect number (i.e. a cyclical number, such as 6, which
|
|
is equal to the sum of its divisors 1, 2, 3, so that when the circle
|
|
or time represented by 6 is completed, the lesser times or rotations
|
|
represented by 1, 2, 3 are also completed.), but the period of
|
|
human birth is comprehended in a number in which first increments
|
|
by involution and evolution (or squared and cubed) obtaining three
|
|
intervals and four terms of like and unlike, waxing and waning numbers,
|
|
make all the terms commensurable and agreeable to one another. (Probably
|
|
the numbers 3, 4, 5, 6 of which the three first = the sides of the
|
|
Pythagorean triangle. The terms will then be 3 cubed, 4 cubed, 5 cubed,
|
|
which together = 6 cubed = 216.) The base of these (3) with a third
|
|
added (4) when combined with five (20) and raised to the third power
|
|
furnishes two harmonies; the first a square which is a hundred times
|
|
as great (400 = 4 x 100) (Or the first a square which is 100 x 100 =
|
|
10,000. The whole number will then be 17,500 = a square of 100, and an
|
|
oblong of 100 by 75.), and the other a figure having one side equal to
|
|
the former, but oblong, consisting of a hundred numbers squared upon
|
|
rational diameters of a square (i.e. omitting fractions), the side of
|
|
which is five (7 x 7 = 49 x 100 = 4900), each of them being less by one
|
|
(than the perfect square which includes the fractions, sc. 50) or less
|
|
by (Or, 'consisting of two numbers squared upon irrational diameters,'
|
|
etc. = 100. For other explanations of the passage see Introduction.) two
|
|
perfect squares of irrational diameters (of a square the side of which
|
|
is five = 50 + 50 = 100); and a hundred cubes of three (27 x 100 = 2700
|
|
+ 4900 + 400 = 8000). Now this number represents a geometrical figure
|
|
which has control over the good and evil of births. For when your
|
|
guardians are ignorant of the law of births, and unite bride and
|
|
bridegroom out of season, the children will not be goodly or
|
|
fortunate. And though only the best of them will be appointed by their
|
|
predecessors, still they will be unworthy to hold their fathers' places,
|
|
and when they come into power as guardians, they will soon be found
|
|
to fail in taking care of us, the Muses, first by under-valuing music;
|
|
which neglect will soon extend to gymnastic; and hence the young men of
|
|
your State will be less cultivated. In the succeeding generation rulers
|
|
will be appointed who have lost the guardian power of testing the metal
|
|
of your different races, which, like Hesiod's, are of gold and silver
|
|
and brass and iron. And so iron will be mingled with silver, and brass
|
|
with gold, and hence there will arise dissimilarity and inequality and
|
|
irregularity, which always and in all places are causes of hatred
|
|
and war. This the Muses affirm to be the stock from which discord has
|
|
sprung, wherever arising; and this is their answer to us.
|
|
|
|
Yes, and we may assume that they answer truly.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, I said, of course they answer truly; how can the Muses speak
|
|
falsely?
|
|
|
|
And what do the Muses say next?
|
|
|
|
When discord arose, then the two races were drawn different ways: the
|
|
iron and brass fell to acquiring money and land and houses and gold and
|
|
silver; but the gold and silver races, not wanting money but having the
|
|
true riches in their own nature, inclined towards virtue and the ancient
|
|
order of things. There was a battle between them, and at last they
|
|
agreed to distribute their land and houses among individual owners;
|
|
and they enslaved their friends and maintainers, whom they had formerly
|
|
protected in the condition of freemen, and made of them subjects and
|
|
servants; and they themselves were engaged in war and in keeping a watch
|
|
against them.
|
|
|
|
I believe that you have rightly conceived the origin of the change.
|
|
|
|
And the new government which thus arises will be of a form intermediate
|
|
between oligarchy and aristocracy?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Such will be the change, and after the change has been made, how will
|
|
they proceed? Clearly, the new State, being in a mean between oligarchy
|
|
and the perfect State, will partly follow one and partly the other, and
|
|
will also have some peculiarities.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the honour given to rulers, in the abstinence of the warrior class
|
|
from agriculture, handicrafts, and trade in general, in the institution
|
|
of common meals, and in the attention paid to gymnastics and military
|
|
training--in all these respects this State will resemble the former.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But in the fear of admitting philosophers to power, because they are no
|
|
longer to be had simple and earnest, but are made up of mixed elements;
|
|
and in turning from them to passionate and less complex characters, who
|
|
are by nature fitted for war rather than peace; and in the value set
|
|
by them upon military stratagems and contrivances, and in the waging of
|
|
everlasting wars--this State will be for the most part peculiar.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and men of this stamp will be covetous of money, like those
|
|
who live in oligarchies; they will have, a fierce secret longing after
|
|
gold and silver, which they will hoard in dark places, having magazines
|
|
and treasuries of their own for the deposit and concealment of them;
|
|
also castles which are just nests for their eggs, and in which they will
|
|
spend large sums on their wives, or on any others whom they please.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And they are miserly because they have no means of openly acquiring the
|
|
money which they prize; they will spend that which is another man's on
|
|
the gratification of their desires, stealing their pleasures and running
|
|
away like children from the law, their father: they have been schooled
|
|
not by gentle influences but by force, for they have neglected her
|
|
who is the true Muse, the companion of reason and philosophy, and have
|
|
honoured gymnastic more than music.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly, he said, the form of government which you describe is a
|
|
mixture of good and evil.
|
|
|
|
Why, there is a mixture, I said; but one thing, and one thing only, is
|
|
predominantly seen,--the spirit of contention and ambition; and these
|
|
are due to the prevalence of the passionate or spirited element.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Such is the origin and such the character of this State, which has been
|
|
described in outline only; the more perfect execution was not required,
|
|
for a sketch is enough to show the type of the most perfectly just and
|
|
most perfectly unjust; and to go through all the States and all the
|
|
characters of men, omitting none of them, would be an interminable
|
|
labour.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Now what man answers to this form of government-how did he come into
|
|
being, and what is he like?
|
|
|
|
I think, said Adeimantus, that in the spirit of contention which
|
|
characterises him, he is not unlike our friend Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
Perhaps, I said, he may be like him in that one point; but there are
|
|
other respects in which he is very different.
|
|
|
|
In what respects?
|
|
|
|
He should have more of self-assertion and be less cultivated, and yet
|
|
a friend of culture; and he should be a good listener, but no speaker.
|
|
Such a person is apt to be rough with slaves, unlike the educated man,
|
|
who is too proud for that; and he will also be courteous to freemen, and
|
|
remarkably obedient to authority; he is a lover of power and a lover of
|
|
honour; claiming to be a ruler, not because he is eloquent, or on any
|
|
ground of that sort, but because he is a soldier and has performed feats
|
|
of arms; he is also a lover of gymnastic exercises and of the chase.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the type of character which answers to timocracy.
|
|
|
|
Such an one will despise riches only when he is young; but as he gets
|
|
older he will be more and more attracted to them, because he has a
|
|
piece of the avaricious nature in him, and is not single-minded towards
|
|
virtue, having lost his best guardian.
|
|
|
|
Who was that? said Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Philosophy, I said, tempered with music, who comes and takes up her
|
|
abode in a man, and is the only saviour of his virtue throughout life.
|
|
|
|
Good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Such, I said, is the timocratical youth, and he is like the timocratical
|
|
State.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
His origin is as follows:--He is often the young son of a brave father,
|
|
who dwells in an ill-governed city, of which he declines the honours
|
|
and offices, and will not go to law, or exert himself in any way, but is
|
|
ready to waive his rights in order that he may escape trouble.
|
|
|
|
And how does the son come into being?
|
|
|
|
The character of the son begins to develope when he hears his mother
|
|
complaining that her husband has no place in the government, of which
|
|
the consequence is that she has no precedence among other women.
|
|
Further, when she sees her husband not very eager about money, and
|
|
instead of battling and railing in the law courts or assembly, taking
|
|
whatever happens to him quietly; and when she observes that his thoughts
|
|
always centre in himself, while he treats her with very considerable
|
|
indifference, she is annoyed, and says to her son that his father is
|
|
only half a man and far too easy-going: adding all the other complaints
|
|
about her own ill-treatment which women are so fond of rehearsing.
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Adeimantus, they give us plenty of them, and their complaints
|
|
are so like themselves.
|
|
|
|
And you know, I said, that the old servants also, who are supposed to
|
|
be attached to the family, from time to time talk privately in the same
|
|
strain to the son; and if they see any one who owes money to his father,
|
|
or is wronging him in any way, and he fails to prosecute them, they tell
|
|
the youth that when he grows up he must retaliate upon people of this
|
|
sort, and be more of a man than his father. He has only to walk abroad
|
|
and he hears and sees the same sort of thing: those who do their own
|
|
business in the city are called simpletons, and held in no esteem, while
|
|
the busy-bodies are honoured and applauded. The result is that the young
|
|
man, hearing and seeing all these things--hearing, too, the words of
|
|
his father, and having a nearer view of his way of life, and making
|
|
comparisons of him and others--is drawn opposite ways: while his father
|
|
is watering and nourishing the rational principle in his soul, the
|
|
others are encouraging the passionate and appetitive; and he being not
|
|
originally of a bad nature, but having kept bad company, is at last
|
|
brought by their joint influence to a middle point, and gives up the
|
|
kingdom which is within him to the middle principle of contentiousness
|
|
and passion, and becomes arrogant and ambitious.
|
|
|
|
You seem to me to have described his origin perfectly.
|
|
|
|
Then we have now, I said, the second form of government and the second
|
|
type of character?
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
Next, let us look at another man who, as Aeschylus says,
|
|
|
|
'Is set over against another State;'
|
|
|
|
or rather, as our plan requires, begin with the State.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
I believe that oligarchy follows next in order.
|
|
|
|
And what manner of government do you term oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
A government resting on a valuation of property, in which the rich have
|
|
power and the poor man is deprived of it.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Ought I not to begin by describing how the change from timocracy to
|
|
oligarchy arises?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, no eyes are required in order to see how the one passes
|
|
into the other.
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
The accumulation of gold in the treasury of private individuals is the
|
|
ruin of timocracy; they invent illegal modes of expenditure; for what do
|
|
they or their wives care about the law?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed.
|
|
|
|
And then one, seeing another grow rich, seeks to rival him, and thus the
|
|
great mass of the citizens become lovers of money.
|
|
|
|
Likely enough.
|
|
|
|
And so they grow richer and richer, and the more they think of making
|
|
a fortune the less they think of virtue; for when riches and virtue are
|
|
placed together in the scales of the balance, the one always rises as
|
|
the other falls.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And in proportion as riches and rich men are honoured in the State,
|
|
virtue and the virtuous are dishonoured.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And what is honoured is cultivated, and that which has no honour is
|
|
neglected.
|
|
|
|
That is obvious.
|
|
|
|
And so at last, instead of loving contention and glory, men become
|
|
lovers of trade and money; they honour and look up to the rich man, and
|
|
make a ruler of him, and dishonour the poor man.
|
|
|
|
They do so.
|
|
|
|
They next proceed to make a law which fixes a sum of money as the
|
|
qualification of citizenship; the sum is higher in one place and lower
|
|
in another, as the oligarchy is more or less exclusive; and they allow
|
|
no one whose property falls below the amount fixed to have any share in
|
|
the government. These changes in the constitution they effect by force
|
|
of arms, if intimidation has not already done their work.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And this, speaking generally, is the way in which oligarchy is
|
|
established.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; but what are the characteristics of this form of
|
|
government, and what are the defects of which we were speaking?
|
|
|
|
First of all, I said, consider the nature of the qualification. Just
|
|
think what would happen if pilots were to be chosen according to their
|
|
property, and a poor man were refused permission to steer, even though
|
|
he were a better pilot?
|
|
|
|
You mean that they would shipwreck?
|
|
|
|
Yes; and is not this true of the government of anything?
|
|
|
|
I should imagine so.
|
|
|
|
Except a city?--or would you include a city?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, the case of a city is the strongest of all, inasmuch as
|
|
the rule of a city is the greatest and most difficult of all.
|
|
|
|
This, then, will be the first great defect of oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And here is another defect which is quite as bad.
|
|
|
|
What defect?
|
|
|
|
The inevitable division: such a State is not one, but two States, the
|
|
one of poor, the other of rich men; and they are living on the same spot
|
|
and always conspiring against one another.
|
|
|
|
That, surely, is at least as bad.
|
|
|
|
Another discreditable feature is, that, for a like reason, they are
|
|
incapable of carrying on any war. Either they arm the multitude, and
|
|
then they are more afraid of them than of the enemy; or, if they do not
|
|
call them out in the hour of battle, they are oligarchs indeed, few to
|
|
fight as they are few to rule. And at the same time their fondness for
|
|
money makes them unwilling to pay taxes.
|
|
|
|
How discreditable!
|
|
|
|
And, as we said before, under such a constitution the same persons have
|
|
too many callings--they are husbandmen, tradesmen, warriors, all in one.
|
|
Does that look well?
|
|
|
|
Anything but well.
|
|
|
|
There is another evil which is, perhaps, the greatest of all, and to
|
|
which this State first begins to be liable.
|
|
|
|
What evil?
|
|
|
|
A man may sell all that he has, and another may acquire his property;
|
|
yet after the sale he may dwell in the city of which he is no longer a
|
|
part, being neither trader, nor artisan, nor horseman, nor hoplite, but
|
|
only a poor, helpless creature.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is an evil which also first begins in this State.
|
|
|
|
The evil is certainly not prevented there; for oligarchies have both the
|
|
extremes of great wealth and utter poverty.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But think again: In his wealthy days, while he was spending his money,
|
|
was a man of this sort a whit more good to the State for the purposes
|
|
of citizenship? Or did he only seem to be a member of the ruling
|
|
body, although in truth he was neither ruler nor subject, but just a
|
|
spendthrift?
|
|
|
|
As you say, he seemed to be a ruler, but was only a spendthrift.
|
|
|
|
May we not say that this is the drone in the house who is like the drone
|
|
in the honeycomb, and that the one is the plague of the city as the
|
|
other is of the hive?
|
|
|
|
Just so, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
And God has made the flying drones, Adeimantus, all without stings,
|
|
whereas of the walking drones he has made some without stings but others
|
|
have dreadful stings; of the stingless class are those who in their old
|
|
age end as paupers; of the stingers come all the criminal class, as they
|
|
are termed.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Clearly then, whenever you see paupers in a State, somewhere in that
|
|
neighborhood there are hidden away thieves, and cut-purses and robbers
|
|
of temples, and all sorts of malefactors.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and in oligarchical States do you not find paupers?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; nearly everybody is a pauper who is not a ruler.
|
|
|
|
And may we be so bold as to affirm that there are also many criminals to
|
|
be found in them, rogues who have stings, and whom the authorities are
|
|
careful to restrain by force?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, we may be so bold.
|
|
|
|
The existence of such persons is to be attributed to want of education,
|
|
ill-training, and an evil constitution of the State?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Such, then, is the form and such are the evils of oligarchy; and there
|
|
may be many other evils.
|
|
|
|
Very likely.
|
|
|
|
Then oligarchy, or the form of government in which the rulers are
|
|
elected for their wealth, may now be dismissed. Let us next proceed to
|
|
consider the nature and origin of the individual who answers to this
|
|
State.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Does not the timocratical man change into the oligarchical on this wise?
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
A time arrives when the representative of timocracy has a son: at first
|
|
he begins by emulating his father and walking in his footsteps, but
|
|
presently he sees him of a sudden foundering against the State as upon
|
|
a sunken reef, and he and all that he has is lost; he may have been
|
|
a general or some other high officer who is brought to trial under a
|
|
prejudice raised by informers, and either put to death, or exiled, or
|
|
deprived of the privileges of a citizen, and all his property taken from
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Nothing more likely.
|
|
|
|
And the son has seen and known all this--he is a ruined man, and his
|
|
fear has taught him to knock ambition and passion headforemost from his
|
|
bosom's throne; humbled by poverty he takes to money-making and by mean
|
|
and miserly savings and hard work gets a fortune together. Is not such
|
|
an one likely to seat the concupiscent and covetous element on the
|
|
vacant throne and to suffer it to play the great king within him, girt
|
|
with tiara and chain and scimitar?
|
|
|
|
Most true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And when he has made reason and spirit sit down on the ground obediently
|
|
on either side of their sovereign, and taught them to know their place,
|
|
he compels the one to think only of how lesser sums may be turned into
|
|
larger ones, and will not allow the other to worship and admire anything
|
|
but riches and rich men, or to be ambitious of anything so much as the
|
|
acquisition of wealth and the means of acquiring it.
|
|
|
|
Of all changes, he said, there is none so speedy or so sure as the
|
|
conversion of the ambitious youth into the avaricious one.
|
|
|
|
And the avaricious, I said, is the oligarchical youth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; at any rate the individual out of whom he came is like the
|
|
State out of which oligarchy came.
|
|
|
|
Let us then consider whether there is any likeness between them.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
First, then, they resemble one another in the value which they set upon
|
|
wealth?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Also in their penurious, laborious character; the individual only
|
|
satisfies his necessary appetites, and confines his expenditure to them;
|
|
his other desires he subdues, under the idea that they are unprofitable.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
He is a shabby fellow, who saves something out of everything and makes a
|
|
purse for himself; and this is the sort of man whom the vulgar applaud.
|
|
Is he not a true image of the State which he represents?
|
|
|
|
He appears to me to be so; at any rate money is highly valued by him as
|
|
well as by the State.
|
|
|
|
You see that he is not a man of cultivation, I said.
|
|
|
|
I imagine not, he said; had he been educated he would never have made a
|
|
blind god director of his chorus, or given him chief honour.
|
|
|
|
Excellent! I said. Yet consider: Must we not further admit that owing to
|
|
this want of cultivation there will be found in him dronelike desires as
|
|
of pauper and rogue, which are forcibly kept down by his general habit
|
|
of life?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Do you know where you will have to look if you want to discover his
|
|
rogueries?
|
|
|
|
Where must I look?
|
|
|
|
You should see him where he has some great opportunity of acting
|
|
dishonestly, as in the guardianship of an orphan.
|
|
|
|
Aye.
|
|
|
|
It will be clear enough then that in his ordinary dealings which give
|
|
him a reputation for honesty he coerces his bad passions by an enforced
|
|
virtue; not making them see that they are wrong, or taming them by
|
|
reason, but by necessity and fear constraining them, and because he
|
|
trembles for his possessions.
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, my dear friend, but you will find that the natural desires
|
|
of the drone commonly exist in him all the same whenever he has to spend
|
|
what is not his own.
|
|
|
|
Yes, and they will be strong in him too.
|
|
|
|
The man, then, will be at war with himself; he will be two men, and not
|
|
one; but, in general, his better desires will be found to prevail over
|
|
his inferior ones.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
For these reasons such an one will be more respectable than most people;
|
|
yet the true virtue of a unanimous and harmonious soul will flee far
|
|
away and never come near him.
|
|
|
|
I should expect so.
|
|
|
|
And surely, the miser individually will be an ignoble competitor in a
|
|
State for any prize of victory, or other object of honourable ambition;
|
|
he will not spend his money in the contest for glory; so afraid is he of
|
|
awakening his expensive appetites and inviting them to help and join in
|
|
the struggle; in true oligarchical fashion he fights with a small part
|
|
only of his resources, and the result commonly is that he loses the
|
|
prize and saves his money.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Can we any longer doubt, then, that the miser and money-maker answers to
|
|
the oligarchical State?
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt.
|
|
|
|
Next comes democracy; of this the origin and nature have still to
|
|
be considered by us; and then we will enquire into the ways of the
|
|
democratic man, and bring him up for judgment.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is our method.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and how does the change from oligarchy into democracy
|
|
arise? Is it not on this wise?--The good at which such a State aims is
|
|
to become as rich as possible, a desire which is insatiable?
|
|
|
|
What then?
|
|
|
|
The rulers, being aware that their power rests upon their wealth, refuse
|
|
to curtail by law the extravagance of the spendthrift youth because
|
|
they gain by their ruin; they take interest from them and buy up their
|
|
estates and thus increase their own wealth and importance?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt that the love of wealth and the spirit of
|
|
moderation cannot exist together in citizens of the same state to any
|
|
considerable extent; one or the other will be disregarded.
|
|
|
|
That is tolerably clear.
|
|
|
|
And in oligarchical States, from the general spread of carelessness and
|
|
extravagance, men of good family have often been reduced to beggary?
|
|
|
|
Yes, often.
|
|
|
|
And still they remain in the city; there they are, ready to sting and
|
|
fully armed, and some of them owe money, some have forfeited their
|
|
citizenship; a third class are in both predicaments; and they hate
|
|
and conspire against those who have got their property, and against
|
|
everybody else, and are eager for revolution.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, the men of business, stooping as they walk, and
|
|
pretending not even to see those whom they have already ruined, insert
|
|
their sting--that is, their money--into some one else who is not on
|
|
his guard against them, and recover the parent sum many times over
|
|
multiplied into a family of children: and so they make drone and pauper
|
|
to abound in the State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there are plenty of them--that is certain.
|
|
|
|
The evil blazes up like a fire; and they will not extinguish it, either
|
|
by restricting a man's use of his own property, or by another remedy:
|
|
|
|
What other?
|
|
|
|
One which is the next best, and has the advantage of compelling the
|
|
citizens to look to their characters:--Let there be a general rule that
|
|
every one shall enter into voluntary contracts at his own risk, and
|
|
there will be less of this scandalous money-making, and the evils of
|
|
which we were speaking will be greatly lessened in the State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, they will be greatly lessened.
|
|
|
|
At present the governors, induced by the motives which I have named,
|
|
treat their subjects badly; while they and their adherents, especially
|
|
the young men of the governing class, are habituated to lead a life
|
|
of luxury and idleness both of body and mind; they do nothing, and are
|
|
incapable of resisting either pleasure or pain.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
They themselves care only for making money, and are as indifferent as
|
|
the pauper to the cultivation of virtue.
|
|
|
|
Yes, quite as indifferent.
|
|
|
|
Such is the state of affairs which prevails among them. And often rulers
|
|
and their subjects may come in one another's way, whether on a journey
|
|
or on some other occasion of meeting, on a pilgrimage or a march,
|
|
as fellow-soldiers or fellow-sailors; aye and they may observe the
|
|
behaviour of each other in the very moment of danger--for where danger
|
|
is, there is no fear that the poor will be despised by the rich--and
|
|
very likely the wiry sunburnt poor man may be placed in battle at the
|
|
side of a wealthy one who has never spoilt his complexion and has
|
|
plenty of superfluous flesh--when he sees such an one puffing and at his
|
|
wits'-end, how can he avoid drawing the conclusion that men like him are
|
|
only rich because no one has the courage to despoil them? And when they
|
|
meet in private will not people be saying to one another 'Our warriors
|
|
are not good for much'?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I am quite aware that this is their way of talking.
|
|
|
|
And, as in a body which is diseased the addition of a touch from without
|
|
may bring on illness, and sometimes even when there is no external
|
|
provocation a commotion may arise within--in the same way wherever there
|
|
is weakness in the State there is also likely to be illness, of which
|
|
the occasion may be very slight, the one party introducing from without
|
|
their oligarchical, the other their democratical allies, and then
|
|
the State falls sick, and is at war with herself; and may be at times
|
|
distracted, even when there is no external cause.
|
|
|
|
Yes, surely.
|
|
|
|
And then democracy comes into being after the poor have conquered their
|
|
opponents, slaughtering some and banishing some, while to the remainder
|
|
they give an equal share of freedom and power; and this is the form of
|
|
government in which the magistrates are commonly elected by lot.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the nature of democracy, whether the revolution
|
|
has been effected by arms, or whether fear has caused the opposite party
|
|
to withdraw.
|
|
|
|
And now what is their manner of life, and what sort of a government have
|
|
they? for as the government is, such will be the man.
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, are they not free; and is not the city full of
|
|
freedom and frankness--a man may say and do what he likes?
|
|
|
|
'Tis said so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And where freedom is, the individual is clearly able to order for
|
|
himself his own life as he pleases?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then in this kind of State there will be the greatest variety of human
|
|
natures?
|
|
|
|
There will.
|
|
|
|
This, then, seems likely to be the fairest of States, being like an
|
|
embroidered robe which is spangled with every sort of flower. And just
|
|
as women and children think a variety of colours to be of all things
|
|
most charming, so there are many men to whom this State, which is
|
|
spangled with the manners and characters of mankind, will appear to be
|
|
the fairest of States.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my good Sir, and there will be no better in which to look for a
|
|
government.
|
|
|
|
Why?
|
|
|
|
Because of the liberty which reigns there--they have a complete
|
|
assortment of constitutions; and he who has a mind to establish a State,
|
|
as we have been doing, must go to a democracy as he would to a bazaar at
|
|
which they sell them, and pick out the one that suits him; then, when he
|
|
has made his choice, he may found his State.
|
|
|
|
He will be sure to have patterns enough.
|
|
|
|
And there being no necessity, I said, for you to govern in this State,
|
|
even if you have the capacity, or to be governed, unless you like, or
|
|
go to war when the rest go to war, or to be at peace when others are
|
|
at peace, unless you are so disposed--there being no necessity also,
|
|
because some law forbids you to hold office or be a dicast, that you
|
|
should not hold office or be a dicast, if you have a fancy--is not this
|
|
a way of life which for the moment is supremely delightful?
|
|
|
|
For the moment, yes.
|
|
|
|
And is not their humanity to the condemned in some cases quite charming?
|
|
Have you not observed how, in a democracy, many persons, although they
|
|
have been sentenced to death or exile, just stay where they are and walk
|
|
about the world--the gentleman parades like a hero, and nobody sees or
|
|
cares?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, many and many a one.
|
|
|
|
See too, I said, the forgiving spirit of democracy, and the 'don't
|
|
care' about trifles, and the disregard which she shows of all the fine
|
|
principles which we solemnly laid down at the foundation of the city--as
|
|
when we said that, except in the case of some rarely gifted nature,
|
|
there never will be a good man who has not from his childhood been used
|
|
to play amid things of beauty and make of them a joy and a study--how
|
|
grandly does she trample all these fine notions of ours under her feet,
|
|
never giving a thought to the pursuits which make a statesman, and
|
|
promoting to honour any one who professes to be the people's friend.
|
|
|
|
Yes, she is of a noble spirit.
|
|
|
|
These and other kindred characteristics are proper to democracy, which
|
|
is a charming form of government, full of variety and disorder, and
|
|
dispensing a sort of equality to equals and unequals alike.
|
|
|
|
We know her well.
|
|
|
|
Consider now, I said, what manner of man the individual is, or rather
|
|
consider, as in the case of the State, how he comes into being.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Is not this the way--he is the son of the miserly and oligarchical
|
|
father who has trained him in his own habits?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And, like his father, he keeps under by force the pleasures which are of
|
|
the spending and not of the getting sort, being those which are called
|
|
unnecessary?
|
|
|
|
Obviously.
|
|
|
|
Would you like, for the sake of clearness, to distinguish which are the
|
|
necessary and which are the unnecessary pleasures?
|
|
|
|
I should.
|
|
|
|
Are not necessary pleasures those of which we cannot get rid, and of
|
|
which the satisfaction is a benefit to us? And they are rightly called
|
|
so, because we are framed by nature to desire both what is beneficial
|
|
and what is necessary, and cannot help it.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
We are not wrong therefore in calling them necessary?
|
|
|
|
We are not.
|
|
|
|
And the desires of which a man may get rid, if he takes pains from his
|
|
youth upwards--of which the presence, moreover, does no good, and in
|
|
some cases the reverse of good--shall we not be right in saying that all
|
|
these are unnecessary?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
Suppose we select an example of either kind, in order that we may have a
|
|
general notion of them?
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Will not the desire of eating, that is, of simple food and condiments,
|
|
in so far as they are required for health and strength, be of the
|
|
necessary class?
|
|
|
|
That is what I should suppose.
|
|
|
|
The pleasure of eating is necessary in two ways; it does us good and it
|
|
is essential to the continuance of life?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But the condiments are only necessary in so far as they are good for
|
|
health?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the desire which goes beyond this, of more delicate food, or other
|
|
luxuries, which might generally be got rid of, if controlled and trained
|
|
in youth, and is hurtful to the body, and hurtful to the soul in the
|
|
pursuit of wisdom and virtue, may be rightly called unnecessary?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
May we not say that these desires spend, and that the others make money
|
|
because they conduce to production?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And of the pleasures of love, and all other pleasures, the same holds
|
|
good?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the drone of whom we spoke was he who was surfeited in pleasures
|
|
and desires of this sort, and was the slave of the unnecessary desires,
|
|
whereas he who was subject to the necessary only was miserly and
|
|
oligarchical?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Again, let us see how the democratical man grows out of the
|
|
oligarchical: the following, as I suspect, is commonly the process.
|
|
|
|
What is the process?
|
|
|
|
When a young man who has been brought up as we were just now describing,
|
|
in a vulgar and miserly way, has tasted drones' honey and has come to
|
|
associate with fierce and crafty natures who are able to provide for
|
|
him all sorts of refinements and varieties of pleasure--then, as you may
|
|
imagine, the change will begin of the oligarchical principle within him
|
|
into the democratical?
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
And as in the city like was helping like, and the change was effected by
|
|
an alliance from without assisting one division of the citizens, so too
|
|
the young man is changed by a class of desires coming from without
|
|
to assist the desires within him, that which is akin and alike again
|
|
helping that which is akin and alike?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if there be any ally which aids the oligarchical principle within
|
|
him, whether the influence of a father or of kindred, advising or
|
|
rebuking him, then there arises in his soul a faction and an opposite
|
|
faction, and he goes to war with himself.
|
|
|
|
It must be so.
|
|
|
|
And there are times when the democratical principle gives way to the
|
|
oligarchical, and some of his desires die, and others are banished;
|
|
a spirit of reverence enters into the young man's soul and order is
|
|
restored.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that sometimes happens.
|
|
|
|
And then, again, after the old desires have been driven out, fresh ones
|
|
spring up, which are akin to them, and because he their father does not
|
|
know how to educate them, wax fierce and numerous.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is apt to be the way.
|
|
|
|
They draw him to his old associates, and holding secret intercourse with
|
|
them, breed and multiply in him.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
At length they seize upon the citadel of the young man's soul, which
|
|
they perceive to be void of all accomplishments and fair pursuits and
|
|
true words, which make their abode in the minds of men who are dear to
|
|
the gods, and are their best guardians and sentinels.
|
|
|
|
None better.
|
|
|
|
False and boastful conceits and phrases mount upwards and take their
|
|
place.
|
|
|
|
They are certain to do so.
|
|
|
|
And so the young man returns into the country of the lotus-eaters, and
|
|
takes up his dwelling there in the face of all men; and if any help be
|
|
sent by his friends to the oligarchical part of him, the aforesaid vain
|
|
conceits shut the gate of the king's fastness; and they will neither
|
|
allow the embassy itself to enter, nor if private advisers offer the
|
|
fatherly counsel of the aged will they listen to them or receive them.
|
|
There is a battle and they gain the day, and then modesty, which
|
|
they call silliness, is ignominiously thrust into exile by them, and
|
|
temperance, which they nickname unmanliness, is trampled in the mire and
|
|
cast forth; they persuade men that moderation and orderly expenditure
|
|
are vulgarity and meanness, and so, by the help of a rabble of evil
|
|
appetites, they drive them beyond the border.
|
|
|
|
Yes, with a will.
|
|
|
|
And when they have emptied and swept clean the soul of him who is now in
|
|
their power and who is being initiated by them in great mysteries, the
|
|
next thing is to bring back to their house insolence and anarchy and
|
|
waste and impudence in bright array having garlands on their heads, and
|
|
a great company with them, hymning their praises and calling them by
|
|
sweet names; insolence they term breeding, and anarchy liberty, and
|
|
waste magnificence, and impudence courage. And so the young man
|
|
passes out of his original nature, which was trained in the school of
|
|
necessity, into the freedom and libertinism of useless and unnecessary
|
|
pleasures.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the change in him is visible enough.
|
|
|
|
After this he lives on, spending his money and labour and time on
|
|
unnecessary pleasures quite as much as on necessary ones; but if he be
|
|
fortunate, and is not too much disordered in his wits, when years have
|
|
elapsed, and the heyday of passion is over--supposing that he then
|
|
re-admits into the city some part of the exiled virtues, and does not
|
|
wholly give himself up to their successors--in that case he balances his
|
|
pleasures and lives in a sort of equilibrium, putting the government of
|
|
himself into the hands of the one which comes first and wins the turn;
|
|
and when he has had enough of that, then into the hands of another; he
|
|
despises none of them but encourages them all equally.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither does he receive or let pass into the fortress any true word of
|
|
advice; if any one says to him that some pleasures are the satisfactions
|
|
of good and noble desires, and others of evil desires, and that he ought
|
|
to use and honour some and chastise and master the others--whenever this
|
|
is repeated to him he shakes his head and says that they are all alike,
|
|
and that one is as good as another.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that is the way with him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, he lives from day to day indulging the appetite of the
|
|
hour; and sometimes he is lapped in drink and strains of the flute; then
|
|
he becomes a water-drinker, and tries to get thin; then he takes a turn
|
|
at gymnastics; sometimes idling and neglecting everything, then once
|
|
more living the life of a philosopher; often he is busy with politics,
|
|
and starts to his feet and says and does whatever comes into his head;
|
|
and, if he is emulous of any one who is a warrior, off he is in that
|
|
direction, or of men of business, once more in that. His life has
|
|
neither law nor order; and this distracted existence he terms joy and
|
|
bliss and freedom; and so he goes on.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, he is all liberty and equality.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; his life is motley and manifold and an epitome of the
|
|
lives of many;--he answers to the State which we described as fair
|
|
and spangled. And many a man and many a woman will take him for their
|
|
pattern, and many a constitution and many an example of manners is
|
|
contained in him.
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
Let him then be set over against democracy; he may truly be called the
|
|
democratic man.
|
|
|
|
Let that be his place, he said.
|
|
|
|
Last of all comes the most beautiful of all, man and State alike,
|
|
tyranny and the tyrant; these we have now to consider.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Say then, my friend, In what manner does tyranny arise?--that it has a
|
|
democratic origin is evident.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And does not tyranny spring from democracy in the same manner as
|
|
democracy from oligarchy--I mean, after a sort?
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
The good which oligarchy proposed to itself and the means by which it
|
|
was maintained was excess of wealth--am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the insatiable desire of wealth and the neglect of all other things
|
|
for the sake of money-getting was also the ruin of oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And democracy has her own good, of which the insatiable desire brings
|
|
her to dissolution?
|
|
|
|
What good?
|
|
|
|
Freedom, I replied; which, as they tell you in a democracy, is the glory
|
|
of the State--and that therefore in a democracy alone will the freeman
|
|
of nature deign to dwell.
|
|
|
|
Yes; the saying is in every body's mouth.
|
|
|
|
I was going to observe, that the insatiable desire of this and the
|
|
neglect of other things introduces the change in democracy, which
|
|
occasions a demand for tyranny.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
When a democracy which is thirsting for freedom has evil cup-bearers
|
|
presiding over the feast, and has drunk too deeply of the strong wine of
|
|
freedom, then, unless her rulers are very amenable and give a plentiful
|
|
draught, she calls them to account and punishes them, and says that they
|
|
are cursed oligarchs.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, a very common occurrence.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and loyal citizens are insultingly termed by her slaves who
|
|
hug their chains and men of naught; she would have subjects who are like
|
|
rulers, and rulers who are like subjects: these are men after her own
|
|
heart, whom she praises and honours both in private and public. Now, in
|
|
such a State, can liberty have any limit?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
By degrees the anarchy finds a way into private houses, and ends by
|
|
getting among the animals and infecting them.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean that the father grows accustomed to descend to the level of his
|
|
sons and to fear them, and the son is on a level with his father, he
|
|
having no respect or reverence for either of his parents; and this is
|
|
his freedom, and the metic is equal with the citizen and the citizen
|
|
with the metic, and the stranger is quite as good as either.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the way.
|
|
|
|
And these are not the only evils, I said--there are several lesser ones:
|
|
In such a state of society the master fears and flatters his scholars,
|
|
and the scholars despise their masters and tutors; young and old are
|
|
all alike; and the young man is on a level with the old, and is ready
|
|
to compete with him in word or deed; and old men condescend to the
|
|
young and are full of pleasantry and gaiety; they are loth to be thought
|
|
morose and authoritative, and therefore they adopt the manners of the
|
|
young.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
The last extreme of popular liberty is when the slave bought with money,
|
|
whether male or female, is just as free as his or her purchaser; nor
|
|
must I forget to tell of the liberty and equality of the two sexes in
|
|
relation to each other.
|
|
|
|
Why not, as Aeschylus says, utter the word which rises to our lips?
|
|
|
|
That is what I am doing, I replied; and I must add that no one who
|
|
does not know would believe, how much greater is the liberty which the
|
|
animals who are under the dominion of man have in a democracy than in
|
|
any other State: for truly, the she-dogs, as the proverb says, are as
|
|
good as their she-mistresses, and the horses and asses have a way of
|
|
marching along with all the rights and dignities of freemen; and they
|
|
will run at any body who comes in their way if he does not leave
|
|
the road clear for them: and all things are just ready to burst with
|
|
liberty.
|
|
|
|
When I take a country walk, he said, I often experience what you
|
|
describe. You and I have dreamed the same thing.
|
|
|
|
And above all, I said, and as the result of all, see how sensitive the
|
|
citizens become; they chafe impatiently at the least touch of authority,
|
|
and at length, as you know, they cease to care even for the laws,
|
|
written or unwritten; they will have no one over them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I know it too well.
|
|
|
|
Such, my friend, I said, is the fair and glorious beginning out of which
|
|
springs tyranny.
|
|
|
|
Glorious indeed, he said. But what is the next step?
|
|
|
|
The ruin of oligarchy is the ruin of democracy; the same disease
|
|
magnified and intensified by liberty overmasters democracy--the truth
|
|
being that the excessive increase of anything often causes a reaction in
|
|
the opposite direction; and this is the case not only in the seasons and
|
|
in vegetable and animal life, but above all in forms of government.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The excess of liberty, whether in States or individuals, seems only to
|
|
pass into excess of slavery.
|
|
|
|
Yes, the natural order.
|
|
|
|
And so tyranny naturally arises out of democracy, and the most
|
|
aggravated form of tyranny and slavery out of the most extreme form of
|
|
liberty?
|
|
|
|
As we might expect.
|
|
|
|
That, however, was not, as I believe, your question--you rather desired
|
|
to know what is that disorder which is generated alike in oligarchy and
|
|
democracy, and is the ruin of both?
|
|
|
|
Just so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, I meant to refer to the class of idle spendthrifts,
|
|
of whom the more courageous are the leaders and the more timid the
|
|
followers, the same whom we were comparing to drones, some stingless,
|
|
and others having stings.
|
|
|
|
A very just comparison.
|
|
|
|
These two classes are the plagues of every city in which they are
|
|
generated, being what phlegm and bile are to the body. And the good
|
|
physician and lawgiver of the State ought, like the wise bee-master, to
|
|
keep them at a distance and prevent, if possible, their ever coming in;
|
|
and if they have anyhow found a way in, then he should have them and
|
|
their cells cut out as speedily as possible.
|
|
|
|
Yes, by all means, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, in order that we may see clearly what we are doing, let us imagine
|
|
democracy to be divided, as indeed it is, into three classes; for in the
|
|
first place freedom creates rather more drones in the democratic than
|
|
there were in the oligarchical State.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And in the democracy they are certainly more intensified.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
Because in the oligarchical State they are disqualified and driven from
|
|
office, and therefore they cannot train or gather strength; whereas in a
|
|
democracy they are almost the entire ruling power, and while the keener
|
|
sort speak and act, the rest keep buzzing about the bema and do not
|
|
suffer a word to be said on the other side; hence in democracies almost
|
|
everything is managed by the drones.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then there is another class which is always being severed from the mass.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
They are the orderly class, which in a nation of traders is sure to be
|
|
the richest.
|
|
|
|
Naturally so.
|
|
|
|
They are the most squeezable persons and yield the largest amount of
|
|
honey to the drones.
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, there is little to be squeezed out of people who have
|
|
little.
|
|
|
|
And this is called the wealthy class, and the drones feed upon them.
|
|
|
|
That is pretty much the case, he said.
|
|
|
|
The people are a third class, consisting of those who work with their
|
|
own hands; they are not politicians, and have not much to live upon.
|
|
This, when assembled, is the largest and most powerful class in a
|
|
democracy.
|
|
|
|
True, he said; but then the multitude is seldom willing to congregate
|
|
unless they get a little honey.
|
|
|
|
And do they not share? I said. Do not their leaders deprive the rich
|
|
of their estates and distribute them among the people; at the same time
|
|
taking care to reserve the larger part for themselves?
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, he said, to that extent the people do share.
|
|
|
|
And the persons whose property is taken from them are compelled to
|
|
defend themselves before the people as they best can?
|
|
|
|
What else can they do?
|
|
|
|
And then, although they may have no desire of change, the others charge
|
|
them with plotting against the people and being friends of oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the end is that when they see the people, not of their own accord,
|
|
but through ignorance, and because they are deceived by informers,
|
|
seeking to do them wrong, then at last they are forced to become
|
|
oligarchs in reality; they do not wish to be, but the sting of the
|
|
drones torments them and breeds revolution in them.
|
|
|
|
That is exactly the truth.
|
|
|
|
Then come impeachments and judgments and trials of one another.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The people have always some champion whom they set over them and nurse
|
|
into greatness.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is their way.
|
|
|
|
This and no other is the root from which a tyrant springs; when he first
|
|
appears above ground he is a protector.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is quite clear.
|
|
|
|
How then does a protector begin to change into a tyrant? Clearly when
|
|
he does what the man is said to do in the tale of the Arcadian temple of
|
|
Lycaean Zeus.
|
|
|
|
What tale?
|
|
|
|
The tale is that he who has tasted the entrails of a single human victim
|
|
minced up with the entrails of other victims is destined to become a
|
|
wolf. Did you never hear it?
|
|
|
|
Oh, yes.
|
|
|
|
And the protector of the people is like him; having a mob entirely at
|
|
his disposal, he is not restrained from shedding the blood of kinsmen;
|
|
by the favourite method of false accusation he brings them into court
|
|
and murders them, making the life of man to disappear, and with unholy
|
|
tongue and lips tasting the blood of his fellow citizens; some he kills
|
|
and others he banishes, at the same time hinting at the abolition of
|
|
debts and partition of lands: and after this, what will be his destiny?
|
|
Must he not either perish at the hands of his enemies, or from being a
|
|
man become a wolf--that is, a tyrant?
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
This, I said, is he who begins to make a party against the rich?
|
|
|
|
The same.
|
|
|
|
After a while he is driven out, but comes back, in spite of his enemies,
|
|
a tyrant full grown.
|
|
|
|
That is clear.
|
|
|
|
And if they are unable to expel him, or to get him condemned to death by
|
|
a public accusation, they conspire to assassinate him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is their usual way.
|
|
|
|
Then comes the famous request for a body-guard, which is the device of
|
|
all those who have got thus far in their tyrannical career--'Let not the
|
|
people's friend,' as they say, 'be lost to them.'
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
The people readily assent; all their fears are for him--they have none
|
|
for themselves.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And when a man who is wealthy and is also accused of being an enemy of
|
|
the people sees this, then, my friend, as the oracle said to Croesus,
|
|
|
|
'By pebbly Hermus' shore he flees and rests not, and is not ashamed to
|
|
be a coward.'
|
|
|
|
And quite right too, said he, for if he were, he would never be ashamed
|
|
again.
|
|
|
|
But if he is caught he dies.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And he, the protector of whom we spoke, is to be seen, not 'larding the
|
|
plain' with his bulk, but himself the overthrower of many, standing up
|
|
in the chariot of State with the reins in his hand, no longer protector,
|
|
but tyrant absolute.
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he said.
|
|
|
|
And now let us consider the happiness of the man, and also of the State
|
|
in which a creature like him is generated.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, let us consider that.
|
|
|
|
At first, in the early days of his power, he is full of smiles, and
|
|
he salutes every one whom he meets;--he to be called a tyrant, who is
|
|
making promises in public and also in private! liberating debtors, and
|
|
distributing land to the people and his followers, and wanting to be so
|
|
kind and good to every one!
|
|
|
|
Of course, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when he has disposed of foreign enemies by conquest or treaty, and
|
|
there is nothing to fear from them, then he is always stirring up some
|
|
war or other, in order that the people may require a leader.
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Has he not also another object, which is that they may be impoverished
|
|
by payment of taxes, and thus compelled to devote themselves to their
|
|
daily wants and therefore less likely to conspire against him?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And if any of them are suspected by him of having notions of freedom,
|
|
and of resistance to his authority, he will have a good pretext for
|
|
destroying them by placing them at the mercy of the enemy; and for all
|
|
these reasons the tyrant must be always getting up a war.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
Now he begins to grow unpopular.
|
|
|
|
A necessary result.
|
|
|
|
Then some of those who joined in setting him up, and who are in power,
|
|
speak their minds to him and to one another, and the more courageous of
|
|
them cast in his teeth what is being done.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that may be expected.
|
|
|
|
And the tyrant, if he means to rule, must get rid of them; he cannot
|
|
stop while he has a friend or an enemy who is good for anything.
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
And therefore he must look about him and see who is valiant, who is
|
|
high-minded, who is wise, who is wealthy; happy man, he is the enemy
|
|
of them all, and must seek occasion against them whether he will or no,
|
|
until he has made a purgation of the State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and a rare purgation.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, not the sort of purgation which the physicians make of the
|
|
body; for they take away the worse and leave the better part, but he
|
|
does the reverse.
|
|
|
|
If he is to rule, I suppose that he cannot help himself.
|
|
|
|
What a blessed alternative, I said:--to be compelled to dwell only with
|
|
the many bad, and to be by them hated, or not to live at all!
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the alternative.
|
|
|
|
And the more detestable his actions are to the citizens the more
|
|
satellites and the greater devotion in them will he require?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And who are the devoted band, and where will he procure them?
|
|
|
|
They will flock to him, he said, of their own accord, if he pays them.
|
|
|
|
By the dog! I said, here are more drones, of every sort and from every
|
|
land.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there are.
|
|
|
|
But will he not desire to get them on the spot?
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
He will rob the citizens of their slaves; he will then set them free and
|
|
enrol them in his body-guard.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said; and he will be able to trust them best of all.
|
|
|
|
What a blessed creature, I said, must this tyrant be; he has put to
|
|
death the others and has these for his trusted friends.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; they are quite of his sort.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and these are the new citizens whom he has called into
|
|
existence, who admire him and are his companions, while the good hate
|
|
and avoid him.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
Verily, then, tragedy is a wise thing and Euripides a great tragedian.
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
Why, because he is the author of the pregnant saying,
|
|
|
|
'Tyrants are wise by living with the wise;'
|
|
|
|
and he clearly meant to say that they are the wise whom the tyrant makes
|
|
his companions.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and he also praises tyranny as godlike; and many other
|
|
things of the same kind are said by him and by the other poets.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, I said, the tragic poets being wise men will forgive us
|
|
and any others who live after our manner if we do not receive them into
|
|
our State, because they are the eulogists of tyranny.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, those who have the wit will doubtless forgive us.
|
|
|
|
But they will continue to go to other cities and attract mobs, and
|
|
hire voices fair and loud and persuasive, and draw the cities over to
|
|
tyrannies and democracies.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Moreover, they are paid for this and receive honour--the greatest
|
|
honour, as might be expected, from tyrants, and the next greatest from
|
|
democracies; but the higher they ascend our constitution hill, the more
|
|
their reputation fails, and seems unable from shortness of breath to
|
|
proceed further.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But we are wandering from the subject: Let us therefore return and
|
|
enquire how the tyrant will maintain that fair and numerous and various
|
|
and ever-changing army of his.
|
|
|
|
If, he said, there are sacred treasures in the city, he will confiscate
|
|
and spend them; and in so far as the fortunes of attainted persons may
|
|
suffice, he will be able to diminish the taxes which he would otherwise
|
|
have to impose upon the people.
|
|
|
|
And when these fail?
|
|
|
|
Why, clearly, he said, then he and his boon companions, whether male or
|
|
female, will be maintained out of his father's estate.
|
|
|
|
You mean to say that the people, from whom he has derived his being,
|
|
will maintain him and his companions?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; they cannot help themselves.
|
|
|
|
But what if the people fly into a passion, and aver that a grown-up son
|
|
ought not to be supported by his father, but that the father should be
|
|
supported by the son? The father did not bring him into being, or settle
|
|
him in life, in order that when his son became a man he should himself
|
|
be the servant of his own servants and should support him and his rabble
|
|
of slaves and companions; but that his son should protect him, and that
|
|
by his help he might be emancipated from the government of the rich and
|
|
aristocratic, as they are termed. And so he bids him and his companions
|
|
depart, just as any other father might drive out of the house a riotous
|
|
son and his undesirable associates.
|
|
|
|
By heaven, he said, then the parent will discover what a monster he has
|
|
been fostering in his bosom; and, when he wants to drive him out, he
|
|
will find that he is weak and his son strong.
|
|
|
|
Why, you do not mean to say that the tyrant will use violence? What!
|
|
beat his father if he opposes him?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he will, having first disarmed him.
|
|
|
|
Then he is a parricide, and a cruel guardian of an aged parent; and this
|
|
is real tyranny, about which there can be no longer a mistake: as the
|
|
saying is, the people who would escape the smoke which is the slavery of
|
|
freemen, has fallen into the fire which is the tyranny of slaves. Thus
|
|
liberty, getting out of all order and reason, passes into the harshest
|
|
and bitterest form of slavery.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Very well; and may we not rightly say that we have sufficiently
|
|
discussed the nature of tyranny, and the manner of the transition from
|
|
democracy to tyranny?
|
|
|
|
Yes, quite enough, he said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK IX.
|
|
|
|
Last of all comes the tyrannical man; about whom we have once more to
|
|
ask, how is he formed out of the democratical? and how does he live, in
|
|
happiness or in misery?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, he is the only one remaining.
|
|
|
|
There is, however, I said, a previous question which remains unanswered.
|
|
|
|
What question?
|
|
|
|
I do not think that we have adequately determined the nature and number
|
|
of the appetites, and until this is accomplished the enquiry will always
|
|
be confused.
|
|
|
|
Well, he said, it is not too late to supply the omission.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said; and observe the point which I want to understand:
|
|
Certain of the unnecessary pleasures and appetites I conceive to be
|
|
unlawful; every one appears to have them, but in some persons they are
|
|
controlled by the laws and by reason, and the better desires prevail
|
|
over them--either they are wholly banished or they become few and weak;
|
|
while in the case of others they are stronger, and there are more of
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
Which appetites do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean those which are awake when the reasoning and human and ruling
|
|
power is asleep; then the wild beast within us, gorged with meat or
|
|
drink, starts up and having shaken off sleep, goes forth to satisfy
|
|
his desires; and there is no conceivable folly or crime--not excepting
|
|
incest or any other unnatural union, or parricide, or the eating of
|
|
forbidden food--which at such a time, when he has parted company with
|
|
all shame and sense, a man may not be ready to commit.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when a man's pulse is healthy and temperate, and when before going
|
|
to sleep he has awakened his rational powers, and fed them on noble
|
|
thoughts and enquiries, collecting himself in meditation; after having
|
|
first indulged his appetites neither too much nor too little, but just
|
|
enough to lay them to sleep, and prevent them and their enjoyments and
|
|
pains from interfering with the higher principle--which he leaves in
|
|
the solitude of pure abstraction, free to contemplate and aspire to
|
|
the knowledge of the unknown, whether in past, present, or future: when
|
|
again he has allayed the passionate element, if he has a quarrel against
|
|
any one--I say, when, after pacifying the two irrational principles, he
|
|
rouses up the third, which is reason, before he takes his rest, then,
|
|
as you know, he attains truth most nearly, and is least likely to be the
|
|
sport of fantastic and lawless visions.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree.
|
|
|
|
In saying this I have been running into a digression; but the point
|
|
which I desire to note is that in all of us, even in good men, there is
|
|
a lawless wild-beast nature, which peers out in sleep. Pray, consider
|
|
whether I am right, and you agree with me.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I agree.
|
|
|
|
And now remember the character which we attributed to the democratic
|
|
man. He was supposed from his youth upwards to have been trained under
|
|
a miserly parent, who encouraged the saving appetites in him, but
|
|
discountenanced the unnecessary, which aim only at amusement and
|
|
ornament?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And then he got into the company of a more refined, licentious sort of
|
|
people, and taking to all their wanton ways rushed into the opposite
|
|
extreme from an abhorrence of his father's meanness. At last, being a
|
|
better man than his corruptors, he was drawn in both directions until he
|
|
halted midway and led a life, not of vulgar and slavish passion, but
|
|
of what he deemed moderate indulgence in various pleasures. After this
|
|
manner the democrat was generated out of the oligarch?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that was our view of him, and is so still.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, years will have passed away, and you must conceive this
|
|
man, such as he is, to have a son, who is brought up in his father's
|
|
principles.
|
|
|
|
I can imagine him.
|
|
|
|
Then you must further imagine the same thing to happen to the son
|
|
which has already happened to the father:--he is drawn into a perfectly
|
|
lawless life, which by his seducers is termed perfect liberty; and his
|
|
father and friends take part with his moderate desires, and the opposite
|
|
party assist the opposite ones. As soon as these dire magicians and
|
|
tyrant-makers find that they are losing their hold on him, they contrive
|
|
to implant in him a master passion, to be lord over his idle and
|
|
spendthrift lusts--a sort of monstrous winged drone--that is the only
|
|
image which will adequately describe him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the only adequate image of him.
|
|
|
|
And when his other lusts, amid clouds of incense and perfumes and
|
|
garlands and wines, and all the pleasures of a dissolute life, now let
|
|
loose, come buzzing around him, nourishing to the utmost the sting of
|
|
desire which they implant in his drone-like nature, then at last this
|
|
lord of the soul, having Madness for the captain of his guard, breaks
|
|
out into a frenzy: and if he finds in himself any good opinions or
|
|
appetites in process of formation, and there is in him any sense of
|
|
shame remaining, to these better principles he puts an end, and casts
|
|
them forth until he has purged away temperance and brought in madness to
|
|
the full.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the way in which the tyrannical man is generated.
|
|
|
|
And is not this the reason why of old love has been called a tyrant?
|
|
|
|
I should not wonder.
|
|
|
|
Further, I said, has not a drunken man also the spirit of a tyrant?
|
|
|
|
He has.
|
|
|
|
And you know that a man who is deranged and not right in his mind, will
|
|
fancy that he is able to rule, not only over men, but also over the
|
|
gods?
|
|
|
|
That he will.
|
|
|
|
And the tyrannical man in the true sense of the word comes into being
|
|
when, either under the influence of nature, or habit, or both, he
|
|
becomes drunken, lustful, passionate? O my friend, is not that so?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Such is the man and such is his origin. And next, how does he live?
|
|
|
|
Suppose, as people facetiously say, you were to tell me.
|
|
|
|
I imagine, I said, at the next step in his progress, that there will be
|
|
feasts and carousals and revellings and courtezans, and all that sort
|
|
of thing; Love is the lord of the house within him, and orders all the
|
|
concerns of his soul.
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and every day and every night desires grow up many and formidable,
|
|
and their demands are many.
|
|
|
|
They are indeed, he said.
|
|
|
|
His revenues, if he has any, are soon spent.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then comes debt and the cutting down of his property.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
When he has nothing left, must not his desires, crowding in the nest
|
|
like young ravens, be crying aloud for food; and he, goaded on by them,
|
|
and especially by love himself, who is in a manner the captain of them,
|
|
is in a frenzy, and would fain discover whom he can defraud or despoil
|
|
of his property, in order that he may gratify them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is sure to be the case.
|
|
|
|
He must have money, no matter how, if he is to escape horrid pains and
|
|
pangs.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
And as in himself there was a succession of pleasures, and the new got
|
|
the better of the old and took away their rights, so he being younger
|
|
will claim to have more than his father and his mother, and if he has
|
|
spent his own share of the property, he will take a slice of theirs.
|
|
|
|
No doubt he will.
|
|
|
|
And if his parents will not give way, then he will try first of all to
|
|
cheat and deceive them.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And if he fails, then he will use force and plunder them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, probably.
|
|
|
|
And if the old man and woman fight for their own, what then, my friend?
|
|
Will the creature feel any compunction at tyrannizing over them?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, I should not feel at all comfortable about his parents.
|
|
|
|
But, O heavens! Adeimantus, on account of some new-fangled love of a
|
|
harlot, who is anything but a necessary connection, can you believe that
|
|
he would strike the mother who is his ancient friend and necessary
|
|
to his very existence, and would place her under the authority of the
|
|
other, when she is brought under the same roof with her; or that, under
|
|
like circumstances, he would do the same to his withered old father,
|
|
first and most indispensable of friends, for the sake of some
|
|
newly-found blooming youth who is the reverse of indispensable?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, he said; I believe that he would.
|
|
|
|
Truly, then, I said, a tyrannical son is a blessing to his father and
|
|
mother.
|
|
|
|
He is indeed, he replied.
|
|
|
|
He first takes their property, and when that fails, and pleasures are
|
|
beginning to swarm in the hive of his soul, then he breaks into a house,
|
|
or steals the garments of some nightly wayfarer; next he proceeds to
|
|
clear a temple. Meanwhile the old opinions which he had when a child,
|
|
and which gave judgment about good and evil, are overthrown by those
|
|
others which have just been emancipated, and are now the body-guard of
|
|
love and share his empire. These in his democratic days, when he was
|
|
still subject to the laws and to his father, were only let loose in
|
|
the dreams of sleep. But now that he is under the dominion of love, he
|
|
becomes always and in waking reality what he was then very rarely and in
|
|
a dream only; he will commit the foulest murder, or eat forbidden food,
|
|
or be guilty of any other horrid act. Love is his tyrant, and lives
|
|
lordly in him and lawlessly, and being himself a king, leads him on, as
|
|
a tyrant leads a State, to the performance of any reckless deed by which
|
|
he can maintain himself and the rabble of his associates, whether those
|
|
whom evil communications have brought in from without, or those whom
|
|
he himself has allowed to break loose within him by reason of a similar
|
|
evil nature in himself. Have we not here a picture of his way of life?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, he said.
|
|
|
|
And if there are only a few of them in the State, and the rest of the
|
|
people are well disposed, they go away and become the body-guard or
|
|
mercenary soldiers of some other tyrant who may probably want them for a
|
|
war; and if there is no war, they stay at home and do many little pieces
|
|
of mischief in the city.
|
|
|
|
What sort of mischief?
|
|
|
|
For example, they are the thieves, burglars, cut-purses, foot-pads,
|
|
robbers of temples, man-stealers of the community; or if they are able
|
|
to speak they turn informers, and bear false witness, and take bribes.
|
|
|
|
A small catalogue of evils, even if the perpetrators of them are few in
|
|
number.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but small and great are comparative terms, and all these
|
|
things, in the misery and evil which they inflict upon a State, do not
|
|
come within a thousand miles of the tyrant; when this noxious class and
|
|
their followers grow numerous and become conscious of their strength,
|
|
assisted by the infatuation of the people, they choose from among
|
|
themselves the one who has most of the tyrant in his own soul, and him
|
|
they create their tyrant.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and he will be the most fit to be a tyrant.
|
|
|
|
If the people yield, well and good; but if they resist him, as he began
|
|
by beating his own father and mother, so now, if he has the power, he
|
|
beats them, and will keep his dear old fatherland or motherland, as the
|
|
Cretans say, in subjection to his young retainers whom he has introduced
|
|
to be their rulers and masters. This is the end of his passions and
|
|
desires.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
When such men are only private individuals and before they get power,
|
|
this is their character; they associate entirely with their own
|
|
flatterers or ready tools; or if they want anything from anybody, they
|
|
in their turn are equally ready to bow down before them: they profess
|
|
every sort of affection for them; but when they have gained their point
|
|
they know them no more.
|
|
|
|
Yes, truly.
|
|
|
|
They are always either the masters or servants and never the friends of
|
|
anybody; the tyrant never tastes of true freedom or friendship.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And may we not rightly call such men treacherous?
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
Also they are utterly unjust, if we were right in our notion of justice?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and we were perfectly right.
|
|
|
|
Let us then sum up in a word, I said, the character of the worst man: he
|
|
is the waking reality of what we dreamed.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And this is he who being by nature most of a tyrant bears rule, and the
|
|
longer he lives the more of a tyrant he becomes.
|
|
|
|
That is certain, said Glaucon, taking his turn to answer.
|
|
|
|
And will not he who has been shown to be the wickedest, be also the most
|
|
miserable? and he who has tyrannized longest and most, most continually
|
|
and truly miserable; although this may not be the opinion of men in
|
|
general?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, inevitably.
|
|
|
|
And must not the tyrannical man be like the tyrannical State, and
|
|
the democratical man like the democratical State; and the same of the
|
|
others?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And as State is to State in virtue and happiness, so is man in relation
|
|
to man?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Then comparing our original city, which was under a king, and the city
|
|
which is under a tyrant, how do they stand as to virtue?
|
|
|
|
They are the opposite extremes, he said, for one is the very best and
|
|
the other is the very worst.
|
|
|
|
There can be no mistake, I said, as to which is which, and therefore
|
|
I will at once enquire whether you would arrive at a similar decision
|
|
about their relative happiness and misery. And here we must not allow
|
|
ourselves to be panic-stricken at the apparition of the tyrant, who is
|
|
only a unit and may perhaps have a few retainers about him; but let us
|
|
go as we ought into every corner of the city and look all about, and
|
|
then we will give our opinion.
|
|
|
|
A fair invitation, he replied; and I see, as every one must, that a
|
|
tyranny is the wretchedest form of government, and the rule of a king
|
|
the happiest.
|
|
|
|
And in estimating the men too, may I not fairly make a like request,
|
|
that I should have a judge whose mind can enter into and see through
|
|
human nature? he must not be like a child who looks at the outside and
|
|
is dazzled at the pompous aspect which the tyrannical nature assumes to
|
|
the beholder, but let him be one who has a clear insight. May I suppose
|
|
that the judgment is given in the hearing of us all by one who is able
|
|
to judge, and has dwelt in the same place with him, and been present at
|
|
his dally life and known him in his family relations, where he may be
|
|
seen stripped of his tragedy attire, and again in the hour of public
|
|
danger--he shall tell us about the happiness and misery of the tyrant
|
|
when compared with other men?
|
|
|
|
That again, he said, is a very fair proposal.
|
|
|
|
Shall I assume that we ourselves are able and experienced judges and
|
|
have before now met with such a person? We shall then have some one who
|
|
will answer our enquiries.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Let me ask you not to forget the parallel of the individual and the
|
|
State; bearing this in mind, and glancing in turn from one to the other
|
|
of them, will you tell me their respective conditions?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Beginning with the State, I replied, would you say that a city which is
|
|
governed by a tyrant is free or enslaved?
|
|
|
|
No city, he said, can be more completely enslaved.
|
|
|
|
And yet, as you see, there are freemen as well as masters in such a
|
|
State?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I see that there are--a few; but the people, speaking
|
|
generally, and the best of them are miserably degraded and enslaved.
|
|
|
|
Then if the man is like the State, I said, must not the same rule
|
|
prevail? his soul is full of meanness and vulgarity--the best elements
|
|
in him are enslaved; and there is a small ruling part, which is also the
|
|
worst and maddest.
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
And would you say that the soul of such an one is the soul of a freeman,
|
|
or of a slave?
|
|
|
|
He has the soul of a slave, in my opinion.
|
|
|
|
And the State which is enslaved under a tyrant is utterly incapable of
|
|
acting voluntarily?
|
|
|
|
Utterly incapable.
|
|
|
|
And also the soul which is under a tyrant (I am speaking of the soul
|
|
taken as a whole) is least capable of doing what she desires; there is a
|
|
gadfly which goads her, and she is full of trouble and remorse?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is the city which is under a tyrant rich or poor?
|
|
|
|
Poor.
|
|
|
|
And the tyrannical soul must be always poor and insatiable?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And must not such a State and such a man be always full of fear?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed.
|
|
|
|
Is there any State in which you will find more of lamentation and sorrow
|
|
and groaning and pain?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And is there any man in whom you will find more of this sort of misery
|
|
than in the tyrannical man, who is in a fury of passions and desires?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Reflecting upon these and similar evils, you held the tyrannical State
|
|
to be the most miserable of States?
|
|
|
|
And I was right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, I said. And when you see the same evils in the tyrannical
|
|
man, what do you say of him?
|
|
|
|
I say that he is by far the most miserable of all men.
|
|
|
|
There, I said, I think that you are beginning to go wrong.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I do not think that he has as yet reached the utmost extreme of misery.
|
|
|
|
Then who is more miserable?
|
|
|
|
One of whom I am about to speak.
|
|
|
|
Who is that?
|
|
|
|
He who is of a tyrannical nature, and instead of leading a private life
|
|
has been cursed with the further misfortune of being a public tyrant.
|
|
|
|
From what has been said, I gather that you are right.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, but in this high argument you should be a little more
|
|
certain, and should not conjecture only; for of all questions, this
|
|
respecting good and evil is the greatest.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Let me then offer you an illustration, which may, I think, throw a light
|
|
upon this subject.
|
|
|
|
What is your illustration?
|
|
|
|
The case of rich individuals in cities who possess many slaves: from
|
|
them you may form an idea of the tyrant's condition, for they both have
|
|
slaves; the only difference is that he has more slaves.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the difference.
|
|
|
|
You know that they live securely and have nothing to apprehend from
|
|
their servants?
|
|
|
|
What should they fear?
|
|
|
|
Nothing. But do you observe the reason of this?
|
|
|
|
Yes; the reason is, that the whole city is leagued together for the
|
|
protection of each individual.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said. But imagine one of these owners, the master say of
|
|
some fifty slaves, together with his family and property and slaves,
|
|
carried off by a god into the wilderness, where there are no freemen to
|
|
help him--will he not be in an agony of fear lest he and his wife and
|
|
children should be put to death by his slaves?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, he will be in the utmost fear.
|
|
|
|
The time has arrived when he will be compelled to flatter divers of his
|
|
slaves, and make many promises to them of freedom and other things, much
|
|
against his will--he will have to cajole his own servants.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that will be the only way of saving himself.
|
|
|
|
And suppose the same god, who carried him away, to surround him with
|
|
neighbours who will not suffer one man to be the master of another, and
|
|
who, if they could catch the offender, would take his life?
|
|
|
|
His case will be still worse, if you suppose him to be everywhere
|
|
surrounded and watched by enemies.
|
|
|
|
And is not this the sort of prison in which the tyrant will be bound--he
|
|
who being by nature such as we have described, is full of all sorts of
|
|
fears and lusts? His soul is dainty and greedy, and yet alone, of all
|
|
men in the city, he is never allowed to go on a journey, or to see the
|
|
things which other freemen desire to see, but he lives in his hole like
|
|
a woman hidden in the house, and is jealous of any other citizen who
|
|
goes into foreign parts and sees anything of interest.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And amid evils such as these will not he who is ill-governed in his own
|
|
person--the tyrannical man, I mean--whom you just now decided to be the
|
|
most miserable of all--will not he be yet more miserable when, instead
|
|
of leading a private life, he is constrained by fortune to be a public
|
|
tyrant? He has to be master of others when he is not master of himself:
|
|
he is like a diseased or paralytic man who is compelled to pass his
|
|
life, not in retirement, but fighting and combating with other men.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the similitude is most exact.
|
|
|
|
Is not his case utterly miserable? and does not the actual tyrant lead a
|
|
worse life than he whose life you determined to be the worst?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
He who is the real tyrant, whatever men may think, is the real slave,
|
|
and is obliged to practise the greatest adulation and servility, and to
|
|
be the flatterer of the vilest of mankind. He has desires which he is
|
|
utterly unable to satisfy, and has more wants than any one, and is truly
|
|
poor, if you know how to inspect the whole soul of him: all his life
|
|
long he is beset with fear and is full of convulsions and distractions,
|
|
even as the State which he resembles: and surely the resemblance holds?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Moreover, as we were saying before, he grows worse from having power: he
|
|
becomes and is of necessity more jealous, more faithless, more unjust,
|
|
more friendless, more impious, than he was at first; he is the purveyor
|
|
and cherisher of every sort of vice, and the consequence is that he is
|
|
supremely miserable, and that he makes everybody else as miserable as
|
|
himself.
|
|
|
|
No man of any sense will dispute your words.
|
|
|
|
Come then, I said, and as the general umpire in theatrical contests
|
|
proclaims the result, do you also decide who in your opinion is first
|
|
in the scale of happiness, and who second, and in what order the others
|
|
follow: there are five of them in all--they are the royal, timocratical,
|
|
oligarchical, democratical, tyrannical.
|
|
|
|
The decision will be easily given, he replied; they shall be choruses
|
|
coming on the stage, and I must judge them in the order in which they
|
|
enter, by the criterion of virtue and vice, happiness and misery.
|
|
|
|
Need we hire a herald, or shall I announce, that the son of Ariston (the
|
|
best) has decided that the best and justest is also the happiest, and
|
|
that this is he who is the most royal man and king over himself; and
|
|
that the worst and most unjust man is also the most miserable, and that
|
|
this is he who being the greatest tyrant of himself is also the greatest
|
|
tyrant of his State?
|
|
|
|
Make the proclamation yourself, he said.
|
|
|
|
And shall I add, 'whether seen or unseen by gods and men'?
|
|
|
|
Let the words be added.
|
|
|
|
Then this, I said, will be our first proof; and there is another, which
|
|
may also have some weight.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The second proof is derived from the nature of the soul: seeing that
|
|
the individual soul, like the State, has been divided by us into three
|
|
principles, the division may, I think, furnish a new demonstration.
|
|
|
|
Of what nature?
|
|
|
|
It seems to me that to these three principles three pleasures
|
|
correspond; also three desires and governing powers.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
There is one principle with which, as we were saying, a man learns,
|
|
another with which he is angry; the third, having many forms, has no
|
|
special name, but is denoted by the general term appetitive, from
|
|
the extraordinary strength and vehemence of the desires of eating and
|
|
drinking and the other sensual appetites which are the main elements of
|
|
it; also money-loving, because such desires are generally satisfied by
|
|
the help of money.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he said.
|
|
|
|
If we were to say that the loves and pleasures of this third part were
|
|
concerned with gain, we should then be able to fall back on a single
|
|
notion; and might truly and intelligibly describe this part of the soul
|
|
as loving gain or money.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you.
|
|
|
|
Again, is not the passionate element wholly set on ruling and conquering
|
|
and getting fame?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Suppose we call it the contentious or ambitious--would the term be
|
|
suitable?
|
|
|
|
Extremely suitable.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, every one sees that the principle of knowledge is
|
|
wholly directed to the truth, and cares less than either of the others
|
|
for gain or fame.
|
|
|
|
Far less.
|
|
|
|
'Lover of wisdom,' 'lover of knowledge,' are titles which we may fitly
|
|
apply to that part of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
One principle prevails in the souls of one class of men, another in
|
|
others, as may happen?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then we may begin by assuming that there are three classes of
|
|
men--lovers of wisdom, lovers of honour, lovers of gain?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And there are three kinds of pleasure, which are their several objects?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Now, if you examine the three classes of men, and ask of them in turn
|
|
which of their lives is pleasantest, each will be found praising his
|
|
own and depreciating that of others: the money-maker will contrast the
|
|
vanity of honour or of learning if they bring no money with the solid
|
|
advantages of gold and silver?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the lover of honour--what will be his opinion? Will he not think
|
|
that the pleasure of riches is vulgar, while the pleasure of learning,
|
|
if it brings no distinction, is all smoke and nonsense to him?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And are we to suppose, I said, that the philosopher sets any value on
|
|
other pleasures in comparison with the pleasure of knowing the truth,
|
|
and in that pursuit abiding, ever learning, not so far indeed from the
|
|
heaven of pleasure? Does he not call the other pleasures necessary,
|
|
under the idea that if there were no necessity for them, he would rather
|
|
not have them?
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt of that, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Since, then, the pleasures of each class and the life of each are in
|
|
dispute, and the question is not which life is more or less honourable,
|
|
or better or worse, but which is the more pleasant or painless--how
|
|
shall we know who speaks truly?
|
|
|
|
I cannot myself tell, he said.
|
|
|
|
Well, but what ought to be the criterion? Is any better than experience
|
|
and wisdom and reason?
|
|
|
|
There cannot be a better, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, reflect. Of the three individuals, which has the greatest
|
|
experience of all the pleasures which we enumerated? Has the lover of
|
|
gain, in learning the nature of essential truth, greater experience of
|
|
the pleasure of knowledge than the philosopher has of the pleasure of
|
|
gain?
|
|
|
|
The philosopher, he replied, has greatly the advantage; for he has
|
|
of necessity always known the taste of the other pleasures from his
|
|
childhood upwards: but the lover of gain in all his experience has not
|
|
of necessity tasted--or, I should rather say, even had he desired, could
|
|
hardly have tasted--the sweetness of learning and knowing truth.
|
|
|
|
Then the lover of wisdom has a great advantage over the lover of gain,
|
|
for he has a double experience?
|
|
|
|
Yes, very great.
|
|
|
|
Again, has he greater experience of the pleasures of honour, or the
|
|
lover of honour of the pleasures of wisdom?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, all three are honoured in proportion as they attain their
|
|
object; for the rich man and the brave man and the wise man alike have
|
|
their crowd of admirers, and as they all receive honour they all have
|
|
experience of the pleasures of honour; but the delight which is to be
|
|
found in the knowledge of true being is known to the philosopher only.
|
|
|
|
His experience, then, will enable him to judge better than any one?
|
|
|
|
Far better.
|
|
|
|
And he is the only one who has wisdom as well as experience?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Further, the very faculty which is the instrument of judgment is not
|
|
possessed by the covetous or ambitious man, but only by the philosopher?
|
|
|
|
What faculty?
|
|
|
|
Reason, with whom, as we were saying, the decision ought to rest.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And reasoning is peculiarly his instrument?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
If wealth and gain were the criterion, then the praise or blame of the
|
|
lover of gain would surely be the most trustworthy?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Or if honour or victory or courage, in that case the judgment of the
|
|
ambitious or pugnacious would be the truest?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
But since experience and wisdom and reason are the judges--
|
|
|
|
The only inference possible, he replied, is that pleasures which are
|
|
approved by the lover of wisdom and reason are the truest.
|
|
|
|
And so we arrive at the result, that the pleasure of the intelligent
|
|
part of the soul is the pleasantest of the three, and that he of us in
|
|
whom this is the ruling principle has the pleasantest life.
|
|
|
|
Unquestionably, he said, the wise man speaks with authority when he
|
|
approves of his own life.
|
|
|
|
And what does the judge affirm to be the life which is next, and the
|
|
pleasure which is next?
|
|
|
|
Clearly that of the soldier and lover of honour; who is nearer to
|
|
himself than the money-maker.
|
|
|
|
Last comes the lover of gain?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Twice in succession, then, has the just man overthrown the unjust in
|
|
this conflict; and now comes the third trial, which is dedicated to
|
|
Olympian Zeus the saviour: a sage whispers in my ear that no pleasure
|
|
except that of the wise is quite true and pure--all others are a shadow
|
|
only; and surely this will prove the greatest and most decisive of
|
|
falls?
|
|
|
|
Yes, the greatest; but will you explain yourself?
|
|
|
|
I will work out the subject and you shall answer my questions.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
Say, then, is not pleasure opposed to pain?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And there is a neutral state which is neither pleasure nor pain?
|
|
|
|
There is.
|
|
|
|
A state which is intermediate, and a sort of repose of the soul about
|
|
either--that is what you mean?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
You remember what people say when they are sick?
|
|
|
|
What do they say?
|
|
|
|
That after all nothing is pleasanter than health. But then they never
|
|
knew this to be the greatest of pleasures until they were ill.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I know, he said.
|
|
|
|
And when persons are suffering from acute pain, you must have heard them
|
|
say that there is nothing pleasanter than to get rid of their pain?
|
|
|
|
I have.
|
|
|
|
And there are many other cases of suffering in which the mere rest and
|
|
cessation of pain, and not any positive enjoyment, is extolled by them
|
|
as the greatest pleasure?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; at the time they are pleased and well content to be at
|
|
rest.
|
|
|
|
Again, when pleasure ceases, that sort of rest or cessation will be
|
|
painful?
|
|
|
|
Doubtless, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then the intermediate state of rest will be pleasure and will also be
|
|
pain?
|
|
|
|
So it would seem.
|
|
|
|
But can that which is neither become both?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
And both pleasure and pain are motions of the soul, are they not?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But that which is neither was just now shown to be rest and not motion,
|
|
and in a mean between them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
How, then, can we be right in supposing that the absence of pain is
|
|
pleasure, or that the absence of pleasure is pain?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
This then is an appearance only and not a reality; that is to say, the
|
|
rest is pleasure at the moment and in comparison of what is painful,
|
|
and painful in comparison of what is pleasant; but all these
|
|
representations, when tried by the test of true pleasure, are not real
|
|
but a sort of imposition?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
Look at the other class of pleasures which have no antecedent pains and
|
|
you will no longer suppose, as you perhaps may at present, that pleasure
|
|
is only the cessation of pain, or pain of pleasure.
|
|
|
|
What are they, he said, and where shall I find them?
|
|
|
|
There are many of them: take as an example the pleasures of smell, which
|
|
are very great and have no antecedent pains; they come in a moment, and
|
|
when they depart leave no pain behind them.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Let us not, then, be induced to believe that pure pleasure is the
|
|
cessation of pain, or pain of pleasure.
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
Still, the more numerous and violent pleasures which reach the soul
|
|
through the body are generally of this sort--they are reliefs of pain.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And the anticipations of future pleasures and pains are of a like
|
|
nature?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Shall I give you an illustration of them?
|
|
|
|
Let me hear.
|
|
|
|
You would allow, I said, that there is in nature an upper and lower and
|
|
middle region?
|
|
|
|
I should.
|
|
|
|
And if a person were to go from the lower to the middle region, would
|
|
he not imagine that he is going up; and he who is standing in the middle
|
|
and sees whence he has come, would imagine that he is already in the
|
|
upper region, if he has never seen the true upper world?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said; how can he think otherwise?
|
|
|
|
But if he were taken back again he would imagine, and truly imagine,
|
|
that he was descending?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
All that would arise out of his ignorance of the true upper and middle
|
|
and lower regions?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then can you wonder that persons who are inexperienced in the truth, as
|
|
they have wrong ideas about many other things, should also have wrong
|
|
ideas about pleasure and pain and the intermediate state; so that when
|
|
they are only being drawn towards the painful they feel pain and think
|
|
the pain which they experience to be real, and in like manner, when
|
|
drawn away from pain to the neutral or intermediate state, they firmly
|
|
believe that they have reached the goal of satiety and pleasure; they,
|
|
not knowing pleasure, err in contrasting pain with the absence of pain,
|
|
which is like contrasting black with grey instead of white--can you
|
|
wonder, I say, at this?
|
|
|
|
No, indeed; I should be much more disposed to wonder at the opposite.
|
|
|
|
Look at the matter thus:--Hunger, thirst, and the like, are inanitions
|
|
of the bodily state?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And ignorance and folly are inanitions of the soul?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And food and wisdom are the corresponding satisfactions of either?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is the satisfaction derived from that which has less or from that
|
|
which has more existence the truer?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, from that which has more.
|
|
|
|
What classes of things have a greater share of pure existence in your
|
|
judgment--those of which food and drink and condiments and all kinds of
|
|
sustenance are examples, or the class which contains true opinion
|
|
and knowledge and mind and all the different kinds of virtue? Put
|
|
the question in this way:--Which has a more pure being--that which is
|
|
concerned with the invariable, the immortal, and the true, and is of
|
|
such a nature, and is found in such natures; or that which is concerned
|
|
with and found in the variable and mortal, and is itself variable and
|
|
mortal?
|
|
|
|
Far purer, he replied, is the being of that which is concerned with the
|
|
invariable.
|
|
|
|
And does the essence of the invariable partake of knowledge in the same
|
|
degree as of essence?
|
|
|
|
Yes, of knowledge in the same degree.
|
|
|
|
And of truth in the same degree?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And, conversely, that which has less of truth will also have less of
|
|
essence?
|
|
|
|
Necessarily.
|
|
|
|
Then, in general, those kinds of things which are in the service of the
|
|
body have less of truth and essence than those which are in the service
|
|
of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Far less.
|
|
|
|
And has not the body itself less of truth and essence than the soul?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
What is filled with more real existence, and actually has a more real
|
|
existence, is more really filled than that which is filled with less
|
|
real existence and is less real?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And if there be a pleasure in being filled with that which is according
|
|
to nature, that which is more really filled with more real being
|
|
will more really and truly enjoy true pleasure; whereas that which
|
|
participates in less real being will be less truly and surely satisfied,
|
|
and will participate in an illusory and less real pleasure?
|
|
|
|
Unquestionably.
|
|
|
|
Those then who know not wisdom and virtue, and are always busy with
|
|
gluttony and sensuality, go down and up again as far as the mean; and
|
|
in this region they move at random throughout life, but they never pass
|
|
into the true upper world; thither they neither look, nor do they ever
|
|
find their way, neither are they truly filled with true being, nor do
|
|
they taste of pure and abiding pleasure. Like cattle, with their eyes
|
|
always looking down and their heads stooping to the earth, that is,
|
|
to the dining-table, they fatten and feed and breed, and, in their
|
|
excessive love of these delights, they kick and butt at one another with
|
|
horns and hoofs which are made of iron; and they kill one another by
|
|
reason of their insatiable lust. For they fill themselves with that
|
|
which is not substantial, and the part of themselves which they fill is
|
|
also unsubstantial and incontinent.
|
|
|
|
Verily, Socrates, said Glaucon, you describe the life of the many like
|
|
an oracle.
|
|
|
|
Their pleasures are mixed with pains--how can they be otherwise? For
|
|
they are mere shadows and pictures of the true, and are coloured by
|
|
contrast, which exaggerates both light and shade, and so they implant
|
|
in the minds of fools insane desires of themselves; and they are fought
|
|
about as Stesichorus says that the Greeks fought about the shadow of
|
|
Helen at Troy in ignorance of the truth.
|
|
|
|
Something of that sort must inevitably happen.
|
|
|
|
And must not the like happen with the spirited or passionate element
|
|
of the soul? Will not the passionate man who carries his passion into
|
|
action, be in the like case, whether he is envious and ambitious, or
|
|
violent and contentious, or angry and discontented, if he be seeking
|
|
to attain honour and victory and the satisfaction of his anger without
|
|
reason or sense?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the same will happen with the spirited element also.
|
|
|
|
Then may we not confidently assert that the lovers of money and honour,
|
|
when they seek their pleasures under the guidance and in the company
|
|
of reason and knowledge, and pursue after and win the pleasures which
|
|
wisdom shows them, will also have the truest pleasures in the highest
|
|
degree which is attainable to them, inasmuch as they follow truth; and
|
|
they will have the pleasures which are natural to them, if that which is
|
|
best for each one is also most natural to him?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly; the best is the most natural.
|
|
|
|
And when the whole soul follows the philosophical principle, and there
|
|
is no division, the several parts are just, and do each of them their
|
|
own business, and enjoy severally the best and truest pleasures of which
|
|
they are capable?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But when either of the two other principles prevails, it fails in
|
|
attaining its own pleasure, and compels the rest to pursue after a
|
|
pleasure which is a shadow only and which is not their own?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the greater the interval which separates them from philosophy and
|
|
reason, the more strange and illusive will be the pleasure?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And is not that farthest from reason which is at the greatest distance
|
|
from law and order?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the lustful and tyrannical desires are, as we saw, at the greatest
|
|
distance? Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the royal and orderly desires are nearest?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then the tyrant will live at the greatest distance from true or natural
|
|
pleasure, and the king at the least?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But if so, the tyrant will live most unpleasantly, and the king most
|
|
pleasantly?
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
Would you know the measure of the interval which separates them?
|
|
|
|
Will you tell me?
|
|
|
|
There appear to be three pleasures, one genuine and two spurious: now
|
|
the transgression of the tyrant reaches a point beyond the spurious; he
|
|
has run away from the region of law and reason, and taken up his abode
|
|
with certain slave pleasures which are his satellites, and the measure
|
|
of his inferiority can only be expressed in a figure.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I assume, I said, that the tyrant is in the third place from the
|
|
oligarch; the democrat was in the middle?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And if there is truth in what has preceded, he will be wedded to an
|
|
image of pleasure which is thrice removed as to truth from the pleasure
|
|
of the oligarch?
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
And the oligarch is third from the royal; since we count as one royal
|
|
and aristocratical?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he is third.
|
|
|
|
Then the tyrant is removed from true pleasure by the space of a number
|
|
which is three times three?
|
|
|
|
Manifestly.
|
|
|
|
The shadow then of tyrannical pleasure determined by the number of
|
|
length will be a plane figure.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if you raise the power and make the plane a solid, there is no
|
|
difficulty in seeing how vast is the interval by which the tyrant is
|
|
parted from the king.
|
|
|
|
Yes; the arithmetician will easily do the sum.
|
|
|
|
Or if some person begins at the other end and measures the interval by
|
|
which the king is parted from the tyrant in truth of pleasure, he will
|
|
find him, when the multiplication is completed, living 729 times more
|
|
pleasantly, and the tyrant more painfully by this same interval.
|
|
|
|
What a wonderful calculation! And how enormous is the distance which
|
|
separates the just from the unjust in regard to pleasure and pain!
|
|
|
|
Yet a true calculation, I said, and a number which nearly concerns human
|
|
life, if human beings are concerned with days and nights and months and
|
|
years. (729 NEARLY equals the number of days and nights in the year.)
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, human life is certainly concerned with them.
|
|
|
|
Then if the good and just man be thus superior in pleasure to the evil
|
|
and unjust, his superiority will be infinitely greater in propriety of
|
|
life and in beauty and virtue?
|
|
|
|
Immeasurably greater.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and now having arrived at this stage of the argument, we
|
|
may revert to the words which brought us hither: Was not some one saying
|
|
that injustice was a gain to the perfectly unjust who was reputed to be
|
|
just?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was said.
|
|
|
|
Now then, having determined the power and quality of justice and
|
|
injustice, let us have a little conversation with him.
|
|
|
|
What shall we say to him?
|
|
|
|
Let us make an image of the soul, that he may have his own words
|
|
presented before his eyes.
|
|
|
|
Of what sort?
|
|
|
|
An ideal image of the soul, like the composite creations of ancient
|
|
mythology, such as the Chimera or Scylla or Cerberus, and there are many
|
|
others in which two or more different natures are said to grow into one.
|
|
|
|
There are said of have been such unions.
|
|
|
|
Then do you now model the form of a multitudinous, many-headed monster,
|
|
having a ring of heads of all manner of beasts, tame and wild, which he
|
|
is able to generate and metamorphose at will.
|
|
|
|
You suppose marvellous powers in the artist; but, as language is more
|
|
pliable than wax or any similar substance, let there be such a model as
|
|
you propose.
|
|
|
|
Suppose now that you make a second form as of a lion, and a third of a
|
|
man, the second smaller than the first, and the third smaller than the
|
|
second.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is an easier task; and I have made them as you say.
|
|
|
|
And now join them, and let the three grow into one.
|
|
|
|
That has been accomplished.
|
|
|
|
Next fashion the outside of them into a single image, as of a man, so
|
|
that he who is not able to look within, and sees only the outer hull,
|
|
may believe the beast to be a single human creature.
|
|
|
|
I have done so, he said.
|
|
|
|
And now, to him who maintains that it is profitable for the human
|
|
creature to be unjust, and unprofitable to be just, let us reply
|
|
that, if he be right, it is profitable for this creature to feast
|
|
the multitudinous monster and strengthen the lion and the lion-like
|
|
qualities, but to starve and weaken the man, who is consequently liable
|
|
to be dragged about at the mercy of either of the other two; and he is
|
|
not to attempt to familiarize or harmonize them with one another--he
|
|
ought rather to suffer them to fight and bite and devour one another.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; that is what the approver of injustice says.
|
|
|
|
To him the supporter of justice makes answer that he should ever so
|
|
speak and act as to give the man within him in some way or other the
|
|
most complete mastery over the entire human creature. He should watch
|
|
over the many-headed monster like a good husbandman, fostering and
|
|
cultivating the gentle qualities, and preventing the wild ones from
|
|
growing; he should be making the lion-heart his ally, and in common care
|
|
of them all should be uniting the several parts with one another and
|
|
with himself.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is quite what the maintainer of justice say.
|
|
|
|
And so from every point of view, whether of pleasure, honour, or
|
|
advantage, the approver of justice is right and speaks the truth, and
|
|
the disapprover is wrong and false and ignorant?
|
|
|
|
Yes, from every point of view.
|
|
|
|
Come, now, and let us gently reason with the unjust, who is not
|
|
intentionally in error. 'Sweet Sir,' we will say to him, 'what think
|
|
you of things esteemed noble and ignoble? Is not the noble that which
|
|
subjects the beast to the man, or rather to the god in man; and the
|
|
ignoble that which subjects the man to the beast?' He can hardly avoid
|
|
saying Yes--can he now?
|
|
|
|
Not if he has any regard for my opinion.
|
|
|
|
But, if he agree so far, we may ask him to answer another question:
|
|
'Then how would a man profit if he received gold and silver on the
|
|
condition that he was to enslave the noblest part of him to the worst?
|
|
Who can imagine that a man who sold his son or daughter into slavery for
|
|
money, especially if he sold them into the hands of fierce and evil men,
|
|
would be the gainer, however large might be the sum which he
|
|
received? And will any one say that he is not a miserable caitiff who
|
|
remorselessly sells his own divine being to that which is most godless
|
|
and detestable? Eriphyle took the necklace as the price of her husband's
|
|
life, but he is taking a bribe in order to compass a worse ruin.'
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Glaucon, far worse--I will answer for him.
|
|
|
|
Has not the intemperate been censured of old, because in him the huge
|
|
multiform monster is allowed to be too much at large?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And men are blamed for pride and bad temper when the lion and serpent
|
|
element in them disproportionately grows and gains strength?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And luxury and softness are blamed, because they relax and weaken this
|
|
same creature, and make a coward of him?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And is not a man reproached for flattery and meanness who subordinates
|
|
the spirited animal to the unruly monster, and, for the sake of money,
|
|
of which he can never have enough, habituates him in the days of his
|
|
youth to be trampled in the mire, and from being a lion to become a
|
|
monkey?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And why are mean employments and manual arts a reproach? Only because
|
|
they imply a natural weakness of the higher principle; the individual is
|
|
unable to control the creatures within him, but has to court them, and
|
|
his great study is how to flatter them.
|
|
|
|
Such appears to be the reason.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, being desirous of placing him under a rule like that of
|
|
the best, we say that he ought to be the servant of the best, in whom
|
|
the Divine rules; not, as Thrasymachus supposed, to the injury of the
|
|
servant, but because every one had better be ruled by divine wisdom
|
|
dwelling within him; or, if this be impossible, then by an external
|
|
authority, in order that we may be all, as far as possible, under the
|
|
same government, friends and equals.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And this is clearly seen to be the intention of the law, which is the
|
|
ally of the whole city; and is seen also in the authority which we
|
|
exercise over children, and the refusal to let them be free until we
|
|
have established in them a principle analogous to the constitution of
|
|
a state, and by cultivation of this higher element have set up in their
|
|
hearts a guardian and ruler like our own, and when this is done they may
|
|
go their ways.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the purpose of the law is manifest.
|
|
|
|
From what point of view, then, and on what ground can we say that a man
|
|
is profited by injustice or intemperance or other baseness, which will
|
|
make him a worse man, even though he acquire money or power by his
|
|
wickedness?
|
|
|
|
From no point of view at all.
|
|
|
|
What shall he profit, if his injustice be undetected and unpunished?
|
|
He who is undetected only gets worse, whereas he who is detected and
|
|
punished has the brutal part of his nature silenced and humanized; the
|
|
gentler element in him is liberated, and his whole soul is perfected and
|
|
ennobled by the acquirement of justice and temperance and wisdom, more
|
|
than the body ever is by receiving gifts of beauty, strength and health,
|
|
in proportion as the soul is more honourable than the body.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
To this nobler purpose the man of understanding will devote the energies
|
|
of his life. And in the first place, he will honour studies which
|
|
impress these qualities on his soul and will disregard others?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the next place, he will regulate his bodily habit and training, and
|
|
so far will he be from yielding to brutal and irrational pleasures, that
|
|
he will regard even health as quite a secondary matter; his first object
|
|
will be not that he may be fair or strong or well, unless he is likely
|
|
thereby to gain temperance, but he will always desire so to attemper the
|
|
body as to preserve the harmony of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Certainly he will, if he has true music in him.
|
|
|
|
And in the acquisition of wealth there is a principle of order and
|
|
harmony which he will also observe; he will not allow himself to be
|
|
dazzled by the foolish applause of the world, and heap up riches to his
|
|
own infinite harm?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
He will look at the city which is within him, and take heed that no
|
|
disorder occur in it, such as might arise either from superfluity or
|
|
from want; and upon this principle he will regulate his property and
|
|
gain or spend according to his means.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And, for the same reason, he will gladly accept and enjoy such honours
|
|
as he deems likely to make him a better man; but those, whether private
|
|
or public, which are likely to disorder his life, he will avoid?
|
|
|
|
Then, if that is his motive, he will not be a statesman.
|
|
|
|
By the dog of Egypt, he will! in the city which is his own he certainly
|
|
will, though in the land of his birth perhaps not, unless he have a
|
|
divine call.
|
|
|
|
I understand; you mean that he will be a ruler in the city of which we
|
|
are the founders, and which exists in idea only; for I do not believe
|
|
that there is such an one anywhere on earth?
|
|
|
|
In heaven, I replied, there is laid up a pattern of it, methinks, which
|
|
he who desires may behold, and beholding, may set his own house in
|
|
order. But whether such an one exists, or ever will exist in fact, is no
|
|
matter; for he will live after the manner of that city, having nothing
|
|
to do with any other.
|
|
|
|
I think so, he said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK X.
|
|
|
|
Of the many excellences which I perceive in the order of our State,
|
|
there is none which upon reflection pleases me better than the rule
|
|
about poetry.
|
|
|
|
To what do you refer?
|
|
|
|
To the rejection of imitative poetry, which certainly ought not to be
|
|
received; as I see far more clearly now that the parts of the soul have
|
|
been distinguished.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Speaking in confidence, for I should not like to have my words repeated
|
|
to the tragedians and the rest of the imitative tribe--but I do not
|
|
mind saying to you, that all poetical imitations are ruinous to the
|
|
understanding of the hearers, and that the knowledge of their true
|
|
nature is the only antidote to them.
|
|
|
|
Explain the purport of your remark.
|
|
|
|
Well, I will tell you, although I have always from my earliest youth had
|
|
an awe and love of Homer, which even now makes the words falter on
|
|
my lips, for he is the great captain and teacher of the whole of that
|
|
charming tragic company; but a man is not to be reverenced more than the
|
|
truth, and therefore I will speak out.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Listen to me then, or rather, answer me.
|
|
|
|
Put your question.
|
|
|
|
Can you tell me what imitation is? for I really do not know.
|
|
|
|
A likely thing, then, that I should know.
|
|
|
|
Why not? for the duller eye may often see a thing sooner than the
|
|
keener.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said; but in your presence, even if I had any faint
|
|
notion, I could not muster courage to utter it. Will you enquire
|
|
yourself?
|
|
|
|
Well then, shall we begin the enquiry in our usual manner: Whenever a
|
|
number of individuals have a common name, we assume them to have also a
|
|
corresponding idea or form:--do you understand me?
|
|
|
|
I do.
|
|
|
|
Let us take any common instance; there are beds and tables in the
|
|
world--plenty of them, are there not?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But there are only two ideas or forms of them--one the idea of a bed,
|
|
the other of a table.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the maker of either of them makes a bed or he makes a table for our
|
|
use, in accordance with the idea--that is our way of speaking in this
|
|
and similar instances--but no artificer makes the ideas themselves: how
|
|
could he?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And there is another artist,--I should like to know what you would say
|
|
of him.
|
|
|
|
Who is he?
|
|
|
|
One who is the maker of all the works of all other workmen.
|
|
|
|
What an extraordinary man!
|
|
|
|
Wait a little, and there will be more reason for your saying so. For
|
|
this is he who is able to make not only vessels of every kind, but
|
|
plants and animals, himself and all other things--the earth and heaven,
|
|
and the things which are in heaven or under the earth; he makes the gods
|
|
also.
|
|
|
|
He must be a wizard and no mistake.
|
|
|
|
Oh! you are incredulous, are you? Do you mean that there is no such
|
|
maker or creator, or that in one sense there might be a maker of all
|
|
these things but in another not? Do you see that there is a way in which
|
|
you could make them all yourself?
|
|
|
|
What way?
|
|
|
|
An easy way enough; or rather, there are many ways in which the feat
|
|
might be quickly and easily accomplished, none quicker than that of
|
|
turning a mirror round and round--you would soon enough make the sun and
|
|
the heavens, and the earth and yourself, and other animals and plants,
|
|
and all the other things of which we were just now speaking, in the
|
|
mirror.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; but they would be appearances only.
|
|
|
|
Very good, I said, you are coming to the point now. And the painter too
|
|
is, as I conceive, just such another--a creator of appearances, is he
|
|
not?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
But then I suppose you will say that what he creates is untrue. And yet
|
|
there is a sense in which the painter also creates a bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, but not a real bed.
|
|
|
|
And what of the maker of the bed? were you not saying that he too makes,
|
|
not the idea which, according to our view, is the essence of the bed,
|
|
but only a particular bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I did.
|
|
|
|
Then if he does not make that which exists he cannot make true
|
|
existence, but only some semblance of existence; and if any one were to
|
|
say that the work of the maker of the bed, or of any other workman, has
|
|
real existence, he could hardly be supposed to be speaking the truth.
|
|
|
|
At any rate, he replied, philosophers would say that he was not speaking
|
|
the truth.
|
|
|
|
No wonder, then, that his work too is an indistinct expression of truth.
|
|
|
|
No wonder.
|
|
|
|
Suppose now that by the light of the examples just offered we enquire
|
|
who this imitator is?
|
|
|
|
If you please.
|
|
|
|
Well then, here are three beds: one existing in nature, which is made by
|
|
God, as I think that we may say--for no one else can be the maker?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
There is another which is the work of the carpenter?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the work of the painter is a third?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Beds, then, are of three kinds, and there are three artists who
|
|
superintend them: God, the maker of the bed, and the painter?
|
|
|
|
Yes, there are three of them.
|
|
|
|
God, whether from choice or from necessity, made one bed in nature and
|
|
one only; two or more such ideal beds neither ever have been nor ever
|
|
will be made by God.
|
|
|
|
Why is that?
|
|
|
|
Because even if He had made but two, a third would still appear behind
|
|
them which both of them would have for their idea, and that would be the
|
|
ideal bed and not the two others.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
God knew this, and He desired to be the real maker of a real bed, not
|
|
a particular maker of a particular bed, and therefore He created a bed
|
|
which is essentially and by nature one only.
|
|
|
|
So we believe.
|
|
|
|
Shall we, then, speak of Him as the natural author or maker of the bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied; inasmuch as by the natural process of creation He is
|
|
the author of this and of all other things.
|
|
|
|
And what shall we say of the carpenter--is not he also the maker of the
|
|
bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But would you call the painter a creator and maker?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Yet if he is not the maker, what is he in relation to the bed?
|
|
|
|
I think, he said, that we may fairly designate him as the imitator of
|
|
that which the others make.
|
|
|
|
Good, I said; then you call him who is third in the descent from nature
|
|
an imitator?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the tragic poet is an imitator, and therefore, like all other
|
|
imitators, he is thrice removed from the king and from the truth?
|
|
|
|
That appears to be so.
|
|
|
|
Then about the imitator we are agreed. And what about the painter?--I
|
|
would like to know whether he may be thought to imitate that which
|
|
originally exists in nature, or only the creations of artists?
|
|
|
|
The latter.
|
|
|
|
As they are or as they appear? you have still to determine this.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean, that you may look at a bed from different points of view,
|
|
obliquely or directly or from any other point of view, and the bed will
|
|
appear different, but there is no difference in reality. And the same of
|
|
all things.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the difference is only apparent.
|
|
|
|
Now let me ask you another question: Which is the art of painting
|
|
designed to be--an imitation of things as they are, or as they
|
|
appear--of appearance or of reality?
|
|
|
|
Of appearance.
|
|
|
|
Then the imitator, I said, is a long way off the truth, and can do all
|
|
things because he lightly touches on a small part of them, and that part
|
|
an image. For example: A painter will paint a cobbler, carpenter, or
|
|
any other artist, though he knows nothing of their arts; and, if he is
|
|
a good artist, he may deceive children or simple persons, when he shows
|
|
them his picture of a carpenter from a distance, and they will fancy
|
|
that they are looking at a real carpenter.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And whenever any one informs us that he has found a man who knows all
|
|
the arts, and all things else that anybody knows, and every single thing
|
|
with a higher degree of accuracy than any other man--whoever tells us
|
|
this, I think that we can only imagine him to be a simple creature who
|
|
is likely to have been deceived by some wizard or actor whom he met, and
|
|
whom he thought all-knowing, because he himself was unable to analyse
|
|
the nature of knowledge and ignorance and imitation.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And so, when we hear persons saying that the tragedians, and Homer, who
|
|
is at their head, know all the arts and all things human, virtue as well
|
|
as vice, and divine things too, for that the good poet cannot compose
|
|
well unless he knows his subject, and that he who has not this knowledge
|
|
can never be a poet, we ought to consider whether here also there may
|
|
not be a similar illusion. Perhaps they may have come across imitators
|
|
and been deceived by them; they may not have remembered when they saw
|
|
their works that these were but imitations thrice removed from the
|
|
truth, and could easily be made without any knowledge of the truth,
|
|
because they are appearances only and not realities? Or, after all, they
|
|
may be in the right, and poets do really know the things about which
|
|
they seem to the many to speak so well?
|
|
|
|
The question, he said, should by all means be considered.
|
|
|
|
Now do you suppose that if a person were able to make the original as
|
|
well as the image, he would seriously devote himself to the image-making
|
|
branch? Would he allow imitation to be the ruling principle of his life,
|
|
as if he had nothing higher in him?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
The real artist, who knew what he was imitating, would be interested in
|
|
realities and not in imitations; and would desire to leave as memorials
|
|
of himself works many and fair; and, instead of being the author of
|
|
encomiums, he would prefer to be the theme of them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that would be to him a source of much greater honour and
|
|
profit.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we must put a question to Homer; not about medicine, or
|
|
any of the arts to which his poems only incidentally refer: we are not
|
|
going to ask him, or any other poet, whether he has cured patients
|
|
like Asclepius, or left behind him a school of medicine such as the
|
|
Asclepiads were, or whether he only talks about medicine and other arts
|
|
at second-hand; but we have a right to know respecting military tactics,
|
|
politics, education, which are the chiefest and noblest subjects of his
|
|
poems, and we may fairly ask him about them. 'Friend Homer,' then we say
|
|
to him, 'if you are only in the second remove from truth in what you say
|
|
of virtue, and not in the third--not an image maker or imitator--and
|
|
if you are able to discern what pursuits make men better or worse in
|
|
private or public life, tell us what State was ever better governed by
|
|
your help? The good order of Lacedaemon is due to Lycurgus, and many
|
|
other cities great and small have been similarly benefited by others;
|
|
but who says that you have been a good legislator to them and have done
|
|
them any good? Italy and Sicily boast of Charondas, and there is Solon
|
|
who is renowned among us; but what city has anything to say about you?'
|
|
Is there any city which he might name?
|
|
|
|
I think not, said Glaucon; not even the Homerids themselves pretend that
|
|
he was a legislator.
|
|
|
|
Well, but is there any war on record which was carried on successfully
|
|
by him, or aided by his counsels, when he was alive?
|
|
|
|
There is not.
|
|
|
|
Or is there any invention of his, applicable to the arts or to human
|
|
life, such as Thales the Milesian or Anacharsis the Scythian, and other
|
|
ingenious men have conceived, which is attributed to him?
|
|
|
|
There is absolutely nothing of the kind.
|
|
|
|
But, if Homer never did any public service, was he privately a guide or
|
|
teacher of any? Had he in his lifetime friends who loved to associate
|
|
with him, and who handed down to posterity an Homeric way of life, such
|
|
as was established by Pythagoras who was so greatly beloved for his
|
|
wisdom, and whose followers are to this day quite celebrated for the
|
|
order which was named after him?
|
|
|
|
Nothing of the kind is recorded of him. For surely, Socrates,
|
|
Creophylus, the companion of Homer, that child of flesh, whose name
|
|
always makes us laugh, might be more justly ridiculed for his stupidity,
|
|
if, as is said, Homer was greatly neglected by him and others in his own
|
|
day when he was alive?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, that is the tradition. But can you imagine, Glaucon,
|
|
that if Homer had really been able to educate and improve mankind--if he
|
|
had possessed knowledge and not been a mere imitator--can you imagine,
|
|
I say, that he would not have had many followers, and been honoured and
|
|
loved by them? Protagoras of Abdera, and Prodicus of Ceos, and a host of
|
|
others, have only to whisper to their contemporaries: 'You will never be
|
|
able to manage either your own house or your own State until you appoint
|
|
us to be your ministers of education'--and this ingenious device of
|
|
theirs has such an effect in making men love them that their companions
|
|
all but carry them about on their shoulders. And is it conceivable that
|
|
the contemporaries of Homer, or again of Hesiod, would have allowed
|
|
either of them to go about as rhapsodists, if they had really been able
|
|
to make mankind virtuous? Would they not have been as unwilling to part
|
|
with them as with gold, and have compelled them to stay at home with
|
|
them? Or, if the master would not stay, then the disciples would have
|
|
followed him about everywhere, until they had got education enough?
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates, that, I think, is quite true.
|
|
|
|
Then must we not infer that all these poetical individuals, beginning
|
|
with Homer, are only imitators; they copy images of virtue and the like,
|
|
but the truth they never reach? The poet is like a painter who, as
|
|
we have already observed, will make a likeness of a cobbler though he
|
|
understands nothing of cobbling; and his picture is good enough for
|
|
those who know no more than he does, and judge only by colours and
|
|
figures.
|
|
|
|
Quite so.
|
|
|
|
In like manner the poet with his words and phrases may be said to lay on
|
|
the colours of the several arts, himself understanding their nature only
|
|
enough to imitate them; and other people, who are as ignorant as he is,
|
|
and judge only from his words, imagine that if he speaks of cobbling,
|
|
or of military tactics, or of anything else, in metre and harmony and
|
|
rhythm, he speaks very well--such is the sweet influence which melody
|
|
and rhythm by nature have. And I think that you must have observed again
|
|
and again what a poor appearance the tales of poets make when stripped
|
|
of the colours which music puts upon them, and recited in simple prose.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
They are like faces which were never really beautiful, but only
|
|
blooming; and now the bloom of youth has passed away from them?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Here is another point: The imitator or maker of the image knows nothing
|
|
of true existence; he knows appearances only. Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then let us have a clear understanding, and not be satisfied with half
|
|
an explanation.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
Of the painter we say that he will paint reins, and he will paint a bit?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the worker in leather and brass will make them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But does the painter know the right form of the bit and reins? Nay,
|
|
hardly even the workers in brass and leather who make them; only the
|
|
horseman who knows how to use them--he knows their right form.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say the same of all things?
|
|
|
|
What?
|
|
|
|
That there are three arts which are concerned with all things: one which
|
|
uses, another which makes, a third which imitates them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the excellence or beauty or truth of every structure, animate or
|
|
inanimate, and of every action of man, is relative to the use for which
|
|
nature or the artist has intended them.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then the user of them must have the greatest experience of them, and
|
|
he must indicate to the maker the good or bad qualities which develop
|
|
themselves in use; for example, the flute-player will tell the
|
|
flute-maker which of his flutes is satisfactory to the performer; he
|
|
will tell him how he ought to make them, and the other will attend to
|
|
his instructions?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
The one knows and therefore speaks with authority about the goodness and
|
|
badness of flutes, while the other, confiding in him, will do what he is
|
|
told by him?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The instrument is the same, but about the excellence or badness of it
|
|
the maker will only attain to a correct belief; and this he will gain
|
|
from him who knows, by talking to him and being compelled to hear what
|
|
he has to say, whereas the user will have knowledge?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But will the imitator have either? Will he know from use whether or no
|
|
his drawing is correct or beautiful? or will he have right opinion
|
|
from being compelled to associate with another who knows and gives him
|
|
instructions about what he should draw?
|
|
|
|
Neither.
|
|
|
|
Then he will no more have true opinion than he will have knowledge about
|
|
the goodness or badness of his imitations?
|
|
|
|
I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
The imitative artist will be in a brilliant state of intelligence about
|
|
his own creations?
|
|
|
|
Nay, very much the reverse.
|
|
|
|
And still he will go on imitating without knowing what makes a thing
|
|
good or bad, and may be expected therefore to imitate only that which
|
|
appears to be good to the ignorant multitude?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
Thus far then we are pretty well agreed that the imitator has no
|
|
knowledge worth mentioning of what he imitates. Imitation is only a kind
|
|
of play or sport, and the tragic poets, whether they write in Iambic or
|
|
in Heroic verse, are imitators in the highest degree?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And now tell me, I conjure you, has not imitation been shown by us to be
|
|
concerned with that which is thrice removed from the truth?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And what is the faculty in man to which imitation is addressed?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I will explain: The body which is large when seen near, appears small
|
|
when seen at a distance?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same object appears straight when looked at out of the water,
|
|
and crooked when in the water; and the concave becomes convex, owing to
|
|
the illusion about colours to which the sight is liable. Thus every sort
|
|
of confusion is revealed within us; and this is that weakness of the
|
|
human mind on which the art of conjuring and of deceiving by light and
|
|
shadow and other ingenious devices imposes, having an effect upon us
|
|
like magic.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the arts of measuring and numbering and weighing come to the
|
|
rescue of the human understanding--there is the beauty of them--and the
|
|
apparent greater or less, or more or heavier, no longer have the mastery
|
|
over us, but give way before calculation and measure and weight?
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And this, surely, must be the work of the calculating and rational
|
|
principle in the soul?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And when this principle measures and certifies that some things are
|
|
equal, or that some are greater or less than others, there occurs an
|
|
apparent contradiction?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But were we not saying that such a contradiction is impossible--the same
|
|
faculty cannot have contrary opinions at the same time about the same
|
|
thing?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then that part of the soul which has an opinion contrary to measure is
|
|
not the same with that which has an opinion in accordance with measure?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the better part of the soul is likely to be that which trusts to
|
|
measure and calculation?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And that which is opposed to them is one of the inferior principles of
|
|
the soul?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
This was the conclusion at which I was seeking to arrive when I said
|
|
that painting or drawing, and imitation in general, when doing their own
|
|
proper work, are far removed from truth, and the companions and friends
|
|
and associates of a principle within us which is equally removed from
|
|
reason, and that they have no true or healthy aim.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
The imitative art is an inferior who marries an inferior, and has
|
|
inferior offspring.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And is this confined to the sight only, or does it extend to the hearing
|
|
also, relating in fact to what we term poetry?
|
|
|
|
Probably the same would be true of poetry.
|
|
|
|
Do not rely, I said, on a probability derived from the analogy of
|
|
painting; but let us examine further and see whether the faculty with
|
|
which poetical imitation is concerned is good or bad.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
We may state the question thus:--Imitation imitates the actions of men,
|
|
whether voluntary or involuntary, on which, as they imagine, a good or
|
|
bad result has ensued, and they rejoice or sorrow accordingly. Is there
|
|
anything more?
|
|
|
|
No, there is nothing else.
|
|
|
|
But in all this variety of circumstances is the man at unity with
|
|
himself--or rather, as in the instance of sight there was confusion and
|
|
opposition in his opinions about the same things, so here also is there
|
|
not strife and inconsistency in his life? Though I need hardly raise the
|
|
question again, for I remember that all this has been already admitted;
|
|
and the soul has been acknowledged by us to be full of these and ten
|
|
thousand similar oppositions occurring at the same moment?
|
|
|
|
And we were right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, thus far we were right; but there was an omission which
|
|
must now be supplied.
|
|
|
|
What was the omission?
|
|
|
|
Were we not saying that a good man, who has the misfortune to lose his
|
|
son or anything else which is most dear to him, will bear the loss with
|
|
more equanimity than another?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But will he have no sorrow, or shall we say that although he cannot help
|
|
sorrowing, he will moderate his sorrow?
|
|
|
|
The latter, he said, is the truer statement.
|
|
|
|
Tell me: will he be more likely to struggle and hold out against his
|
|
sorrow when he is seen by his equals, or when he is alone?
|
|
|
|
It will make a great difference whether he is seen or not.
|
|
|
|
When he is by himself he will not mind saying or doing many things which
|
|
he would be ashamed of any one hearing or seeing him do?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
There is a principle of law and reason in him which bids him resist, as
|
|
well as a feeling of his misfortune which is forcing him to indulge his
|
|
sorrow?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But when a man is drawn in two opposite directions, to and from the same
|
|
object, this, as we affirm, necessarily implies two distinct principles
|
|
in him?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
One of them is ready to follow the guidance of the law?
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
The law would say that to be patient under suffering is best, and that
|
|
we should not give way to impatience, as there is no knowing whether
|
|
such things are good or evil; and nothing is gained by impatience; also,
|
|
because no human thing is of serious importance, and grief stands in the
|
|
way of that which at the moment is most required.
|
|
|
|
What is most required? he asked.
|
|
|
|
That we should take counsel about what has happened, and when the dice
|
|
have been thrown order our affairs in the way which reason deems best;
|
|
not, like children who have had a fall, keeping hold of the part struck
|
|
and wasting time in setting up a howl, but always accustoming the soul
|
|
forthwith to apply a remedy, raising up that which is sickly and fallen,
|
|
banishing the cry of sorrow by the healing art.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the true way of meeting the attacks of fortune.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and the higher principle is ready to follow this suggestion
|
|
of reason?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the other principle, which inclines us to recollection of our
|
|
troubles and to lamentation, and can never have enough of them, we may
|
|
call irrational, useless, and cowardly?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, we may.
|
|
|
|
And does not the latter--I mean the rebellious principle--furnish a
|
|
great variety of materials for imitation? Whereas the wise and calm
|
|
temperament, being always nearly equable, is not easy to imitate or
|
|
to appreciate when imitated, especially at a public festival when a
|
|
promiscuous crowd is assembled in a theatre. For the feeling represented
|
|
is one to which they are strangers.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then the imitative poet who aims at being popular is not by nature made,
|
|
nor is his art intended, to please or to affect the rational principle
|
|
in the soul; but he will prefer the passionate and fitful temper, which
|
|
is easily imitated?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And now we may fairly take him and place him by the side of the painter,
|
|
for he is like him in two ways: first, inasmuch as his creations have an
|
|
inferior degree of truth--in this, I say, he is like him; and he is
|
|
also like him in being concerned with an inferior part of the soul; and
|
|
therefore we shall be right in refusing to admit him into a well-ordered
|
|
State, because he awakens and nourishes and strengthens the feelings
|
|
and impairs the reason. As in a city when the evil are permitted to have
|
|
authority and the good are put out of the way, so in the soul of man,
|
|
as we maintain, the imitative poet implants an evil constitution, for he
|
|
indulges the irrational nature which has no discernment of greater
|
|
and less, but thinks the same thing at one time great and at another
|
|
small--he is a manufacturer of images and is very far removed from the
|
|
truth.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But we have not yet brought forward the heaviest count in our
|
|
accusation:--the power which poetry has of harming even the good (and
|
|
there are very few who are not harmed), is surely an awful thing?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly, if the effect is what you say.
|
|
|
|
Hear and judge: The best of us, as I conceive, when we listen to a
|
|
passage of Homer, or one of the tragedians, in which he represents
|
|
some pitiful hero who is drawling out his sorrows in a long oration, or
|
|
weeping, and smiting his breast--the best of us, you know, delight in
|
|
giving way to sympathy, and are in raptures at the excellence of the
|
|
poet who stirs our feelings most.
|
|
|
|
Yes, of course I know.
|
|
|
|
But when any sorrow of our own happens to us, then you may observe that
|
|
we pride ourselves on the opposite quality--we would fain be quiet and
|
|
patient; this is the manly part, and the other which delighted us in the
|
|
recitation is now deemed to be the part of a woman.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Now can we be right in praising and admiring another who is doing that
|
|
which any one of us would abominate and be ashamed of in his own person?
|
|
|
|
No, he said, that is certainly not reasonable.
|
|
|
|
Nay, I said, quite reasonable from one point of view.
|
|
|
|
What point of view?
|
|
|
|
If you consider, I said, that when in misfortune we feel a natural
|
|
hunger and desire to relieve our sorrow by weeping and lamentation, and
|
|
that this feeling which is kept under control in our own calamities is
|
|
satisfied and delighted by the poets;--the better nature in each of
|
|
us, not having been sufficiently trained by reason or habit, allows the
|
|
sympathetic element to break loose because the sorrow is another's;
|
|
and the spectator fancies that there can be no disgrace to himself in
|
|
praising and pitying any one who comes telling him what a good man he
|
|
is, and making a fuss about his troubles; he thinks that the pleasure
|
|
is a gain, and why should he be supercilious and lose this and the poem
|
|
too? Few persons ever reflect, as I should imagine, that from the evil
|
|
of other men something of evil is communicated to themselves. And so
|
|
the feeling of sorrow which has gathered strength at the sight of the
|
|
misfortunes of others is with difficulty repressed in our own.
|
|
|
|
How very true!
|
|
|
|
And does not the same hold also of the ridiculous? There are jests which
|
|
you would be ashamed to make yourself, and yet on the comic stage, or
|
|
indeed in private, when you hear them, you are greatly amused by them,
|
|
and are not at all disgusted at their unseemliness;--the case of pity
|
|
is repeated;--there is a principle in human nature which is disposed to
|
|
raise a laugh, and this which you once restrained by reason, because you
|
|
were afraid of being thought a buffoon, is now let out again; and
|
|
having stimulated the risible faculty at the theatre, you are betrayed
|
|
unconsciously to yourself into playing the comic poet at home.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the same may be said of lust and anger and all the other affections,
|
|
of desire and pain and pleasure, which are held to be inseparable
|
|
from every action--in all of them poetry feeds and waters the passions
|
|
instead of drying them up; she lets them rule, although they ought to be
|
|
controlled, if mankind are ever to increase in happiness and virtue.
|
|
|
|
I cannot deny it.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, Glaucon, I said, whenever you meet with any of the eulogists
|
|
of Homer declaring that he has been the educator of Hellas, and that he
|
|
is profitable for education and for the ordering of human things, and
|
|
that you should take him up again and again and get to know him and
|
|
regulate your whole life according to him, we may love and honour those
|
|
who say these things--they are excellent people, as far as their lights
|
|
extend; and we are ready to acknowledge that Homer is the greatest
|
|
of poets and first of tragedy writers; but we must remain firm in our
|
|
conviction that hymns to the gods and praises of famous men are the only
|
|
poetry which ought to be admitted into our State. For if you go beyond
|
|
this and allow the honeyed muse to enter, either in epic or lyric verse,
|
|
not law and the reason of mankind, which by common consent have ever
|
|
been deemed best, but pleasure and pain will be the rulers in our State.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And now since we have reverted to the subject of poetry, let this our
|
|
defence serve to show the reasonableness of our former judgment in
|
|
sending away out of our State an art having the tendencies which we have
|
|
described; for reason constrained us. But that she may not impute to us
|
|
any harshness or want of politeness, let us tell her that there is an
|
|
ancient quarrel between philosophy and poetry; of which there are many
|
|
proofs, such as the saying of 'the yelping hound howling at her lord,'
|
|
or of one 'mighty in the vain talk of fools,' and 'the mob of sages
|
|
circumventing Zeus,' and the 'subtle thinkers who are beggars after
|
|
all'; and there are innumerable other signs of ancient enmity between
|
|
them. Notwithstanding this, let us assure our sweet friend and the
|
|
sister arts of imitation, that if she will only prove her title to exist
|
|
in a well-ordered State we shall be delighted to receive her--we are
|
|
very conscious of her charms; but we may not on that account betray the
|
|
truth. I dare say, Glaucon, that you are as much charmed by her as I am,
|
|
especially when she appears in Homer?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, I am greatly charmed.
|
|
|
|
Shall I propose, then, that she be allowed to return from exile, but
|
|
upon this condition only--that she make a defence of herself in lyrical
|
|
or some other metre?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And we may further grant to those of her defenders who are lovers of
|
|
poetry and yet not poets the permission to speak in prose on her behalf:
|
|
let them show not only that she is pleasant but also useful to States
|
|
and to human life, and we will listen in a kindly spirit; for if this
|
|
can be proved we shall surely be the gainers--I mean, if there is a use
|
|
in poetry as well as a delight?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, we shall be the gainers.
|
|
|
|
If her defence fails, then, my dear friend, like other persons who are
|
|
enamoured of something, but put a restraint upon themselves when they
|
|
think their desires are opposed to their interests, so too must we after
|
|
the manner of lovers give her up, though not without a struggle. We too
|
|
are inspired by that love of poetry which the education of noble States
|
|
has implanted in us, and therefore we would have her appear at her best
|
|
and truest; but so long as she is unable to make good her defence,
|
|
this argument of ours shall be a charm to us, which we will repeat to
|
|
ourselves while we listen to her strains; that we may not fall away into
|
|
the childish love of her which captivates the many. At all events we
|
|
are well aware that poetry being such as we have described is not to be
|
|
regarded seriously as attaining to the truth; and he who listens to her,
|
|
fearing for the safety of the city which is within him, should be on his
|
|
guard against her seductions and make our words his law.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I quite agree with you.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, my dear Glaucon, for great is the issue at stake, greater
|
|
than appears, whether a man is to be good or bad. And what will any one
|
|
be profited if under the influence of honour or money or power, aye, or
|
|
under the excitement of poetry, he neglect justice and virtue?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; I have been convinced by the argument, as I believe that
|
|
any one else would have been.
|
|
|
|
And yet no mention has been made of the greatest prizes and rewards
|
|
which await virtue.
|
|
|
|
What, are there any greater still? If there are, they must be of an
|
|
inconceivable greatness.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, what was ever great in a short time? The whole period of
|
|
three score years and ten is surely but a little thing in comparison
|
|
with eternity?
|
|
|
|
Say rather 'nothing,' he replied.
|
|
|
|
And should an immortal being seriously think of this little space rather
|
|
than of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Of the whole, certainly. But why do you ask?
|
|
|
|
Are you not aware, I said, that the soul of man is immortal and
|
|
imperishable?
|
|
|
|
He looked at me in astonishment, and said: No, by heaven: And are you
|
|
really prepared to maintain this?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, I ought to be, and you too--there is no difficulty in
|
|
proving it.
|
|
|
|
I see a great difficulty; but I should like to hear you state this
|
|
argument of which you make so light.
|
|
|
|
Listen then.
|
|
|
|
I am attending.
|
|
|
|
There is a thing which you call good and another which you call evil?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Would you agree with me in thinking that the corrupting and destroying
|
|
element is the evil, and the saving and improving element the good?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you admit that every thing has a good and also an evil; as
|
|
ophthalmia is the evil of the eyes and disease of the whole body; as
|
|
mildew is of corn, and rot of timber, or rust of copper and iron: in
|
|
everything, or in almost everything, there is an inherent evil and
|
|
disease?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And anything which is infected by any of these evils is made evil, and
|
|
at last wholly dissolves and dies?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The vice and evil which is inherent in each is the destruction of each;
|
|
and if this does not destroy them there is nothing else that will; for
|
|
good certainly will not destroy them, nor again, that which is neither
|
|
good nor evil.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
If, then, we find any nature which having this inherent corruption
|
|
cannot be dissolved or destroyed, we may be certain that of such a
|
|
nature there is no destruction?
|
|
|
|
That may be assumed.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and is there no evil which corrupts the soul?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there are all the evils which we were just now passing in
|
|
review: unrighteousness, intemperance, cowardice, ignorance.
|
|
|
|
But does any of these dissolve or destroy her?--and here do not let us
|
|
fall into the error of supposing that the unjust and foolish man, when
|
|
he is detected, perishes through his own injustice, which is an evil
|
|
of the soul. Take the analogy of the body: The evil of the body is a
|
|
disease which wastes and reduces and annihilates the body; and all the
|
|
things of which we were just now speaking come to annihilation through
|
|
their own corruption attaching to them and inhering in them and so
|
|
destroying them. Is not this true?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Consider the soul in like manner. Does the injustice or other evil which
|
|
exists in the soul waste and consume her? Do they by attaching to the
|
|
soul and inhering in her at last bring her to death, and so separate her
|
|
from the body?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And yet, I said, it is unreasonable to suppose that anything can perish
|
|
from without through affection of external evil which could not be
|
|
destroyed from within by a corruption of its own?
|
|
|
|
It is, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Consider, I said, Glaucon, that even the badness of food, whether
|
|
staleness, decomposition, or any other bad quality, when confined to
|
|
the actual food, is not supposed to destroy the body; although, if the
|
|
badness of food communicates corruption to the body, then we should say
|
|
that the body has been destroyed by a corruption of itself, which is
|
|
disease, brought on by this; but that the body, being one thing, can be
|
|
destroyed by the badness of food, which is another, and which does not
|
|
engender any natural infection--this we shall absolutely deny?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And, on the same principle, unless some bodily evil can produce an evil
|
|
of the soul, we must not suppose that the soul, which is one thing, can
|
|
be dissolved by any merely external evil which belongs to another?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there is reason in that.
|
|
|
|
Either, then, let us refute this conclusion, or, while it remains
|
|
unrefuted, let us never say that fever, or any other disease, or the
|
|
knife put to the throat, or even the cutting up of the whole body into
|
|
the minutest pieces, can destroy the soul, until she herself is proved
|
|
to become more unholy or unrighteous in consequence of these things
|
|
being done to the body; but that the soul, or anything else if not
|
|
destroyed by an internal evil, can be destroyed by an external one, is
|
|
not to be affirmed by any man.
|
|
|
|
And surely, he replied, no one will ever prove that the souls of men
|
|
become more unjust in consequence of death.
|
|
|
|
But if some one who would rather not admit the immortality of the soul
|
|
boldly denies this, and says that the dying do really become more
|
|
evil and unrighteous, then, if the speaker is right, I suppose that
|
|
injustice, like disease, must be assumed to be fatal to the unjust, and
|
|
that those who take this disorder die by the natural inherent power of
|
|
destruction which evil has, and which kills them sooner or later, but
|
|
in quite another way from that in which, at present, the wicked receive
|
|
death at the hands of others as the penalty of their deeds?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, in that case injustice, if fatal to the unjust, will not
|
|
be so very terrible to him, for he will be delivered from evil. But I
|
|
rather suspect the opposite to be the truth, and that injustice which,
|
|
if it have the power, will murder others, keeps the murderer alive--aye,
|
|
and well awake too; so far removed is her dwelling-place from being a
|
|
house of death.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; if the inherent natural vice or evil of the soul is unable
|
|
to kill or destroy her, hardly will that which is appointed to be the
|
|
destruction of some other body, destroy a soul or anything else except
|
|
that of which it was appointed to be the destruction.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that can hardly be.
|
|
|
|
But the soul which cannot be destroyed by an evil, whether inherent
|
|
or external, must exist for ever, and if existing for ever, must be
|
|
immortal?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
That is the conclusion, I said; and, if a true conclusion, then the
|
|
souls must always be the same, for if none be destroyed they will not
|
|
diminish in number. Neither will they increase, for the increase of the
|
|
immortal natures must come from something mortal, and all things would
|
|
thus end in immortality.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
But this we cannot believe--reason will not allow us--any more than we
|
|
can believe the soul, in her truest nature, to be full of variety and
|
|
difference and dissimilarity.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
The soul, I said, being, as is now proven, immortal, must be the fairest
|
|
of compositions and cannot be compounded of many elements?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Her immortality is demonstrated by the previous argument, and there are
|
|
many other proofs; but to see her as she really is, not as we now behold
|
|
her, marred by communion with the body and other miseries, you must
|
|
contemplate her with the eye of reason, in her original purity; and
|
|
then her beauty will be revealed, and justice and injustice and all the
|
|
things which we have described will be manifested more clearly. Thus
|
|
far, we have spoken the truth concerning her as she appears at present,
|
|
but we must remember also that we have seen her only in a condition
|
|
which may be compared to that of the sea-god Glaucus, whose original
|
|
image can hardly be discerned because his natural members are broken
|
|
off and crushed and damaged by the waves in all sorts of ways, and
|
|
incrustations have grown over them of seaweed and shells and stones, so
|
|
that he is more like some monster than he is to his own natural form.
|
|
And the soul which we behold is in a similar condition, disfigured by
|
|
ten thousand ills. But not there, Glaucon, not there must we look.
|
|
|
|
Where then?
|
|
|
|
At her love of wisdom. Let us see whom she affects, and what society and
|
|
converse she seeks in virtue of her near kindred with the immortal
|
|
and eternal and divine; also how different she would become if wholly
|
|
following this superior principle, and borne by a divine impulse out of
|
|
the ocean in which she now is, and disengaged from the stones and shells
|
|
and things of earth and rock which in wild variety spring up around her
|
|
because she feeds upon earth, and is overgrown by the good things of
|
|
this life as they are termed: then you would see her as she is, and know
|
|
whether she have one shape only or many, or what her nature is. Of her
|
|
affections and of the forms which she takes in this present life I think
|
|
that we have now said enough.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And thus, I said, we have fulfilled the conditions of the argument; we
|
|
have not introduced the rewards and glories of justice, which, as you
|
|
were saying, are to be found in Homer and Hesiod; but justice in her own
|
|
nature has been shown to be best for the soul in her own nature. Let a
|
|
man do what is just, whether he have the ring of Gyges or not, and even
|
|
if in addition to the ring of Gyges he put on the helmet of Hades.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And now, Glaucon, there will be no harm in further enumerating how
|
|
many and how great are the rewards which justice and the other virtues
|
|
procure to the soul from gods and men, both in life and after death.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
Will you repay me, then, what you borrowed in the argument?
|
|
|
|
What did I borrow?
|
|
|
|
The assumption that the just man should appear unjust and the unjust
|
|
just: for you were of opinion that even if the true state of the case
|
|
could not possibly escape the eyes of gods and men, still this admission
|
|
ought to be made for the sake of the argument, in order that pure
|
|
justice might be weighed against pure injustice. Do you remember?
|
|
|
|
I should be much to blame if I had forgotten.
|
|
|
|
Then, as the cause is decided, I demand on behalf of justice that the
|
|
estimation in which she is held by gods and men and which we acknowledge
|
|
to be her due should now be restored to her by us; since she has been
|
|
shown to confer reality, and not to deceive those who truly possess her,
|
|
let what has been taken from her be given back, that so she may win that
|
|
palm of appearance which is hers also, and which she gives to her own.
|
|
|
|
The demand, he said, is just.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, I said--and this is the first thing which you will
|
|
have to give back--the nature both of the just and unjust is truly known
|
|
to the gods.
|
|
|
|
Granted.
|
|
|
|
And if they are both known to them, one must be the friend and the other
|
|
the enemy of the gods, as we admitted from the beginning?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the friend of the gods may be supposed to receive from them all
|
|
things at their best, excepting only such evil as is the necessary
|
|
consequence of former sins?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then this must be our notion of the just man, that even when he is in
|
|
poverty or sickness, or any other seeming misfortune, all things will
|
|
in the end work together for good to him in life and death: for the gods
|
|
have a care of any one whose desire is to become just and to be like
|
|
God, as far as man can attain the divine likeness, by the pursuit of
|
|
virtue?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; if he is like God he will surely not be neglected by him.
|
|
|
|
And of the unjust may not the opposite be supposed?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Such, then, are the palms of victory which the gods give the just?
|
|
|
|
That is my conviction.
|
|
|
|
And what do they receive of men? Look at things as they really are, and
|
|
you will see that the clever unjust are in the case of runners, who run
|
|
well from the starting-place to the goal but not back again from the
|
|
goal: they go off at a great pace, but in the end only look foolish,
|
|
slinking away with their ears draggling on their shoulders, and without
|
|
a crown; but the true runner comes to the finish and receives the prize
|
|
and is crowned. And this is the way with the just; he who endures to the
|
|
end of every action and occasion of his entire life has a good report
|
|
and carries off the prize which men have to bestow.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And now you must allow me to repeat of the just the blessings which you
|
|
were attributing to the fortunate unjust. I shall say of them, what you
|
|
were saying of the others, that as they grow older, they become rulers
|
|
in their own city if they care to be; they marry whom they like and give
|
|
in marriage to whom they will; all that you said of the others I now say
|
|
of these. And, on the other hand, of the unjust I say that the greater
|
|
number, even though they escape in their youth, are found out at last
|
|
and look foolish at the end of their course, and when they come to be
|
|
old and miserable are flouted alike by stranger and citizen; they are
|
|
beaten and then come those things unfit for ears polite, as you truly
|
|
term them; they will be racked and have their eyes burned out, as you
|
|
were saying. And you may suppose that I have repeated the remainder of
|
|
your tale of horrors. But will you let me assume, without reciting them,
|
|
that these things are true?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, what you say is true.
|
|
|
|
These, then, are the prizes and rewards and gifts which are bestowed
|
|
upon the just by gods and men in this present life, in addition to the
|
|
other good things which justice of herself provides.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; and they are fair and lasting.
|
|
|
|
And yet, I said, all these are as nothing either in number or greatness
|
|
in comparison with those other recompenses which await both just and
|
|
unjust after death. And you ought to hear them, and then both just and
|
|
unjust will have received from us a full payment of the debt which the
|
|
argument owes to them.
|
|
|
|
Speak, he said; there are few things which I would more gladly hear.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, I will tell you a tale; not one of the tales which
|
|
Odysseus tells to the hero Alcinous, yet this too is a tale of a hero,
|
|
Er the son of Armenius, a Pamphylian by birth. He was slain in battle,
|
|
and ten days afterwards, when the bodies of the dead were taken up
|
|
already in a state of corruption, his body was found unaffected by
|
|
decay, and carried away home to be buried. And on the twelfth day, as he
|
|
was lying on the funeral pile, he returned to life and told them what he
|
|
had seen in the other world. He said that when his soul left the body
|
|
he went on a journey with a great company, and that they came to a
|
|
mysterious place at which there were two openings in the earth; they
|
|
were near together, and over against them were two other openings in the
|
|
heaven above. In the intermediate space there were judges seated, who
|
|
commanded the just, after they had given judgment on them and had bound
|
|
their sentences in front of them, to ascend by the heavenly way on the
|
|
right hand; and in like manner the unjust were bidden by them to descend
|
|
by the lower way on the left hand; these also bore the symbols of their
|
|
deeds, but fastened on their backs. He drew near, and they told him that
|
|
he was to be the messenger who would carry the report of the other world
|
|
to men, and they bade him hear and see all that was to be heard and seen
|
|
in that place. Then he beheld and saw on one side the souls departing at
|
|
either opening of heaven and earth when sentence had been given on them;
|
|
and at the two other openings other souls, some ascending out of the
|
|
earth dusty and worn with travel, some descending out of heaven clean
|
|
and bright. And arriving ever and anon they seemed to have come from a
|
|
long journey, and they went forth with gladness into the meadow, where
|
|
they encamped as at a festival; and those who knew one another embraced
|
|
and conversed, the souls which came from earth curiously enquiring about
|
|
the things above, and the souls which came from heaven about the things
|
|
beneath. And they told one another of what had happened by the way,
|
|
those from below weeping and sorrowing at the remembrance of the things
|
|
which they had endured and seen in their journey beneath the earth
|
|
(now the journey lasted a thousand years), while those from above were
|
|
describing heavenly delights and visions of inconceivable beauty. The
|
|
story, Glaucon, would take too long to tell; but the sum was this:--He
|
|
said that for every wrong which they had done to any one they suffered
|
|
tenfold; or once in a hundred years--such being reckoned to be the
|
|
length of man's life, and the penalty being thus paid ten times in a
|
|
thousand years. If, for example, there were any who had been the cause
|
|
of many deaths, or had betrayed or enslaved cities or armies, or been
|
|
guilty of any other evil behaviour, for each and all of their offences
|
|
they received punishment ten times over, and the rewards of beneficence
|
|
and justice and holiness were in the same proportion. I need hardly
|
|
repeat what he said concerning young children dying almost as soon
|
|
as they were born. Of piety and impiety to gods and parents, and of
|
|
murderers, there were retributions other and greater far which he
|
|
described. He mentioned that he was present when one of the spirits
|
|
asked another, 'Where is Ardiaeus the Great?' (Now this Ardiaeus lived
|
|
a thousand years before the time of Er: he had been the tyrant of
|
|
some city of Pamphylia, and had murdered his aged father and his elder
|
|
brother, and was said to have committed many other abominable crimes.)
|
|
The answer of the other spirit was: 'He comes not hither and will never
|
|
come. And this,' said he, 'was one of the dreadful sights which we
|
|
ourselves witnessed. We were at the mouth of the cavern, and, having
|
|
completed all our experiences, were about to reascend, when of a sudden
|
|
Ardiaeus appeared and several others, most of whom were tyrants; and
|
|
there were also besides the tyrants private individuals who had been
|
|
great criminals: they were just, as they fancied, about to return into
|
|
the upper world, but the mouth, instead of admitting them, gave a roar,
|
|
whenever any of these incurable sinners or some one who had not been
|
|
sufficiently punished tried to ascend; and then wild men of fiery
|
|
aspect, who were standing by and heard the sound, seized and carried
|
|
them off; and Ardiaeus and others they bound head and foot and hand, and
|
|
threw them down and flayed them with scourges, and dragged them along
|
|
the road at the side, carding them on thorns like wool, and declaring
|
|
to the passers-by what were their crimes, and that they were being taken
|
|
away to be cast into hell.' And of all the many terrors which they had
|
|
endured, he said that there was none like the terror which each of them
|
|
felt at that moment, lest they should hear the voice; and when there was
|
|
silence, one by one they ascended with exceeding joy. These, said Er,
|
|
were the penalties and retributions, and there were blessings as great.
|
|
|
|
Now when the spirits which were in the meadow had tarried seven days,
|
|
on the eighth they were obliged to proceed on their journey, and, on the
|
|
fourth day after, he said that they came to a place where they could
|
|
see from above a line of light, straight as a column, extending right
|
|
through the whole heaven and through the earth, in colour resembling the
|
|
rainbow, only brighter and purer; another day's journey brought them to
|
|
the place, and there, in the midst of the light, they saw the ends of
|
|
the chains of heaven let down from above: for this light is the belt
|
|
of heaven, and holds together the circle of the universe, like the
|
|
under-girders of a trireme. From these ends is extended the spindle of
|
|
Necessity, on which all the revolutions turn. The shaft and hook of this
|
|
spindle are made of steel, and the whorl is made partly of steel and
|
|
also partly of other materials. Now the whorl is in form like the whorl
|
|
used on earth; and the description of it implied that there is one large
|
|
hollow whorl which is quite scooped out, and into this is fitted another
|
|
lesser one, and another, and another, and four others, making eight
|
|
in all, like vessels which fit into one another; the whorls show their
|
|
edges on the upper side, and on their lower side all together form one
|
|
continuous whorl. This is pierced by the spindle, which is driven home
|
|
through the centre of the eighth. The first and outermost whorl has the
|
|
rim broadest, and the seven inner whorls are narrower, in the following
|
|
proportions--the sixth is next to the first in size, the fourth next
|
|
to the sixth; then comes the eighth; the seventh is fifth, the fifth
|
|
is sixth, the third is seventh, last and eighth comes the second.
|
|
The largest (or fixed stars) is spangled, and the seventh (or sun) is
|
|
brightest; the eighth (or moon) coloured by the reflected light of the
|
|
seventh; the second and fifth (Saturn and Mercury) are in colour like
|
|
one another, and yellower than the preceding; the third (Venus) has the
|
|
whitest light; the fourth (Mars) is reddish; the sixth (Jupiter) is in
|
|
whiteness second. Now the whole spindle has the same motion; but, as the
|
|
whole revolves in one direction, the seven inner circles move slowly in
|
|
the other, and of these the swiftest is the eighth; next in swiftness
|
|
are the seventh, sixth, and fifth, which move together; third in
|
|
swiftness appeared to move according to the law of this reversed motion
|
|
the fourth; the third appeared fourth and the second fifth. The spindle
|
|
turns on the knees of Necessity; and on the upper surface of each circle
|
|
is a siren, who goes round with them, hymning a single tone or note. The
|
|
eight together form one harmony; and round about, at equal intervals,
|
|
there is another band, three in number, each sitting upon her throne:
|
|
these are the Fates, daughters of Necessity, who are clothed in white
|
|
robes and have chaplets upon their heads, Lachesis and Clotho
|
|
and Atropos, who accompany with their voices the harmony of the
|
|
sirens--Lachesis singing of the past, Clotho of the present, Atropos of
|
|
the future; Clotho from time to time assisting with a touch of her right
|
|
hand the revolution of the outer circle of the whorl or spindle, and
|
|
Atropos with her left hand touching and guiding the inner ones, and
|
|
Lachesis laying hold of either in turn, first with one hand and then
|
|
with the other.
|
|
|
|
When Er and the spirits arrived, their duty was to go at once to
|
|
Lachesis; but first of all there came a prophet who arranged them in
|
|
order; then he took from the knees of Lachesis lots and samples of
|
|
lives, and having mounted a high pulpit, spoke as follows: 'Hear the
|
|
word of Lachesis, the daughter of Necessity. Mortal souls, behold a new
|
|
cycle of life and mortality. Your genius will not be allotted to you,
|
|
but you will choose your genius; and let him who draws the first lot
|
|
have the first choice, and the life which he chooses shall be his
|
|
destiny. Virtue is free, and as a man honours or dishonours her he will
|
|
have more or less of her; the responsibility is with the chooser--God
|
|
is justified.' When the Interpreter had thus spoken he scattered lots
|
|
indifferently among them all, and each of them took up the lot which
|
|
fell near him, all but Er himself (he was not allowed), and each as
|
|
he took his lot perceived the number which he had obtained. Then the
|
|
Interpreter placed on the ground before them the samples of lives; and
|
|
there were many more lives than the souls present, and they were of all
|
|
sorts. There were lives of every animal and of man in every condition.
|
|
And there were tyrannies among them, some lasting out the tyrant's life,
|
|
others which broke off in the middle and came to an end in poverty and
|
|
exile and beggary; and there were lives of famous men, some who were
|
|
famous for their form and beauty as well as for their strength and
|
|
success in games, or, again, for their birth and the qualities of their
|
|
ancestors; and some who were the reverse of famous for the opposite
|
|
qualities. And of women likewise; there was not, however, any definite
|
|
character in them, because the soul, when choosing a new life, must of
|
|
necessity become different. But there was every other quality, and
|
|
the all mingled with one another, and also with elements of wealth and
|
|
poverty, and disease and health; and there were mean states also. And
|
|
here, my dear Glaucon, is the supreme peril of our human state; and
|
|
therefore the utmost care should be taken. Let each one of us leave
|
|
every other kind of knowledge and seek and follow one thing only, if
|
|
peradventure he may be able to learn and may find some one who will make
|
|
him able to learn and discern between good and evil, and so to choose
|
|
always and everywhere the better life as he has opportunity. He should
|
|
consider the bearing of all these things which have been mentioned
|
|
severally and collectively upon virtue; he should know what the effect
|
|
of beauty is when combined with poverty or wealth in a particular soul,
|
|
and what are the good and evil consequences of noble and humble birth,
|
|
of private and public station, of strength and weakness, of cleverness
|
|
and dullness, and of all the natural and acquired gifts of the soul, and
|
|
the operation of them when conjoined; he will then look at the nature of
|
|
the soul, and from the consideration of all these qualities he will be
|
|
able to determine which is the better and which is the worse; and so
|
|
he will choose, giving the name of evil to the life which will make his
|
|
soul more unjust, and good to the life which will make his soul more
|
|
just; all else he will disregard. For we have seen and know that this is
|
|
the best choice both in life and after death. A man must take with him
|
|
into the world below an adamantine faith in truth and right, that there
|
|
too he may be undazzled by the desire of wealth or the other allurements
|
|
of evil, lest, coming upon tyrannies and similar villainies, he do
|
|
irremediable wrongs to others and suffer yet worse himself; but let him
|
|
know how to choose the mean and avoid the extremes on either side, as
|
|
far as possible, not only in this life but in all that which is to come.
|
|
For this is the way of happiness.
|
|
|
|
And according to the report of the messenger from the other world this
|
|
was what the prophet said at the time: 'Even for the last comer, if he
|
|
chooses wisely and will live diligently, there is appointed a happy and
|
|
not undesirable existence. Let not him who chooses first be careless,
|
|
and let not the last despair.' And when he had spoken, he who had the
|
|
first choice came forward and in a moment chose the greatest tyranny;
|
|
his mind having been darkened by folly and sensuality, he had not
|
|
thought out the whole matter before he chose, and did not at first
|
|
sight perceive that he was fated, among other evils, to devour his own
|
|
children. But when he had time to reflect, and saw what was in the lot,
|
|
he began to beat his breast and lament over his choice, forgetting the
|
|
proclamation of the prophet; for, instead of throwing the blame of his
|
|
misfortune on himself, he accused chance and the gods, and everything
|
|
rather than himself. Now he was one of those who came from heaven, and
|
|
in a former life had dwelt in a well-ordered State, but his virtue was
|
|
a matter of habit only, and he had no philosophy. And it was true of
|
|
others who were similarly overtaken, that the greater number of them
|
|
came from heaven and therefore they had never been schooled by trial,
|
|
whereas the pilgrims who came from earth having themselves suffered and
|
|
seen others suffer, were not in a hurry to choose. And owing to this
|
|
inexperience of theirs, and also because the lot was a chance, many of
|
|
the souls exchanged a good destiny for an evil or an evil for a good.
|
|
For if a man had always on his arrival in this world dedicated himself
|
|
from the first to sound philosophy, and had been moderately fortunate
|
|
in the number of the lot, he might, as the messenger reported, be happy
|
|
here, and also his journey to another life and return to this, instead
|
|
of being rough and underground, would be smooth and heavenly. Most
|
|
curious, he said, was the spectacle--sad and laughable and strange; for
|
|
the choice of the souls was in most cases based on their experience of
|
|
a previous life. There he saw the soul which had once been Orpheus
|
|
choosing the life of a swan out of enmity to the race of women, hating
|
|
to be born of a woman because they had been his murderers; he beheld
|
|
also the soul of Thamyras choosing the life of a nightingale; birds, on
|
|
the other hand, like the swan and other musicians, wanting to be men.
|
|
The soul which obtained the twentieth lot chose the life of a lion, and
|
|
this was the soul of Ajax the son of Telamon, who would not be a man,
|
|
remembering the injustice which was done him in the judgment about the
|
|
arms. The next was Agamemnon, who took the life of an eagle, because,
|
|
like Ajax, he hated human nature by reason of his sufferings. About
|
|
the middle came the lot of Atalanta; she, seeing the great fame of
|
|
an athlete, was unable to resist the temptation: and after her there
|
|
followed the soul of Epeus the son of Panopeus passing into the nature
|
|
of a woman cunning in the arts; and far away among the last who chose,
|
|
the soul of the jester Thersites was putting on the form of a monkey.
|
|
There came also the soul of Odysseus having yet to make a choice, and
|
|
his lot happened to be the last of them all. Now the recollection of
|
|
former toils had disenchanted him of ambition, and he went about for
|
|
a considerable time in search of the life of a private man who had no
|
|
cares; he had some difficulty in finding this, which was lying about and
|
|
had been neglected by everybody else; and when he saw it, he said that
|
|
he would have done the same had his lot been first instead of last,
|
|
and that he was delighted to have it. And not only did men pass into
|
|
animals, but I must also mention that there were animals tame and wild
|
|
who changed into one another and into corresponding human natures--the
|
|
good into the gentle and the evil into the savage, in all sorts of
|
|
combinations.
|
|
|
|
All the souls had now chosen their lives, and they went in the order of
|
|
their choice to Lachesis, who sent with them the genius whom they had
|
|
severally chosen, to be the guardian of their lives and the fulfiller
|
|
of the choice: this genius led the souls first to Clotho, and drew
|
|
them within the revolution of the spindle impelled by her hand, thus
|
|
ratifying the destiny of each; and then, when they were fastened to
|
|
this, carried them to Atropos, who spun the threads and made them
|
|
irreversible, whence without turning round they passed beneath the
|
|
throne of Necessity; and when they had all passed, they marched on in a
|
|
scorching heat to the plain of Forgetfulness, which was a barren waste
|
|
destitute of trees and verdure; and then towards evening they encamped
|
|
by the river of Unmindfulness, whose water no vessel can hold; of this
|
|
they were all obliged to drink a certain quantity, and those who were
|
|
not saved by wisdom drank more than was necessary; and each one as he
|
|
drank forgot all things. Now after they had gone to rest, about the
|
|
middle of the night there was a thunderstorm and earthquake, and then
|
|
in an instant they were driven upwards in all manner of ways to their
|
|
birth, like stars shooting. He himself was hindered from drinking the
|
|
water. But in what manner or by what means he returned to the body he
|
|
could not say; only, in the morning, awaking suddenly, he found himself
|
|
lying on the pyre.
|
|
|
|
And thus, Glaucon, the tale has been saved and has not perished, and
|
|
will save us if we are obedient to the word spoken; and we shall pass
|
|
safely over the river of Forgetfulness and our soul will not be defiled.
|
|
Wherefore my counsel is, that we hold fast ever to the heavenly way and
|
|
follow after justice and virtue always, considering that the soul is
|
|
immortal and able to endure every sort of good and every sort of evil.
|
|
Thus shall we live dear to one another and to the gods, both while
|
|
remaining here and when, like conquerors in the games who go round to
|
|
gather gifts, we receive our reward. And it shall be well with us both
|
|
in this life and in the pilgrimage of a thousand years which we have
|
|
been describing.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|